summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--43813-0.txt393
-rw-r--r--43813-0.zipbin165143 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--43813-8.txt7418
-rw-r--r--43813-8.zipbin164605 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--43813-h.zipbin223397 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--43813-h/43813-h.htm423
-rw-r--r--43813.txt7418
-rw-r--r--43813.zipbin164408 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 5 insertions, 15647 deletions
diff --git a/43813-0.txt b/43813-0.txt
index 799fca2..34a21c8 100644
--- a/43813-0.txt
+++ b/43813-0.txt
@@ -1,37 +1,4 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Myths and Dreams, by Edward Clodd
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Title: Myths and Dreams
-
-Author: Edward Clodd
-
-Release Date: September 26, 2013 [EBook #43813]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MYTHS AND DREAMS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by The Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive.)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
+*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 43813 ***
MYTHS AND DREAMS
@@ -7046,360 +7013,4 @@ terms expressive of the different forms of divination is given.
End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Myths and Dreams, by Edward Clodd
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MYTHS AND DREAMS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 43813-0.txt or 43813-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/4/3/8/1/43813/
-
-Produced by The Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive.)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
- www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
-contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
-Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 43813 ***
diff --git a/43813-0.zip b/43813-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index af77a95..0000000
--- a/43813-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/43813-8.txt b/43813-8.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 688ef13..0000000
--- a/43813-8.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,7418 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Myths and Dreams, by Edward Clodd
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Title: Myths and Dreams
-
-Author: Edward Clodd
-
-Release Date: September 26, 2013 [EBook #43813]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MYTHS AND DREAMS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by The Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive.)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-MYTHS AND DREAMS
-
-
-
-
- MYTHS AND DREAMS
-
-
- BY EDWARD CLODD
-
- AUTHOR OF
- 'THE CHILDHOOD OF THE WORLD,'
- 'THE STORY OF CREATION,' ETC.
-
-
- _SECOND EDITION, REVISED_
-
-
- London
- CHATTO & WINDUS, PICCADILLY
- 1891
-
-
-
-
-TO RICHARD A. PROCTOR, B.A.,
-
-AUTHOR OF 'THE SUN,' 'OTHER WORLDS,' ETC., EDITOR OF 'KNOWLEDGE.'
-
-MY DEAR PROCTOR--The best gifts of life are its friendships, and to you,
-with whom friendship has ripened into fellowship, and under whose
-editorial wing some of the chapters of this book had temporary shelter, I
-inscribe them in their enlarged and independent form.
-
- Yours sincerely,
- EDWARD CLODD.
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE.
-
-
-The object of this book is to present in compendious form the evidence
-which myths and dreams supply as to primitive man's interpretation of his
-own nature and of the external world, and more especially to indicate how
-such evidence carries within itself the history of the origin and growth
-of beliefs in the supernatural.
-
-The examples are selected chiefly from barbaric races, as furnishing the
-nearest correspondences to the working of the mind in what may be called
-its "eocene" stage, but examples are also cited from civilised races, as
-witnessing to that continuity of ideas which is obscured by familiarity or
-ignored by prejudice.
-
-Had more illustrations been drawn from sources alike prolific, the
-evidence would have been swollen to undue dimensions without increasing
-its significance; as it is, repetition has been found needful here and
-there, under the difficulty of entirely detaching the arguments advanced
-in the two parts of this work.
-
-Man's development, physical and psychical, has been fully treated by Mr.
-Herbert Spencer, Dr. Tylor, and other authorities, to whom students of the
-subject are permanent debtors, but that subject is so many-sided, so
-far-reaching, whether in retrospect or prospect, that its subdivision is
-of advantage so long as we do not permit our sense of inter-relation to be
-dulled thereby.
-
-My own line of argument will be found to run for the most part parallel
-with that of the above-named writers; there are divergences along the
-route, but we reach a common terminus.
-
-The footnotes indicate the principal works which have been consulted in
-preparing this book, but I desire to express my special thanks to Mr.
-Andrew Lang for his kindness in reading the proofs, and for suggestions
-which, in the main, I have been glad to adopt.
-
-E. C.
-
- ROSEMONT, TUFNELL PARK,
- LONDON, _March 1885_.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS.
-
-
- PART I.
-
- MYTH: ITS BIRTH AND GROWTH.
-
- SECTION PAGE
-
- I. ITS PRIMITIVE MEANING 3
-
- II. CONFUSION OF EARLY THOUGHT BETWEEN THE LIVING AND THE
- NOT LIVING 12
-
- III. PERSONIFICATION OF THE POWERS OF NATURE 19
- (_a._) The Sun and Moon 19
- (_b._) The Stars 29
- (_c._) The Earth and Sky 34
- (_d._) Storm and Lightning, etc. 41
- (_e._) Light and Darkness 48
- (_f._) The Devil 53
-
- IV. THE SOLAR THEORY OF MYTH 61
-
- V. BELIEF IN METAMORPHOSIS INTO ANIMALS 81
-
- VI. TOTEMISM: BELIEF IN DESCENT FROM ANIMAL OR PLANT 99
-
- VII. SURVIVAL OF MYTH IN HISTORY 114
-
- VIII. MYTH AMONG THE HEBREWS 131
-
- IX. CONCLUSION 137
-
-
- PART II.
-
- DREAMS: THEIR PLACE IN THE GROWTH OF BELIEFS IN THE SUPERNATURAL.
-
- SECTION PAGE
-
- I. DIFFERENCE BETWEEN SAVAGE AND CIVILISED MAN 143
-
- II. LIMITATIONS OF BARBARIC LANGUAGE 148
-
- III. BARBARIC CONFUSION BETWEEN NAMES AND THINGS 154
-
- IV. BARBARIC BELIEF IN VIRTUE IN INANIMATE THINGS 160
-
- V. BARBARIC BELIEF IN THE REALITY OF DREAMS 168
-
- VI. BARBARIC THEORY OF DISEASE 174
-
- VII. BARBARIC THEORY OF A SECOND SELF OR SOUL 182
-
- VIII. BARBARIC PHILOSOPHY IN "PUNCHKIN" AND ALLIED STORIES 188
-
- IX. BARBARIC AND CIVILISED NOTIONS OF THE SOUL'S NATURE 198
-
- X. BARBARIC BELIEF IN SOULS IN BRUTES AND PLANTS AND
- LIFELESS THINGS 207
-
- XI. BARBARIC AND CIVILISED NOTIONS ABOUT THE SOUL'S DWELLING
- PLACE 215
-
- XII. CONCLUSIONS FROM THE FOREGOING 222
-
- XIII. DREAMS AS OMENS AND MEDIA OF COMMUNICATION BETWEEN GODS
- AND MEN 236
-
- INDEX 245
-
-
-
-
-I.
-
-MYTH: ITS BIRTH AND GROWTH.
-
-
-"Unchecked by external truth, the mind of man has a fatal facility for
-ensnaring, entrapping, and entangling itself. But, happily, happily for
-the human race, some fragment of physical speculation has been built into
-every false system. Here is the weak point. Its inevitable destruction
-leaves a breach in the whole fabric, and through that breach the armies of
-truth march in."
-
-Sir H. S. MAINE.
-
-
-MYTH: ITS BIRTH AND GROWTH.
-
-
-§ I.
-
-ITS PRIMITIVE MEANING.
-
-It is barely thirty years ago since the world was startled by the
-publication of Buckle's _History of Civilisation_, with its theory that
-human actions are the effect of causes as fixed and regular as those which
-operate in the universe; climate, soil, food, and scenery being the chief
-conditions determining progress.
-
-That book was a _tour de force_, not a lasting contribution to the
-question of man's mental development. The publication of Darwin's
-epoch-making _Origin of Species_[1] showed wherein it fell short; how the
-importance of the above-named causes was exaggerated and the existence of
-equally potent causes overlooked. Buckle probably had not read Herbert
-Spencer's _Social Statics_, and he knew nothing of the profound revolution
-in silent preparation in the quiet of Darwin's home; otherwise, his book
-must have been rewritten. This would have averted the oblivion from which
-not even its charm of style can rescue it. Its brilliant but defective
-theories are obscured in the fuller light of that doctrine of descent with
-modifications by which we learn that external circumstances do not alone
-account for the widely divergent types of men, so that a superior race, in
-supplanting an inferior one, will change the face and destiny of a
-country, "making the solitary place to be glad, and the desert to rejoice
-and blossom as the rose." Darwin has given us the clue to those subtle and
-still obscure causes which bring about, stage by stage, the unseen
-adaptations to requirements varying a type and securing its survival, and
-which have resulted in the evolution of the manifold species of living
-things. The notion of a constant relation between man and his surroundings
-is therefore untenable.
-
-But incomplete as is Buckle's theory, and all-embracing as is Darwin's, so
-far as organic life is concerned, the larger issue is raised by both, and
-for most men whose judgment is worth anything it is settled. Either man is
-a part of nature or he is not. If he is not, there is an end of the
-matter, since the materials lie beyond human grasp, and cannot be examined
-and placed in order for comparative study. Let Christian, Brahman,
-Bushman, and South Sea Islander each hold fast his "form of sound words"
-about man's origin. One is as good as another where all are irrational and
-beyond proof. But if he is, then the inquiry concerning him may not stop
-at the anatomy of his body and the assignment of his place in the
-succession of life on the globe. His relation, materially, to the
-simplest, shapeless specks of living matter; structurally, to the highest
-and more complex organisms, is demonstrated; the natural history of him is
-clear. This, however, is physical, and for us the larger question is
-psychical. The theory of evolution must embrace the genesis and
-development of mind, and therefore of ideas, beliefs, and speculations
-about things seen and unseen.
-
-In the correction of our old definitions a wider meaning must be given to
-the word _myth_ than that commonly found in the dictionaries. Opening any
-of these at random we find myth explained as fable, as something
-designedly fictitious, whether for amusement only, or to point a moral.
-The larger meaning which it holds to-day includes much more than this--to
-wit, the whole area of intellectual products which lie beyond the historic
-horizon and overlap it, effacing on nearer view the lines of separation.
-For the myth, as fable only, has no place for the crude fancies and
-grotesque imaginings of barbarous races of the present day, and of races
-at low levels of culture in the remote past. And so long as it was looked
-upon as the vagrant of fancy, with no serious meaning at the heart of it,
-and as corresponding to no yearning of man after the truth of things,
-sober treatment of it was impossible. But now that myth, with its prolific
-offspring, legend and tradition, is seen to be a necessary travailing
-through which the mind of man passed in its slow progress towards
-certitude, the study and comparison of its manifold, yet, at the centre,
-allied forms, and of the conditions out of which they arose, takes rank
-among the serious inquiries of our time.
-
-Not that the inquiry is a new one. The limits of this book forbid detailed
-references to the successive stages of that inquiry--in other words, to
-the pre-Christian, patristic, and pseudo-scientific theories of myth which
-remained unchallenged, or varied only in non-essential features, till the
-rise of comparative mythology. But apology for such omission here is the
-less needful, since the list of ancient and modern vagaries would have the
-monotony of a catalogue. However unlike on the surface, they are
-fundamentally the same, being the products of non-critical ages, and one
-and all vitiated by assumptions concerning gods and men which are to us as
-"old wives' fables."
-
-In short, between these empirical theories and the scientific method of
-inquiry into the meaning of myth there can be no relation. Because, for
-the assigning of its due place in the order of man's mental and spiritual
-development to myth, there is needed that knowledge concerning his origin,
-concerning the conditions out of which he has emerged, and concerning the
-mythologies of lower races and their survival in unsuspected forms in the
-higher races, which was not only beyond reach, but also beyond conception,
-until this century.
-
-Except, therefore, as curiosities of literature, we may dismiss the
-Lemprière of our school-days, and with him "Causabon"-Bryant and his
-symbolism of the ark and traces of the Flood in everything. Their keys,
-Arkite and Ophite, fit no lock, and with them we must, in all respect be
-it added, dismiss Mr. Gladstone, with his visions of the Messiah in
-Apollo, and of the Logos in Athênê.
-
-The main design of this book is to show that in what is for convenience
-called _myth_ lie the germs of philosophy, theology, and science, the
-beginnings of all knowledge that man has attained or ever will attain, and
-therefore that in myth we have his serious endeavour to interpret the
-meaning of his surroundings and of his own actions and feelings. In its
-unbroken sequence we have the explanation of his most cherished and now,
-for the most part, discredited beliefs, the persistence of which makes it
-essential and instructive not to deal with the primitive myth apart from
-its later and more complex phases. Myth was the product of man's emotion
-and imagination, acted upon by his surroundings, and it carries the traces
-of its origin in its more developed forms, as the ancestral history of the
-higher organisms is embodied in their embryos. Man wondered before he
-reasoned. Awe and fear are quick to express themselves in rudimentary
-worship; hence the myth was at the outset a theology, and the gradations
-from personifying to deifying are too faint to be traced. Thus blended,
-the one as inevitable outcome of the other, they cannot well be treated
-separately, as if the myth were earth-born and the theology heaven-sent.
-And to treat them as one is to invade no province of religion, which is
-quite other than speculation about gods. The awe and reverence which the
-fathomless mystery of the universe awakens, which steal within us unbidden
-as the morning light, and unbroken on the prism of analysis; the
-conviction, deepening as we peer, that there is a Power beyond humanity,
-and upon which humanity depends; the feeling that life is in harmony with
-the Divine order when it moves in disinterested service of our kind--these
-theology can neither create nor destroy, neither verify nor disprove. They
-can be bound within no formula that man or church has invented, but
-undefined
-
- "Are yet the fountain life of all our day,
- Are yet a master light of all our seeing."
-
-At what epoch in man's history we are to place the development of the
-myth-making faculty must remain undetermined. It is of course coincident
-with the dawn of thought. We cannot credit the nameless savage of the
-Ancient Stone Age with it. If he had brains and leisure enough to make
-guesses about things, he has left us no witness of the fact. His relics,
-and those of his successors to a period which is but as yesterday in the
-history of our kind, are material only; and not until we possess the
-symbols of his thought, whether in language or rude picture, do we get an
-inkling of the meaning which the universe had for him, in the details of
-his pitiless daily life, in the shapes and motions of surrounding
-objects, and in the majesty of the heavens above him. Even then the
-thought is more or less crystallised, and if we would watch it in the
-fluent form we must have a keen eye for the like process going on among
-savages yet untouched by the Time-spirit, although higher in the scale
-than the Papuans and hill tribes of the Vindhya. Although we cannot so far
-lull our faculty of thought as to realise the mental vacuity of the
-savage, we may, from survivals nowadays, lead up to reasonable guesses of
-savage ways of looking at things in bygone ages, and the more so when we
-can detect relics of these among the ignorant and superstitious of modern
-times.
-
-What meaning, then, had man's surroundings to him, when eye and ear could
-be diverted from prior claims of the body, and he could repose from
-watching for his prey, and from listening to the approach of wild beast or
-enemy? He had the advantage, from greater demand for their exercise, in
-keener senses of sight, hearing, smell, and touch, than we enjoy; nor did
-he fail to take in facts in plenty. But there was this vital defect and
-difference, that in his brains every fact was pigeon-holed, charged with
-its own narrow meaning only, as in small minds among ourselves we find
-place given to inane peddling details, and no advance made to general and
-wide conception of things. In sharpest contrast to the poet's utterance:
-
- "Nothing in this world is single,
- All things by a law divine
- In one another's being mingle,"
-
-every fact is unrelated to every other fact, and therefore interpreted
-wrongly.
-
-Man, in his first outlook upon nature, was altogether ignorant of the
-character of the forces by which he was environed; ignorant of that
-unvarying relation between effect and cause which it needed the experience
-of ages and the generalisations therefrom to apprehend, and to express as
-"laws of nature." He had not even the intellectual resource of later times
-in inventing miracle to explain where the necessary relation between
-events seemed broken or absent.
-
-His first attitude was that of wonder, mingled with fear--fear as
-instinctive as the dread of the brute for him. The sole measure of things
-was himself, consequently everything that moved or that had power of
-movement did so because it was alive. A personal life and will was
-attributed to sun, moon, clouds, river, waterfall, ocean, and tree, and
-the varying phenomena of the sky at dawn or noonday, at gray eve or
-black-clouded night, were the manifestation of the controlling life that
-dwelt in all. In a thousand different forms this conception was expressed.
-The thunder was the roar of a mighty beast; the lightning a serpent
-darting at its prey, an angry eye flashing, the storm demon's outshot
-forked tongue; the rainbow a thirsty monster; the waterspout a long-tailed
-dragon. This was not a pretty or powerful conceit, not imagery, but an
-explanation. The men who thus spoke of these phenomena meant precisely
-what they said. What does the savage know about heat, light, sound,
-electricity, and the other modes of motion through which the
-Proteus-force beyond our ken is manifest? How many persons who have
-enjoyed a "liberal" education can give correct answers, if asked off-hand,
-explaining how glaciers are born of the sunshine, and why two sounds,
-travelling in opposite directions at equal velocities, interfere and cause
-silence? The percentage of young men, hailing from schools of renown, who
-give the most ludicrous replies when asked the cause of day and night, and
-the distance of the earth from the sun, is by no means small.
-
-Whilst the primary causes determining the production of myths are uniform,
-the secondary causes, due in the main to different physical surroundings,
-vary, bringing about unlikeness in subject and detail. Nevertheless, in
-grouping the several classes of myths, those are obviously to be placed
-prominently which embrace explanations of the origin of things, from sun
-and star to man and insect, involving ideas about the powers to whom all
-things are attributed. But in this book no exhaustive treatment is
-possible, only some indication of the general lines along which the
-myth-making faculty has advanced, and for this purpose a few illustrations
-of barbaric mental confusion between the living and the not living are
-chosen at the outset. They will, moreover, prepare us for the large
-element of the irrational present in barbaric myth, and supply a key to
-the survival of this in the mythologies of civilised races.
-
-
-§ II.
-
-CONFUSION OF EARLY THOUGHT BETWEEN THE LIVING AND THE NOT LIVING.
-
-In selecting from the literature of savage mythology the material
-overburdens us by its richness. Much of it is old, and, like refuse-heaps
-in our mining districts once cast aside as rubbish but now made to yield
-products of value, has, after long neglect, been found to contain elements
-of worth, which patience and insight have extracted from its travellers'
-tales and quaint speculations. That for which it was most prized in the
-days of our fathers is now of small account; that within it which they
-passed by we secure as of lasting worth. Much of that literature is,
-however, new, for the impetus which has in our time been given to the
-rescue and preservation of archaic forms has reached this, and a host of
-accomplished collectors have secured rich specimens of relics which, in
-the lands of their discovery, have still the authority of the past,
-unimpaired by the critical exposure of the present.
-
-The subject itself is, moreover, so wide reaching, bringing the ancient
-and the modern into hitherto unsuspected relation, showing how in customs
-and beliefs, to us unmeaning and irrational, there lurk the degraded
-representations of old philosophies, and in what seems to us burlesque,
-the survivals of man's most serious thought.
-
-One feels this difficulty of choice and this temptation to digress in
-treating of the confusion inherent in the savage mind between things
-living and not living, arising from superficial analogies and its
-attribution of life and power to lifeless things. The North American
-Indians prefer a hook that has caught a big fish to the handful of hooks
-that have never been tried, and they never lay two nets together lest they
-should be jealous of each other. The Bushmen thought that the traveller
-Chapman's big waggon was the mother of his smaller ones; and the natives
-of Tahiti sowed in the ground some iron nails given them by Captain Cook,
-expecting to obtain young ones. When that ill-fated discoverer's ship was
-sighted by the New Zealanders they thought it was a whale with wings. The
-king of the Coussa Kaffirs having broken off a piece of the anchor of a
-stranded ship soon afterwards died, upon which all the Kaffirs made a
-point of saluting the anchor very respectfully whenever they went near it,
-regarding it as a vindictive being. But perhaps one of the most striking
-and amusing illustrations is that quoted by Sir John Lubbock from the
-_Smithsonian Reports_ concerning an Indian who had been sent by a
-missionary to a colleague with four loaves of bread, accompanied by a
-letter stating their number. The Indian ate some of the bread, and his
-theft was, of course, found out. He was sent on a second errand with a
-similar batch of bread and a letter, and repeated the theft, but took the
-precaution to hide the letter under a stone while he was eating the
-loaves, so that it might not see him! As the individual is a type of the
-race, so in the child's nature we find analogy of the mental attitude of
-the savage ready to hand. To the child everything is alive. With what
-timidity and wonder he first touches a watch, with its moving hands and
-clicking works; with what genuine anger he beats the door against which he
-has knocked his head, whips the rocking-horse that has thrown him, then
-kisses and strokes it the next moment in token of forgiveness and
-affection.
-
- "As children of weak age
- Lend life to the dumb stones
- Whereon to vent their rage,
- And bend their little fists, and rate
- the senseless ground."[2]
-
-Even among civilised adults, as Mr. Grote remarks, "the force of momentary
-passion will often suffice to supersede the acquired habit, and an
-intelligent man may be impelled in a moment of agonising pain to kick or
-beat the lifeless object from which he has suffered." The mental condition
-which causes the wild native of Brazil to bite the stone he stumbled over
-may, as Dr. Tylor has pointed out in his invaluable _Primitive Culture_,
-be traced along the course of history not merely in impulsive habit, but
-in formally enacted law. If among barbarous peoples we find, for example,
-the relatives of a man killed by a fall from a tree taking their revenge
-by cutting the tree down and scattering it in chips, we find a continuity
-of idea in the action of the court of justice held at the Prytaneum in
-Athens to try any inanimate object, such as an axe, or a piece of wood or
-stone, which has caused the death of any one without proved human agency,
-and which, if condemned, was cast in solemn form beyond the border. "The
-spirit of this remarkable procedure reappears in the old English law,
-repealed only in the present reign, whereby not only a beast that kills a
-man, but a cart-wheel that runs over him, or a tree that falls on him and
-kills him, is deodand or given to God, _i.e._ forfeited and sold for the
-poor." Among ancient legal proceedings at Laon we read of animals
-condemned to the gallows for the crime of murder, and of swarms of
-caterpillars which infected certain districts being admonished by the
-Courts of Troyes in 1516 to take themselves off within a given number of
-days, on pain of being declared accursed and excommunicated.[3]
-
-Barbaric confusion in the existence of transferable qualities in things,
-as when the New Zealander swallows his dead enemy's eye that he may see
-farther, or gives his child pebbles to make it stony and pitiless of
-heart; and as when the Abipone eats tiger's flesh to increase his courage,
-has its survival in the old wives' notion that the eye-bright flower,
-which resembles the eye, is good for diseases of that organ, in the
-mediæval remedy for curing a sword wound by nursing the weapon that caused
-it, and in the old adage, "Take a hair of the dog that bit you." As
-illustrating this, Dr. Dennys[4] tells a story of a missionary in China
-whose big dog would now and again slightly bite children as he passed
-through the villages. In such a case the mother would run after him and
-beg for a hair from the dog's tail, which would be put to the part bitten,
-or when the missionary would say jocosely, "Oh! take a hair from the dog
-yourself," the woman would decline, and ask him to spit in her hand, which
-itself witnesses to the widespread belief in the mystical properties of
-saliva.[5] Among ourselves this survives, degraded enough, in the cabmen's
-and boatmen's habit of spitting on the fare paid them. _Treacle_ (Greek
-_theriake_, from _therion_, a name given to the viper) witnesses to the
-old-world superstition that viper's flesh is an antidote to the viper's
-bite. Philips, in his _World of Words_, defines treacle as a "physical
-compound made of vipers and other ingredients," and this medicament was a
-favourite against all poisons. The word then became applied to any
-confection or sweet syrup, and finally and solely to the syrup of
-molasses.
-
-The practice of burning or hanging in effigy, by which a crowd expresses
-its feelings towards an unpopular person, is a relic of the old belief in
-a real and sympathetic connection between a man and his image; a belief
-extant among the unlettered in by-places of civilised countries. When we
-hear of North American tribes making images of their foes, whose lives
-they expect to shorten by piercing those images with their arrows, we
-remember that these barbarous folk have their representatives among us in
-the Devonshire peasant, who hangs in his chimney a pig's heart stuck all
-over with thorn-prickles, so that the heart of his enemy may likewise be
-pierced. The custom among the Dyaks of Borneo of making a wax figure of
-the foe, so that his body may waste away as the wax is melted, will remind
-the admirers of Dante Rossetti how he finds in a kindred mediæval
-superstition the subject of his poem "Sister Helen," while they who prefer
-the authority of sober prose may turn to that storehouse of the curious,
-Brand's _Popular Antiquities_. Brand quotes from King James, who, in his
-_Dæmonology_, book ii. chap. 5, tells us that "the devil teacheth how to
-make pictures of wax or clay, that by roasting thereof the persons that
-they bear the name of may be continually melted or dried away by continual
-sickness;" and also cites Andrews, the author of a _Continuation of
-Henry's Great Britain_, who, speaking of the death of Ferdinand, Earl of
-Derby, by poison, in the reign of Elizabeth, says, "The credulity of the
-age attributed his death to witchcraft. The disease was odd, and operated
-as a perpetual emetic; and a waxen image, with hair like that of the
-unfortunate earl, found in his chamber, reduced every suspicion to
-certainty." A century and half before this the Duchess of Gloucester did
-penance for conspiring with certain necromancers against the life of Henry
-VI. by melting a waxen image of him, while, as hinging the centuries
-together, "only recently a _corp cré_, or clay image, stuck full of birds'
-claws, bones, pins, and similar objects, was found in one of the
-Inverness-shire rivers. It was a fetish which, as it dissolved away by the
-action of the stream, was supposed to involve the 'wearing away' of the
-person it was intended to represent."[6] The passage from practices born
-of such beliefs to the use of charms as protectives against the
-evil-disposed and those in league with the devil, and as cures for divers
-diseases, is obvious. Upon this it is not needful to dwell; the
-superstitious man is on the same plane as the savage, but, save in rare
-instances, without such excuse for remaining, as Bishop Hall puts it, with
-"old wives and starres as his counsellors, charms as his physicians, and a
-little hallowed wax as his antidote for all evils."
-
-But we have travelled in brief space a long way from our picture of man,
-weaving out of streams and breezes and the sunshine his crude philosophy
-of personal life and will controlling all, to the peasant of to-day, his
-intellectual lineal descendant, with his belief in signs and wonders, his
-forecast of fate and future by omens, by dreams, and by such pregnant
-occurrences as the spilling of salt, the howling of dogs, and changes of
-the moon; in short, by the great mass of superstitions which yet more or
-less influence the intelligent, terrorise the ignorant, and delight the
-student of human development.
-
-
-§ III.
-
-PERSONIFICATION OF THE POWERS OF NATURE.
-
-(_a._) _The Sun and Moon._
-
-A good deal hinges upon the evidences in savage myth-making of the
-personification of the powers of nature. Obviously, the richest and most
-suggestive material would be supplied by the striking phenomena of the
-heavens, chiefly in sunrise and sunset, in moon, star, star-group and
-meteor, cloud and storm, and, next in importance, by the strange and
-terrible among phenomena on earth, whether in the restless waters, the
-unquiet trees, the grotesquely-shaped rocks, and the fear inspired in man
-by creatures more powerful than himself. Through the whole range of the
-lower culture, sun, moon, and constellations are spoken of as living
-creatures, often as ancestors, heroes, and benefactors who have departed
-to the country above, to heaven, the _heaved_, up-lifted land. The Tongans
-of the South Pacific say that two ancestors quarrelled respecting the
-parentage of the first-born of the woman Papa, each claiming the child as
-his own. No King Solomon appears to have been concerned in the dispute,
-although at last the infant was cut in two. Vatea, the husband of Papa,
-took the upper part as his share, and forthwith squeezed it into a ball
-and tossed it into the heavens, where it became the sun. Tonga-iti
-sullenly allowed the lower half to remain a day or two on the ground,
-but, seeing the brightness of Vatea's half, he compressed his share into a
-ball and tossed it into the dark sky, during the absence of the sun in the
-nether world. Thus originated the moon, whose paleness is owing to the
-blood having all drained out of Tonga-iti's half as it lay upon the
-ground. Mr. Gill, from whose valuable collection of southern myth this is
-quoted, says that it seems to have its origin in the allegory of an
-alternating embrace of the fair Earth by Day and Night. But despite the
-explanations, more or less strained, which some schools of comparative
-mythologists find for every myth, the savage is not a conscious weaver of
-allegories, or an embryo Cabalist, and we shall find ourselves more in
-accord with the laws of his intellectual growth if, instead of delving for
-recondite and subtle meanings in his simple-sounding explanations of
-things, we take the meaning to be that which lies on the surface. More on
-this, however, anon. Among the Red races one tribe thought that sun, moon,
-and stars were men and women who went into the sea every night and swam
-out by the east. The Bushmen say that the sun was once a man who shed
-light from his body, but only for a short distance, until some children
-threw him into the sky while he slept, and thus he shines upon the wide
-earth. The Australians say that all was darkness around them till one of
-their many ancestors, who still shine from the stars, shedding good and
-evil, threw, in pity for them, an emu's egg into space, when it became the
-sun. Among the Manacicas of Brazil, the sun was their culture-hero,
-virgin-born, and their jugglers, who claimed power to fly through the air,
-said that his luminous figure, as that of a man, could be seen by them,
-although too dazzling for common mortals.
-
-The sun has been stayed in his course in other places than Gibeon,
-although by mechanical means of which Joshua appears to have been
-independent. Among the many exploits of Maui, abounding in Polynesian
-myth, are those of his capture of the sun. He had, like Prometheus,
-snatched fire from heaven for mortals, and his next task was to cure Ra,
-the sun-god, of his trick of setting before the day's work was done. So
-Maui plaited thick ropes of cocoa-nut fibre, and taking them to the
-opening through which Ra climbed up from the nether world, he laid a
-slip-noose for him, placing the other ropes at intervals along his path.
-Lying in wait as Ra neared, he pulled the first rope, but the noose only
-caught Ra's feet. Nor could Maui stop him until he reached the sixth rope,
-when he was caught round the neck and pulled so tightly by Maui that he
-had to come to terms, and agree to slacken his pace for the future. Maui,
-however, took the precaution to keep the ropes on him, and they may still
-be seen hanging from the sun at dawn and eve. In Tahitian myth Maui is a
-priest, who, in building a house which must be finished by daylight,
-seizes the sun by its rays and binds it to a tree till the house is built.
-In North American myth a boy had snared the sun, and there was no light on
-the earth. So the beasts held council who should undertake the perilous
-task of cutting the cord, when the dormouse, then the biggest among them,
-volunteered. And it succeeded, but so scorched was it by the heat that it
-was shrivelled to the smallest of creatures. Such a group of myths is not
-easy of explanation; but when we find the sun regarded as an ancestor, and
-as one bound, mill-horse like, to a certain course, the notion of his
-control and check would arise, and the sun-catchers take their place in
-tradition among those who have deserved well of their race. It is one
-among numberless aspects under which the doings of the sun and of other
-objects in nature are depicted as the doings of mortals, and the crude
-conceptions of the Ojibwas and the Samoans find their parallel in the
-mythologies of our Aryan ancestors. Only in the former we see the mighty
-one shorn of his dignity, with noose round his neck or chains on either
-side; whilst in the latter we see him as Herakles, with majesty
-unimpaired, carrying out the twelve tasks imposed by Eurystheus, and thus
-winning for himself a place among the immortals.
-
-The names given to the sun in mythology are as manifold as his aspects and
-influences, and as the moods of the untutored minds that endowed him with
-the complex and contrary qualities which make up the nature of man. _Him_,
-we say, not _it_, thus preserving in our common speech a relic not only of
-the universal personification of things, but of their division into sex.
-
-The origin of gender is most obscure, but its investment of both animate
-and inanimate things with sexual qualities shows it to be a product of
-the mythopoeic stage of man's progress, and demands some reference in
-these pages. The languages of savages are in a constant state of flux,
-even the most abiding terms, as numerals and personal pronouns, being
-replaced by others in a few years. And the changes undergone by civilised
-speech have so rubbed away and obscured its primitive forms that, look
-where he may, the poverty of the old materials embarrasses the inquirer.
-If the similar endings to such undoubtedly early words as father, mother,
-brother, sister, in our own and other related languages, notably Sanskrit,
-afford any clue, it goes rather to show that gender was a later feature
-than one might think. But there is no uniformity in the matter. It seems
-pretty clear that in the early forms of our Indo-European speech there
-were two genders only, masculine and feminine. The assignment of certain
-things conceived of as sexless to neither gender, _neutrius generis_, is
-of later origin. Some of the languages derived from Latin, and, to name
-one of a different family, the Hebrew, have no neuter gender, whilst
-others, as the ancient Turkish and Finnish, have no grammatical gender. In
-our own, under the organic changes incident to its absorption of Norman
-and other foreign elements, gender has practically disappeared (although
-ships and nations are still spoken of as feminine), the pronouns _he_,
-_she_, _it_, being its representatives. Such a gain is apparent when we
-take up the study of the ancestral Anglo-Saxon, with its masculine,
-feminine, and neuter nouns, or of our allied German with its perplexities
-of sex, as, _e.g._, its masculine spoon, its feminine fork, and its neuter
-knife. Turning for a moment to such slight aid as barbaric speech gives,
-we find in the languages of the hill tribes of South India a curious
-distinction made; rational beings, as gods and men, being grouped in a
-"high-caste or major gender," and living animals and lifeless things in a
-"casteless or minor gender." The languages of some North American and
-South African tribes make a distinction into animate and inanimate gender;
-but as non-living things, the sun, the thunder, the lightning, are
-regarded as persons, they are classed in the animate gender.
-
-Further research into the radicals of so relatively fixed a language as
-Chinese, and into more mobile languages related to it, may, perhaps,
-enlighten the present ignorance; but one thing is certain, that language
-was "once the scene of an immense personification," and has thereby added
-vitality to myth. Analogies and conceptions apparent to barbaric man, and
-in no way occurring to us, caused him to attribute sexual qualities not
-only to dead as to living things, but to their several parts, as well as,
-in the course of time, to intellectual and abstract terms. Speaking
-broadly, things in which were manifest size and qualities, as strength,
-independence, governing or controlling power, usually attaching to the
-male, were classed as masculine; whilst those in which the gentler and
-more subordinate features were apparent were classed as feminine. Of
-course marked exceptions to this will at once occur to us, as, _e.g._, in
-certain savage and civilised languages, where the sun is feminine and the
-moon is masculine, but in the main the division holds good. The big is
-male and the small is female. The Dyaks of Borneo call a heavy downpour of
-rain a _he_ rain; and, if so strength-imparting a thing as bread is to be
-classed as either masculine or feminine, we must agree with the negro who,
-in answer to his master's question, "Sambo, where's the bread?" replied,
-"De bread, massa? him lib in de pantry." The mediæval Persians are said to
-have distinguished between male and female even in such things as food and
-cloth, air and water, and prescribed their proper use accordingly; while,
-as Dr. Tylor, from whom the above is quoted, adds, "even we, with our
-blunted mythologic sense, cannot give an individual name to a lifeless
-object, such as a boat or a weapon, without in the very act imagining for
-it something of a personal nature."
-
-But we must not stay longer in these attractive byways of philology,
-however warranted the digression may be, and must return to the
-many-titled sun.
-
-Whilst in the more elaborate mythologies of classic peoples we find him
-addressed in exalted terms which are still the metaphors of poetry, we are
-nearer the rough material out of which all myth is shaped when among races
-who speak of sun, moon, and stars as father, mother, and children, and who
-mean exactly what they say. We may find similar relationships in the solar
-and lunar deities of Egyptian and classic myth, but profound moral
-elements have entered into these and dissolved the material. We are face
-to face with the awful and abiding questions personified in Osiris and
-Isis, in Oedipus and Jocaste, where for us the sunlight pales and the
-storm clouds are dispersed before the dazzling mysteries of human life and
-destiny.
-
-No such matters confront us when in Indian myth we read that the moon is
-the sun's sister, an aged, pale-faced woman, who in kindness led to her
-brother two of the tribe who had sprung through a chasm in the sky to the
-pleasant moonlit land. Neither do they in Australian myth, which shows
-that the dwellers on Olympus had no monopoly of conjugal faithlessness.
-For in it Mityan, the moon, is a native cat, who fell in love with
-somebody else's wife, and has been driven to wander ever since. Among the
-Bushmen, the moon has incurred the sun's anger, and is hacked smaller and
-smaller by him, till, begging for mercy, a respite is given. But as soon
-as he grows larger the sun hacks him again. In Slavonic myth the sun
-cleaves him through for loving the morning star. The Indians of the far
-west say that, when the moon is full, evil spirits begin nibbling at it,
-and eat a portion every night till it is all gone; then a great spirit
-makes a new moon, and, weary with his toil, falls asleep, when the bad
-spirits renew their attack. Another not uncommon group of myths is that
-which speaks of sun and moon as borne across the heavens on the backs of
-ancestors, as in Greek myth Atlas supports the world, or as in ceaseless
-flight, dogged by some pursuer, moon-dog, or "sun-wolf," as parhelion is
-called in Swedish. The group of kindred myths to which eclipses gave rise,
-when the cloud-dragon or serpent tries to swallow sun or moon, and for a
-time succeeds, is too well known to need other than passing reference
-here.
-
-A widespread body of myth has its source in the patches on the moon's
-face. In the Samoan Islands these are said to be a woman, a child, and a
-mallet. A woman was once hammering out paper-cloth, and seeing the moon
-rise, looking like a great bread-fruit, she asked it to come down and let
-her child eat a piece of it. But the moon was very angry at the idea of
-being eaten, and gobbled up the woman, child, and mallet, and there they
-are to this day. The Selish Indians of North-Western America say that the
-little wolf was in love with the toad, and pursued her one moonlight
-night, till, as a last chance, she made a desperate spring on to the face
-of the moon, and there she is still. People in the East see the figure of
-a hare in the patches, and both in Buddhist Jâtakas and Mongolian myth
-that animal is carried by the moon. In Greenland myth the moon was in love
-with his sister, and stole in the dark to caress her. She, wishing to find
-out who her lover was, blackened her hands so that the marks might be left
-on him, which accounts for the spots. The Khasias of the Himâlaya say that
-the moon falls in love every month with his mother-in-law, who, like a
-well-conducted matron, throws ashes in his face. Grimm quotes a mediæval
-myth that the moon is Mary Magdalene, and the spots her tears of
-repentance, whilst in Chaucer's _Testament of Cressida_ the moon is Lady
-Cynthia.--
-
- "On her brest a chorl paintid ful even,
- _Bering a bush of thornis on his bake_,
- Which for his _theft_ might clime no ner the heven."
-
-Comparing these with more familiar myths, we have our own man in the moon,
-who is said to be the culprit found by Moses gathering sticks on the
-Sabbath, although his place of banishment is a popular addition to the
-Scripture narrative. According to the German legend he was a scoffer who
-did the same heinous offence on a Sunday, and was given the alternative of
-being scorched in the sun or frozen in the moon. The Frisians say that he
-stole cabbages, the load of which he bears on his back. He does not appear
-as a member of the criminal classes in China, his function being that of
-celestial matchmaker, who ties together future couples with an invisible
-silken cord which breaks not during life. In Icelandic myth the two
-children familiar to us as Jack and Jill were kidnapped by the moon, and
-there they stand to this day with bucket on pole across their shoulders,
-falling away one after the other as the moon wanes,--a phase described in
-the couplet:--
-
- "Jack fell down and broke his crown,
- And Jill came tumbling after."
-
-Mr. Baring Gould, whose essay on this subject in his _Curious Myths of the
-Middle Ages_ gives a convenient summary of current legends, contends that
-Jack and Jill are the Hjuki and Bil of the _Edda_, and signify the waxing
-and waning of the moon, their bucket indicating the dependence of rainfall
-on her phases--a superstition extant among us yet.
-
-The group of customs observed amongst both barbaric and civilised peoples
-at the changes of the moon, customs which are meaningless except as relics
-of lunar worship, belong to the passage of mythology into religion, of
-personifying into deifying.
-
-(_b._) _The Stars._
-
-In the great body of nature-myth the stars are prominent members. In their
-multitude; their sublime repose in upper calms above the turmoil of the
-elements; their varying brilliancy, "one star differing from another star
-in glory"; their tremulous light; their scattered positions, which lend
-themselves to every vagary of the constellation-maker; their slow
-procession, varied only by sweeping comet and meteor, or falling showers
-of shooting stars; they lead the imagination into gentler ways than do the
-vaster bodies of the most ancient heavens. Nor, although we may compute
-their number, weigh their volume, in a few instances reckon their
-distance, and, capturing the light that has come beating through space for
-unnumbered years, make it reveal the secret of their structure, is the
-imagination less moved by the clear heavens at night, or the feeling of
-awe and reverence blunted before that "mighty sum of things for ever
-speaking."
-
-In barbaric myth the stars are spoken of as young suns, the children of
-the sun and moon, but more often as men who have lived on the earth,
-translated without seeing death. The single stars are individual chiefs or
-heroes; the constellations are groups of men or animals. To the natives of
-Australia the brilliant Jupiter is a chief among the others; and the stars
-in Orion's belt and scabbard are young men dancing a corroboree, the
-Pleiades being girls playing to them. The Kasirs of Bengal say that the
-stars are men who climbed to the top of a tree, and were left in the
-branches by the trunk being cut away. To the Eskimos the stars in Orion
-are seal-hunters who have missed their way home. And in German folk-lore
-they are spoken of as the mowers, because, as Grimm says, "they stand in a
-row like mowers in a meadow." In North American myth two of the bright
-stars are twins who have left a home where they were harshly treated, and
-leapt into the sky, whither their parents followed them and ceaselessly
-chase them. In Greek myth the faintest star of the seven Pleiades is
-Merope, whose light was dimmed because she alone among her sisters married
-a mortal. The New Zealanders say that those stars are seven chiefs who
-fell in battle, and of whom only one eye of each is now visible. In Norse
-myth Odin having slain a giant, plucks out his eyes and flings them up to
-the sky, where they become two stars. In German star-lore the small star
-just above the middle one in the shaft of Charles's Wain, is a waggoner
-who, having given our Saviour a lift, was offered the kingdom of heaven
-for his reward, but who said he would sooner be driving from east to west
-to all eternity, and whose desire was granted--a curious contrast to the
-wandering Jew, cursed to move unresting over the earth until the day of
-judgment, because he refused to let Jesus, weary with the weight of the
-cross, rest for a moment on his doorstep. The Housatonic Indians say that
-the stars in Charles's Wain are men hunting a bear, and that the chase
-lasts from spring to autumn, when the bear is wounded and its dripping
-blood turns the leaves of the trees red. With this may be cited the myth
-that the red clouds at morn and eve are the blood of the slain in battle.
-In the Northern Lights the Greenlanders see the spirits of the departed
-dancing, the brighter the flashes of the Aurora the greater the merriment,
-whilst the Dacotas say of the meteors that they are spirits flying through
-the air.
-
-Of the Milky Way--so called because Hêrê, indignant at the bantling
-Herakles being put to her breast, spilt her milk along the sky (the solar
-mythologers say that the "red cow of evening passes during the night
-across the sky scattering her milk")--the Ottawas say that it was caused
-by a turtle swimming along the bottom of the sky and stirring up the mud.
-According to the Patagonians it is the track along which the departed
-tribesmen hunt ostriches, the clouds being their feathers; in African myth
-it is some wood-ashes long ago thrown up into the sky by a girl, that her
-people might be able to see their way home at night; in Eastern myth it
-is chaff dropped by a thief in his hurried flight.
-
-The idea of a land beyond the sky--be it the happy hunting-ground of the
-Indian, or the Paradise of Islam, or the new Jerusalem of the
-Apocalypse--would not fail to arise, and in both the Milky Way and the
-Rainbow barbaric fancy sees the ladders and bridges whereby the departed
-pass from earth to heaven. So we find in the lower and higher culture
-alike the beautiful conceptions of the _chemin des ames_, the Red man's
-road of the dead to their home in the sun; the ancient Roman path of, or
-to, the gods; the road of the birds, in both Lithuanian and Finnish myth,
-because the winged spirits flit thither to the free and happy land. In
-prosaic contrast to all this, it is curious to find among ourselves the
-Milky Way described as Watling Street! That famous road, which ran from
-Richborough through Canterbury and London to Chester, now gives its name
-to a narrow bustling street of Manchester warehousemen in the City. But
-who the Wætlingas were--whether giants, gods, or men--and why their name
-was transferred from Britain to the sky, we do not know,[7] although the
-fact is plainly enough set down in old writers, foremost among whom is
-Chaucer. In his _House of Fame_[8] he says:--
-
- "Lo, there, quod he, cast up thine eye,
- se yondir, to, the galaxie,
- the whiche men clepe the Milky Way,
- for it is white, and some parfay
- ycallin it han Watlingestrete."
-
-To the savage the rainbow is a living monster, a serpent seeking whom it
-may devour, coming to earth to slake its unquenchable thirst, and preying
-on the unwary. But in more poetic myth, its mighty many-coloured arch
-touching, as it seems to do, the earth itself, is a road to glory. In the
-_Edda_ it is the three-coloured bridge Bifröst, "the quivering track" over
-which the gods walk, and of which the red is fire, so that the
-Frost-giants may not cross it. In Persian myth it is Chinvad, the "bridge
-of the gatherer," flung across the gloomy depths between this world and
-the home of the blessed; in Islam it is El-Sirat, the bridge thin as a
-hair and sharp as a scimitar, stretching from this world to the next;
-among the Greeks it was Iris, the messenger from Zeus to men, charged with
-tidings of war and tempest; to the Finns it was the bow of Tiernes, the
-god of thunder; whilst to the Jew it was the messenger of grace from the
-Eternal, who did set "his bow in the clouds" as the promise that never
-again should the world be destroyed by flood. Such belief in the heavens
-as the field of activities profoundly affecting the fortunes of mankind,
-and in the stars as influencing their destinies, has been persistent in
-the human mind. The delusions of the astrologer are embalmed in language,
-as when, forgetful of a belief shared not only by sober theologians, but
-by Tycho Brahe and Kepler, we speak of "disaster," and of our friends as
-"jovial," "saturnine," or "mercurial." But the illusions of the savage or
-semi-civilised abide as an animating part of many a faith, undisturbed by
-a science which has swept the skies and found no angels there, and whose
-keen analysis separates for ever the ancient belief in a connection
-between the planets and man's fate. For convenience' sake, we retain on
-our celestial maps and globes the men and monsters pictured by barbaric
-fancy in the star-positions and clusters, noting these as interesting
-examples of survival. Yet we are the willing dupes of illusions nebulous
-as these, and, charm he never so wisely, the Time-spirit fails to
-disenchant us.
-
-(_c._) _The Earth and Sky._
-
-If the sun and moon are the parents of the stars, the heavens and the
-earth are the parents of all living things. Of this widely-found myth, one
-of the most striking specimens occurs among the Maoris. From Rangi, the
-heaven, and Papa, the earth, sprang all living things; but earth and sky
-clave together, and darkness rested on them and their children, who
-debated whether they should rend them asunder or slay them. Then
-Tane-mahuta, father of forests, reasoned that it was better to rend them,
-so that the heaven might become a stranger, and the earth remain as their
-nursing-mother. One after another they strove to do this, but in vain,
-until Tane-mahuta, with giant strength and strain, pressed down the earth
-and thrust upward the heaven. But one of his brothers, father of wind and
-storm, who had not agreed to this parting of his parents, followed Rangi
-into the sky, and thence sent forth his progeny, "the mighty winds, the
-fierce squalls, the clouds dense and dark, wildly drifting, wildly
-hunting," himself rushing on his foe, snapping the huge trees that barred
-his path, and strewing their trunks and branches on the ground, while the
-sea was lashed into high-crested waves, and all the creatures therein
-affrighted. The fish darted hither and thither, but the reptiles fled into
-the forests, causing quarrel between Tangaroa, the ocean-god, and
-Tane-mahuta for giving them shelter. So the brothers fought, the ocean-god
-wrecking the canoes and sweeping houses and trees beneath the waters, and
-had not Papa hidden the gods of the tilled food and the wild within her
-bosom, they would have perished. Wars of revenge followed quickly one upon
-the other; the storm-god's anger was not soon appeased; so that the
-devastation of the earth was well-nigh complete. But, at last, light arose
-and quiet ensued, and the dry land appeared. Rangi and Papa, parted for
-ever, quarrelled no more, but helped the one the other, and "man stood
-erect and unbroken on his mother Earth."
-
-The myth of Cronus will at once occur to the reader. Heaven (Uranus) and
-Earth (Gaea) were husband and wife, and their many children all hated
-their father for concealing them between the hollows of their mother's
-breasts, so that they were shut out from light. Gaea sided with them and
-provided Cronus, the youngest, with an iron sickle wherewith he unmanned
-Uranus and separated him from Gaea. Cronus married his sister Rhea, and,
-at the advice of his parents, swallowed his children one by one as they
-were born, lest they grew up and usurped his place among the Immortals.
-But when Zeus was born, and Cronus asked for the child, Rhea deceived him
-by giving him a stone wrapped in swaddling bands. When Zeus grew up he
-gave his father an emetic, whereupon the children were all disgorged, and
-with them the stone, which became a sacred object at Delphi. There is no
-such being as Cronus in Sanskrit, but what may be called the Vedic variant
-of the myth is that in which Dyaus (Heaven) and Prithivî (Earth), were
-once joined and subsequently separated.
-
-In China we find a legend of "a person called Puangku, who is said to have
-separated the heaven and the earth, they formerly being pressed down close
-together," and, as one might expect, such a transparent nature-myth of the
-rending asunder of the world and sky is widespread.
-
-The solar mythologists were perplexed at its presence among the refined
-and cultured Greeks. "How can we imagine that a few generations before the
-time of Solon the highest notions of the Godhead among the Greeks were
-adequately expressed by the story of Uranus maimed by Cronus, of Cronus
-eating his own children, swallowing a stone, and vomiting out alive his
-own progeny. Among the lowest tribes of Africa and America we hardly find
-anything more hideous and revolting." So the moral character of the Greeks
-and the exclusive comparative method of Professor Max Müller and his
-adherents were vindicated by the discovery that as Cronus means time, the
-apparently repulsive myth simply means that time swallows up the days
-which spring from it; "and," remarks Sir G. W. Cox in his _Manual of
-Mythology_, "the old phrase meant simply this and nothing more, although
-before the people came to Greece they had forgotten its meaning."[9]
-Cronus is a more than usually troublesome _crux_ to the etymologists.
-
-Here, as elsewhere, "the letter killeth, but the spirit giveth life;" and
-we may turn to the fundamental idea resident in the myth. The savage, in
-the presence of recurring light and darkness, of the clouds lifting and
-dispersing before the sunrise, has his legend of a time when this was not
-so, but when heaven and earth were closed-in one upon the other till some
-hero thrust them apart. And, to his rude intelligence, the conception of
-night as a devouring monster, might easily "start the notion of other
-swallowing and disgorging beings." In brief, to quote Mr. Andrew Lang,
-"just as the New Zealander had conceived of heaven and earth as at one
-time united, to the prejudice of their children, so the ancestors of the
-Greeks had believed in an ancient union of heaven and earth. Both by
-Greeks and Maoris, heaven and earth were thought of as living persons,
-with human parts and passions. Their union was prejudicial to their
-children, and so the children violently separated their parents."[10]
-
-The beliefs of the ancient Finns, as described in the _Kalevala_, in the
-world as a divided egg, of which the white is the ocean, the yolk the sun,
-the arched shell the sky, and the darker portions the clouds; and of the
-Polynesians that the universe is the hollow of a vast cocoa-nut shell, at
-the tapering bottom of which is the root of all things, are to us so
-grotesque that it is not easy to regard them as explanations seriously
-invented by the human mind. Yet these, together with the notions of the
-two halves of the shell of Brahma's egg, and of the two calabashes which
-form the heaven and the earth in African myth, find their correspondences
-in the widespread conception of the over-arching firmament as a hard and
-solid thing,[11] with holes (or windows[12]) to let the rain through, with
-gates through which angels descend,[13] or through which prophets peer
-into celestial mysteries;[14] a firmament outside which other people live,
-as instanced by the Polynesian term for strangers, "papalangi," or
-"heaven-bursters." In Esthonian myth Ilmarine hammers steel into a vault
-which he strained like a tent over the earth, nailing thereon the silver
-stars and moon, and suspending the sun from the roof of the tent with
-machinery to lift it up and let it down. The like achievement is recorded
-of Ilmarinen in the _Kalevala_, the cosmogony of which corresponds to that
-of the Esthonian _Kalevipöeg_.
-
-These are the less refined forms of myths which have held their ground
-from pre-scientific times till now, and the rude analogies of which are
-justified by the appearances of things as presented by the senses. Man's
-intellectual history is the history of his escape from the illusions of
-the senses, it is the slow and often tardily accepted discovery that
-nature is quite other than that which it seems to be. And this variance
-between appearances and realities remained hidden until the intellect
-challenged the report about phenomena which the sense-perceptions brought.
-For in the ages when feeling was dominant, and the judgment scarce
-awakened, the simple explanations in venerable legends sung by bard or
-told by aged crone--legends to which age had given sanctity which finally
-placed them among the world's sacred literatures--were received without
-doubt or question. But, as belief in causality spread, men were not
-content to rest in the naïve explanations of an uncritical age. What man
-had guessed about nature gave place to what nature had to say about
-herself, and with the classifying of experience science had its birth.
-
-Meanwhile, until this quite recent stage in man's progress was reached,
-the senses told their blundering tale of an earth flat and fixed, with
-sun, moon, and stars as its ministering servants, while gods or beasts
-upbore it, and mighty pillars supported the massive firmament In Hindu
-myth the tortoise which upholds the earth rests upon an elephant, whose
-legs _reach all the way down_! In Bogotà the culture-god Bochica punishes
-a lesser and offending deity by compelling him to sustain the part of
-Atlas, and it is in shifting his burden from shoulder to shoulder that
-earthquakes are caused. The natives of Celebes say that these are due to
-the world-supporting Hog as he rubs himself against a tree; the
-Thascaltecs that they occur when the deities who hold up the world relieve
-one another; the Japanese think that they are caused by huge dragons
-wriggling underground, an idea probably confirmed by the discovery of
-monster fossil bones. In Algonquin myth the mighty man Earthquake "can
-pass along under the ground, and make all things shake and tremble by his
-power."
-
-As the myths about earth-bearers prevail in the regions of earthquakes, so
-do those about subterranean beings in the neighbourhood of volcanoes. The
-superstitions which mountainous countries especially foster are
-intensified when the mountains themselves cast forth their awful and
-devastating progeny, "red ruin" and the other children born of them. Man
-in his dread, "caring in no wise for the external world, except as it
-influenced his own destiny; honouring the lightning because it could
-strike him, the sea because it could drown him,"[15] could do naught else
-than people them with maleficent beings, and conceive of their
-sulphur-exhaling mouths as the jaws of a bottomless pit.
-
-(_d._) _Storm and Lightning, etc._
-
-If in freeing ourselves from the tyranny of the "solar" theory we shackled
-ourselves with some other, we should certainly prefer that which is known
-as the "meteorological," and which, in the person of Kuhn and other
-supporters, finds a more rational and persistent source of myth in
-phenomena which are fitful and startling, such as hurricane and tempest,
-earthquake and volcanic outburst. Sunrises and sunsets happen with a
-regularity which failed to excite any strong emotion or stimulate
-curiosity, and the remotest ancestor of the primitive Aryan soon shook off
-the habit--if, indeed, he ever acquired it--of going to bed in fear and
-trembling lest the sun should not come back again. Nature, in her softer
-aspects and her gracious bounties, in the spring-time with its promise,
-the summer with its glory, the autumn with its gifts, has moved the heart
-of man to song and festival and procession; as, by contrast, the frosts
-that nipped the early buds and the fierce heat that withered the
-approaching harvest gave occasion for plaintive ditty and sombre ceremony.
-It is in the fierce play and passionate outbursts of the elements, in the
-storm, the lightning, and the thunder, that the feelings are aroused and
-that the terror-stricken fancy sees the strife of wrathful deities, or
-depicts their dire work amongst men. Hence, all the world over, the
-storm-god and the wind-god have played a mighty part.
-
-To the savage, the wind, blowing as it listeth, its whence and whither
-unknown, itself invisible, yet the sweep and force of its power manifest
-and felt, must have ranked amongst the most striking phenomena. And, as
-will be seen hereafter, the correspondences between wind and breath, and
-the connection between breath and life, added their quota of mystery in
-man's effort to account for the impalpable element. Of this
-personification of the elements the following Ojibway folk-tale, cited by
-Dorman, gives poetic illustration:--"There were spirits from all parts of
-the country. Some came with crashing steps and roaring voice, who directed
-the whirlwinds which were in the habit of raging about the neighbouring
-country. Then glided in gently a sweet little spirit, which blew the
-summer gale. Then came in the old sand-spirit, who blew the sand-squalls
-in the sand-buttes toward the west. He was a great speech-maker, and shook
-the lodge with his deep-throated voice, as he addressed the spirits of the
-cataracts and waterfalls, and those of the islands who wore beautiful
-green blankets."
-
-In the legends of the Quiches, the mysterious creative power is Hurakan
-(whence _hurricane_), among the Choctaws the original word for Deity is
-Hushtoli, the storm-wind, and in Peru to kiss the air was the commonest
-and simplest sign of adoration of the collective divinities. The
-Guayacuans of South America, when a storm arose and there was much thunder
-or wind, all went out in troops, as it were to battle, shaking their clubs
-in the air, shooting flights of arrows in that direction whence the storm
-came.[16]
-
-The Araucanians thought that gales and thunderstorms were the battles
-fought between the spirits of the dead and their foes.
-
-Turning to the literatures of higher races, we find in the prose _Edda_,
-when Gangler asks whence comes the wind, that Ha answers him: "Thou must
-know that at the northernmost point in the heavens sits a giant,
-
- "In the guise of an eagle;
- And the winds, it is said,
- Rush down on the earth
- From his outspreading pinions."
-
-In Finnish myth the north wind Pulmri, father of the frost, is sometimes
-imaged as an eagle.
-
-"The Indians believe in a great bird called by them _Wochowsen_ or
-_Wuchowsen_, meaning Wind-Blow or the Wind-Blower, who lives far to the
-north, and sits upon a great rock at the end of the sky. And it is because
-whenever he moves his wings the wind blows they of old times called him
-that." And in another Algonquin myth: "Ga-oh is the Spirit of the Winds.
-He moves the winds, but he is chained to a rock. The winds trouble him,
-and he tries very hard to get free. When he struggles the winds are
-forced away from him, and they blow upon the earth. Sometimes he suffers
-terrible pain, and then his struggles are violent. This makes the winds
-wild, and they do damage on the earth. Then he feels better and goes to
-sleep, and the winds become quiet also."[17]
-
-In the _Veda_ the Maruts or Storm-gods, to whom many of the hymns are
-addressed, "make the rocks to tremble and tear asunder the kings of the
-forest," like Hermes in his violence and like Boreas in his rage. Whether
-or no they become in Scandinavian legend the grim and fearful Ogres
-swiftly sailing in their cloud-ships, we may see in them the "crushers"
-and "grinders,"[18] as their name imports, the types of northern deities
-like Odin, long degraded into the Wild Huntsman and his phantom crew,
-whose uncouth yells the peasant hears in the midnight air.[19] Among the
-Aztecs Cuculkan, the bird-serpent, was a personification of the wind,
-especially of the east wind, as bringer of the rain. It was at one of his
-shrines, to which pilgrimages were made from great distances, that the
-Spaniards first saw to their surprise a cross surmounting the temple of
-this god of the wind, whence arose a legend that the Apostle Thomas had
-evangelised America. But, in fact, the pagan cross of Central America and
-Mexico was the symbol of the four cardinal points.
-
-In his valuable book on the _Myths of the Red Race_ Dr. Brinton has
-brought together a mass of evidence in support of a theory that the
-sanctity in which the number four is held by the American races is due to
-the adoration of the cardinal points, which are identified with the four
-winds, who in hero-myths are the four ancestors of the human race. The
-illustrations with which the argument is supported are numerous and
-valuable, but the argument itself is made to rest too strongly on an
-assumed primitive symbolism, whereas it suffices to show how the early
-notion of the flat world, as also square, would lead to the myth of the
-four winds blowing from the four corners, a myth often illustrated in
-ancient maps with an angel at each corner from whose mouth the wind
-issues. The official title of the Incas was "Lord of the four quarters of
-the earth," and the number appears in all sorts of combinations, but the
-theory may be pushed to extremes in compelling every fact to square with
-it.[20] As the illustrations given above show, we are some steps nearer to
-the primitive myth when we find the wind conceived of as a mighty bird,
-which indeed is in both old and new world mythology a common symbol of
-thunder and lightning also. On this matter Dr. Brinton's remarks bear
-quoting.
-
- Like the wind the bird sweeps through the aërial spaces, sings in the
- forests, and rustles on its course; like the cloud it floats in
- mid-air, and casts its shadow on the earth; like the lightning it
- darts from heaven to earth to strike its unsuspecting prey. These
- tropes were truths to savage nations, and led on by that law of
- language which forced them to conceive everything as animate or
- inanimate, itself the product of a deeper law of thought which urges
- us to ascribe life to whatever has motion, they found no animal so
- appropriate for their purpose here as the bird. Therefore the
- Algonquins say that birds always make the winds, that they create the
- waterspouts, and that the clouds are the spreading and agitation of
- their wings; the Navajos that at each cardinal point stands a white
- swan, who is the spirit of the blasts; so also the Dakotas frequently
- explain the thunder as the sound of the cloud-bird flapping his wings;
- the lightning as the fire that flashes from his tracks, like the
- sparks which the buffalo scatters when he scours over a stony plain.
-
-Estimates differ much as to the size of the Thunder-Bird. In one tradition
-an Indian found its nest, and secured a feather which was above two
-hundred feet long, while in another tradition the bird is said to be no
-bigger than one's little finger. But among the Western Indians he is an
-immense eagle. "When this aërial monster flaps his wings loud peals of
-thunder roll over the prairie; when he winks his eye it lightens; when he
-wags his tail the waters of the lake which he carries on his back overflow
-and produce rain." Mixcoatl, the Mexican Cloud-Serpent, as well as Jove,
-carries his bundle of arrows or thunderbolts, which in the hand of Thor
-are represented by his mighty club or hammer. The old and universal belief
-that stones were hurled by the Thunder-God is not so far-fetched as we, in
-our pride of science, might think, for the flints which are mistaken for
-thunderbolts, and which become objects of adoration as well as charms,
-produce a flash when struck by the lightning. In the lightning flash man
-would see the descent of fire from heaven for his needs. That he should
-regard it, like water, as a living creature, with power to hurt or help
-him, is in keeping with attribution of life to all that moved. Its
-apparent connection with the great source of heat would foster the feeling
-which expressed itself in fire-worship, with its curious survivals to
-modern times. No element was more calculated to excite awe in its seeming
-unrelation to the objects which produced it. Once secured, to guard it
-from extinction or theft was a serious duty, and everything from which it
-issued, trees as its hiding-place, since it came from the wood when
-rubbed, stones also, since sparks shot from them when struck, were held
-sacred. In the manifold myths about its origin one feature is common, that
-its seed was stolen, the chief agents (probably as the messengers between
-earth and sky) being birds, or men assuming the form of birds. The Sioux
-Indians say that their first ancestor procured his fire from the sparks
-which a panther struck from the rocks as he bounded up a hill. But of
-examples from the lower culture, forerunners of the Zeus-defying
-Prometheus, Mr. Gill's _Myths of the South Pacific_ supplies one which may
-be taken as a sample of the rest. Maui, a famous South Sea hero, finding
-some cooked food in a basket brought by Buataranga from the nether world,
-and relishing it more than raw food, determines to steal the fire, and
-flying to the Buataranga's realm frightens the fire-god by threats and
-blows into revealing the secret. Then wresting the fire-sticks from him he
-sets the under-world in flames, and returns with his prize to the
-upper-world; thenceforth "all the dwellers there used fire-sticks, and
-enjoyed the luxuries of light and of cooked food."
-
-(_e._) _Light and Darkness._
-
-As in the conflict raging in the sky during gale or tempest, when the
-light and the darkness alternately prevail, the barbaric mind sees war
-waged between the heroes of the spirit-land who have carried their
-unsettled blood feuds thither, so in many myths the lightning is no
-comrade of the thunder, but its foe, the battle of bird with serpent. The
-resemblance of the lightning flash to the sharp, sudden, zigzag movements
-of the serpent, a creature so mysterious to barbaric man in its unlikeness
-to the beasts of the field, accounts for a myth the influence of which as
-a terrorising agent on human conduct is in course of rapid decay. Its
-importance in the history of belief in the supernatural is too
-far-reaching to be passed over, and in tracing its course it is necessary
-to show its connection with the group of storm-myths and sun-myths of the
-Aryan race in the battles between Indra and Vritra, Ormuzd and Ahriman,
-Thor and Midgard, Hercules and Cacus, Apollo and Pythôn, and St. George
-and the Dragon.
-
-All the Aryan nations have among their legends, often exalted into epic
-themes, the story of a battle between a hero and a monster. In each case
-the hero conquers, and releases treasures, or in some way renders succour
-to man, through his victory. In Hindu myth this battle is fought between
-Indra and Vritra.
-
-Indra, one of the Vedic gods, comes, according to Professor Max Müller,
-from the same root as the Sanskrit _indu_, drop, sap, but the etymology is
-doubtful. What is not doubtful is that he is the god of the bright sky,
-and although, like the other gods invoked in the hymns of the _Rig-Veda_,
-a departmental or tribal deity, he is a sort of _primus inter pares_, of
-whose many titles, Vritrahan or "Vritra-slayer" is the pre-eminent one.
-The benefits showered by him upon mortals caused the attribution of moral
-qualities to him, and he was adored as "lord of the virtues," while the
-juice of the sacred soma plant was offered in his honour, for which reason
-he is also called Somapâ or "soma-drinker." It is his struggle with Vritra
-which is a constant theme of the Vedic hymns, the burden of which remind
-us of the praises offered in the Psalms to Yahweh as a man of war, as
-mighty in battle. "The gods do not reach thee, nor men, thou overcomest
-all creatures in strength.... Thou thunderer, hast shattered with thy bolt
-the broad and massive cloud into fragments, and has sent down the waters
-that were confined in it to flow at will; verily thou alone possessest all
-power." The primitive physical meaning of the myth is clear. Indra is the
-sun-god, armed with spears and arrows, for such did the solar rays
-sometimes appear to barbaric fancy. The rain-clouds are imprisoned in
-dungeons or caverns by Vritra, the "enveloper," the thief, serpent, wolf,
-wild boar, as he is severally styled in the _Rig-Veda_. Indra attacks him,
-hurls his darts at him, they pierce the cloud-caverns, the waters are
-released, and drop upon the earth as rain.
-
-This explanation, which has many parallels in savage myth, is
-self-consistent as fitting into crude philosophy of personal life and
-volition in sun and cloud, and is fraught with deep truth of meaning in
-regions like the Punjaub, where drought brought famine in its train.
-
-The Aryans were a pastoral people, their wealth being in flocks and
-herds.[21] The cow yielded milk for the household; her dung fertilised the
-soil; her young multiplied the wealth of the family at an ever-increasing
-rate, and she naturally became the symbol of fruitfulness and prosperity,
-ultimately an object of veneration; while, for the functions which the
-bull performed, he was the type of strength. The Aryan's enemy was he who
-stole or injured the cattle; the Aryan's friend was he who saved them from
-the robber's clutch.
-
-Intellectually, the Aryan tribes were, speaking broadly, in the mythopoeic
-stage, and the personification of phenomena was rife among them. Their
-barbaric fancy, as kindred myths all the world over testify, would find
-ample play in the fleeting and varied scenery of the cloud-flecked
-heavens, suggestive, as this would be, of bodies celestial and bodies
-terrestrial. To these children of the plain the heavens were a vast, wide
-expanse, over which roamed supra-mundane beasts, the two most prominent
-figures in their mythical zoology being the cow and the bull. The sun,
-giver of blessed light, was the bull of majesty and strength; the white
-clouds were cows, from whose swelling udders dropped the milk of
-heaven--the blessed rain. But there were dark clouds also, clouds of night
-and clouds of storm, and within these lurked the monster-robber; into them
-he lured the herds, and withheld both light and rain from the children of
-men. To the sun-god, therefore, who smote the thief-dragon, Vritra, with
-his shaft, and set free the imprisoned cows, went up the shout of praise,
-the song of gratitude. This myth survives in many legends of the Aryan
-race, and their family likeness is unmistakable. In its Latin guise it
-appears as Hercules[22] and Cacus, although the preciseness of detail
-narrated by Virgil, Livy, and other writers, has given it quasi-historical
-rank. Hercules, after his victory over Geryon, stops to rest by the Tiber,
-and while he is sleeping the three-headed monster, Cacus, steals some of
-his cattle, dragging them by their tails into his cavern in Mons
-Avertinus. Their bellowing awakens Hercules, who attacks the cavern, from
-the mouth of which Cacus vomits flames, and roars as in thunder. But the
-hero slays him and frees the cattle, a victory which the earlier Romans
-celebrated with solemn rites at the Ara Maxima. In Greek myth the most
-familiar examples are the struggles between the sun-god, Apollo, and the
-storm-dragon, Pythôn, and the deliverance of the Princess Andromeda by
-Perseus from the sea-monster sent by Poseidôn to ravage the land. In the
-northern group we have the battle of Siegfried with the Niflungs, or
-Niblungs, and of Sigurd with the dragon Fafnir, who guards golden
-treasures; while, in the _Edda_, Thor goes fishing with the giant Hymir,
-and catches the demon Loki, whose foul brood are Hell, the wolf Fenri, and
-the Earth-girdling Serpent. Amongst ourselves, Beowulf, hero of the poem
-of that name, attacks the dragon or fire-drake Grendel, who, with his
-troll-mother, haunts a gloomy marsh-land. Thence he stole forth at night
-to seize sleeping champions, taking them to his dwelling-place to devour
-them, and this in such numbers that scarce a man was left. One pale night,
-Beowulf awaited the coming of the monster, and, gripping him tightly,
-snapped his limbs asunder, so that he died.
-
-These brief illustrations would hardly be complete without some reference
-to our national saint. Opinions differ as to his merits, Gibbon
-stigmatising him as a fraudulent army contractor,[23] while the researches
-of M. Ganneau seek to establish his relation to the Egyptian Horus and
-Typhon. Be this as it may, the stirring old legend tells how George of
-Cappadocia delivered the city of Silene from a dragon dwelling in a lake
-hard by. Nothing that the people could give him satisfied his insatiate
-maw, and in their despair they cast lots who among their dearest ones
-should be flung to the dread beast. The lot fell to the king's daughter,
-and she went unflinchingly, like Jephthah's daughter, to her fate. But on
-the road the hero learns her sad errand, and bidding her fear not, he,
-making sign of the cross, brandishes his lance, attacks and transfixes the
-dragon, and leading him into Silene, beheads him in sight of all the
-people, who, with their king, are baptized to the glory of Him who made
-St. George the victor.[24]
-
-(_f._) _The Devil._
-
-While, however, the myth of Indra and Vritra has in its western variants
-remained for the most part a battle between heroes and dragons, the moral
-element rarely obscuring the physical features, it gave rise among the
-Iranians or ancient Persians to a definite theology, the strange fortunes
-of which have, as remarked above, profoundly affected Christendom.
-
-Although in the Vedic hymns the features of the primitive nature-myth
-reappear again and again, Indra himself boasting, "I slew Vritra, O
-Maruts, with might, having grown strong with my own vigour; I who hold the
-thunderbolt in my arms, I have made these all-brilliant waters to flow
-freely for man," we find an approach in them to some conception of that
-spiritual conflict of which the physical conflict was so complete a
-symbol. Indra as victor, is an object of adoration and invested with
-purity and goodness; Vritra, as the enemy of men, is an object of dread,
-and invested with malice and evil.
-
-But while in the Zend-Avesta, the Scriptures of the old Iranian religion,
-the struggle between Thraetaôna and the three-headed serpent Azhi-Dahâka
-(in which names are recognisable the Traitana and Ahi of the _Veda_ and
-the Feridun and Zohak of Persian epic) is narrated, the moral idea is
-dominant throughout. The theme is not the attack of the sun-god to recover
-stolen milch cows from the dragon's cave, but the battle between Ormuzd,
-the Spirit of Light, and Ahriman, the Spirit of Darkness. The one seeks to
-mar the earth which the other has made. Into the fair paradise,
-Airayana-Vaêjô, "a delightful spot," as the Avesta calls it, "with good
-waters and trees," and into other smiling lands which Ormuzd has blessed,
-Ahriman sends "a mighty serpent ... strong, deadly frost ... buzzing
-insects, and poisonous plants ... toil and poverty," and, worse than all,
-"the curse of unbelief."[25] Between these two spiritual powers and their
-armies of good and bad angels the battle rages for supremacy in the
-universe, for possession of the citadel of Mansoul.
-
-Early in the history of the Asiatic Aryan tribes there had arisen a
-quarrel between the Brahmanic and Iranian divisions. The latter had
-become a quiet-loving, agricultural people, while the former remained
-marauding nomads, attacking and harassing their neighbours. In their
-plundering inroads they invoked the aid of spells and sacrifices, offering
-the sacred soma-juice to their gods, and nerving themselves for the fray
-by deep draughts of the intoxicating stuff. Not only they, but their gods
-as well, thereby became objects of hatred to the peaceful Iranians, who
-foreswore all worship of freebooter's deities, and transformed these
-_devas_ of the old religion into demons. That religion, as common to the
-Indo-European race, was polytheistic, a worship of deities each ruling
-over some department of nature, but a worship exalting now one, now
-another god, be it Indra, or Varuna, or Agni, according to the indications
-of the deity's supremacy, or according to the mood of the worshipper. As
-remarked by Jacob Grimm, "the idea of the devil is foreign to all
-primitive religions," obviously because in all primitive thought evil and
-good are alike regarded as the work of deities. In the Old Testament,
-Yahweh is spoken of as the author of both;[26] the angels, whether charged
-with weal or woe, are his messengers. In the _Iliad_ Zeus dispenses
-both:--
-
- "Two urns by Jove's high throne have ever stood,
- The source of evil one, the other good;
- From thence the cup of mortal man he fills,
- Blessings to these, to those distribute ills,
- To most, he mingles both,"[27]
-
-and 'tis a far cry from this to the loftier conception of Euripides: "If
-the gods do evil, then are they no gods." So there was a monotheistic--or,
-as Professor Max Müller terms it, a henotheistic--element in the Vedic
-religion which in the Iranian religion, and this mainly through the
-teaching of the great thinker and reformer Zarathushtra (Zoroaster), was
-largely diffused. In his endeavour to solve the old problem of reconciling
-sin and misery with omnipotent goodness, he supposes "two primeval
-causes," one of which produced the "reality," or good mind; the other the
-"non-reality," or evil mind. Behind these was developed belief in a
-philosophical abstraction, "uncreate time," of which each was the product;
-but such doctrines were too subtle for the popular grasp, and, wrapped in
-the old mythological garb, they appeared in concrete form as dualism.
-Vritra survived in Ahriman, who, like him, is represented as a serpent;
-and in Ormuzd we have the phonetic descendant of Ahura-mazda.
-
-Now, it was with this dualism, this transformed survival of the sun and
-cloud myth, that the Jews came into association during their memorable
-exile in Babylon. Prior to that time their theology, as hinted above, had
-no devil in it. But in that belief in spirits which they held in common
-with all semi-civilised races, as a heritage from barbarous ancestors,
-there were the elements out of which such a personality might be readily
-evolved. Their _satan_, or "accuser," as that word means, is no prince of
-the demons, like the Beelzebul of later times; no dragon or old serpent,
-as of the Apocalypse, defying Omnipotence and deceiving the whole world;
-but a kind of detective who, by direction of Yahweh, has his eye on
-suspects, and who is sent to test their fidelity. In all his missions he
-acts as the intelligent and loyal servant of Yahweh. But although
-therefore not regarded as bad himself, the character and functions with
-which he was credited made easy the transition from such theories about
-him to theories of him as inherently evil, as the enemy of goodness, and,
-therefore, of God. He who, like Vritra, was an object of dread, came to be
-regarded as the incarnation of evil, the author and abettor of things
-harmful to man. Persian dualism gave concrete form to this conception, and
-from the time of the Exile we find Satan as the Jewish Ahriman, the
-antagonist of God. Not he alone, for "the angels that kept not their first
-estate" were the ministers of his evil designs, creatures so numerous that
-every one has 10,000 at his right hand and 1000 at his left hand, and
-because they rule chiefly at night no man should greet another lest he
-salute a demon. They haunt lonely spots, often assume the shape of beasts,
-and it is their presence in the bodies of men and women which is the cause
-of madness and other diseases.[28]
-
-From the period when the Apocryphal books, especially those having traces
-of Persian influence, were written,[29] this doctrine of an arch-fiend
-with his army of demons received increasing impetus. It passed on without
-check into the Christian religion, and wherever this spread the heathen
-gods, like the _devas_ of Brahmanism among the Iranians, were degraded
-into demons, and swelled the vast crowd of evil spirits let loose to
-torment and ruin mankind.
-
-This doctrine of demonology, it should be remembered, was but the
-elaborated form of ancestral belief in spirits referred to above. In the
-Christian system it was associated with that belief in magic which has its
-roots in fetishism, and from the two arose belief in witchcraft. The
-universal belief in demons in early and mediæval times supplied an easy
-explanation of disasters and diseases; the sorcerers and charm-workers,
-the wizards and enchanters, had passed into the service of the devil. For
-power to work their spite and malevolence they had bartered their souls to
-him, and sealed the bargain with their blood. It was enough for the
-ignorant and frightened sufferers to accuse some poor, misshapen,
-squinting old woman of casting on them the evil eye, or of appearing in
-the form of a cat, to secure her trial by torture and her condemnation to
-an unpitied death. The spread of popular terror led to the issue of Papal
-bulls and to the passing of statutes in England and in other countries
-against witchcraft, and it was not until late in the eighteenth century
-that the laws against that imaginary crime were repealed.
-
-There is no sadder chapter in the annals of this tearful world than this
-ghastly story of witch-finding and witch-burning. Sprenger computes that
-during the Christian epoch no less than _nine millions_ of persons, mostly
-women of the poorer classes, were burned; victims of the survival into
-relatively civilised times of an illusion which had its source in
-primitive thought. It was an illusion which had the authority of Scripture
-on its side;[30] the Church had no hesitation concerning it; such men as
-Luther, Sir Thomas Browne, and Wesley never doubted it; the evidence of
-the bewitched was supported by honest witnesses; and judges disposed to
-mercy and humanity had no qualms in passing the dread sentence of the law
-on the condemned.[31]
-
-And although it exists not to-day, save in by-places where gross darkness
-lurks, it was not destroyed by argument, by disproof, by direct assault,
-but only through the quiet growth and diffusion of the scientific spirit,
-before which it has dispersed. It could not live in an atmosphere thus
-purified, an atmosphere charged with belief in unchanging causation and in
-a definite order unbroken by caprice or fitfulness, whether in the sweep
-of a planet or the pulsations of a human heart.
-
-Of course the antecedents of the arch-fiend himself could not fail to be
-the subject of curious inquiry in the time when his existence was no
-matter of doubt. The old theologians scraped together enough material
-about him from the sacred books of the Jews and Christians to construct an
-elaborate biography of him; but in this they would seem to have explained
-too much in certain directions and not enough in others, thus provoking a
-reaction which ultimately discredited their painful research. Their
-genealogy of him was carried farther back than they intended or desired,
-for the popular notions credited him with both a mother and grandmother.
-Their theory of his fall from heaven gave rise to the droll conception of
-his lameness and to the legends of which the "devil on two sticks" is a
-type. Their infusion of foreign element into his nature aided his
-pictorial presentment in motley form and garb, as seen in the old
-miracle-plays. To Vedic descriptions of Vritra's darkness may perchance be
-traced his murkiness and blackness; to Greek satyr and German
-forest-sprite his goat-like body, his horns, his cloven hoofs, his tail;
-to Thor his red beard; to dwarfs and goblins his red cloak and nodding
-plume; to theories of transformation of men and spirits into animals his
-manifold metamorphoses, as black cat, wolf, hellhound, and the like.
-
-But his description was his doom; it was by a natural sequence that the
-legends of mediæval times present him, not, with the Scotch theologians,
-as a scholar and a swindler, disguising himself as a parson, but as
-gullible and stupid, as over-reaching himself and as befooled by mortals.
-And, like the Trolls of Scandinavian folk-lore who burst at sunrise, it
-needed only the full light thrown upon his origin and development by the
-researches of comparative mythologists to dissipate this creation of man's
-fears and fancies into the vaporous atmosphere where he had his birth.
-
-
-§ IV.
-
-THE SOLAR THEORY OF MYTH.
-
-The cogency of the evidence concerning the development of belief in Satan
-out of light-and-darkness myths is generally admitted, but it is of a kind
-that must not be pushed too far. For the phases of Nature are manifold;
-manifold also is the life of man; and we must not lend a too willing ear
-to theories which refer the crude explanations of an unscientific age,
-when the whole universe is Wonderland, to one source. _Cave hominem unius
-libri_, says the adage, and we may apply it, not only to the man of one
-book, but also to the man of one idea, in whom the sense of proportion is
-lacking, and who sees only that for which he looks. Here such caution is
-introduced as needful of exercise against the comparative mythologists
-who, not content with showing--as abundant evidence warrants--that myth
-has its germs in the investment of the powers of nature with personal life
-and consciousness, contend that the great epics of our own and kindred
-races are, from their broadest features to minutest detail, but
-nature-myths obscured and transformed.
-
-Certain scholars, notably Professor Max Müller, Sir G. W. Cox, and
-Professor de Gubernatis, as interpreters of the myths of the Indo-European
-peoples, and Dr. Goldziher, as an interpreter of Hebrew myth and cognate
-forms, maintain that the names given in the mythopoeic age to the sun, the
-moon, and the changing scenery of the heaven as the fleeting forms and
-myriad shades passed over its face, lost their original signification
-wholly or partially, and came to be regarded as the names of veritable
-deities and men, whose actions and adventures are the disguised
-descriptions of the sweep of the thunder-charged clouds and of the victory
-of the hero-god over their light-engulfing forces. But it is better to
-state the theory in the words of its exponents, and for that purpose a
-couple of extracts from Sir George Cox's _Mythology of the Aryan Nations_
-will suffice.
-
- In the spontaneous utterances of thoughts awakened by outward
- phenomena, we have the source of myths which must be regarded as
- _primary_. But it is obvious that such myths would be produced only so
- long as the words employed were used in their original meaning. If
- once the meaning of the word were either in part or wholly forgotten,
- the creation of a new personality under this name would become
- inevitable, and the change would be rendered both more certain and
- more rapid by the very wealth of words which were lavished on the
- sights and objects which most impressed their imagination. A thousand
- phrases would be used to describe the action of a beneficent or
- consuming sun, of the gentle or awful night, of the playful or furious
- wind; and every word or phrase become the germ of a new story as soon
- as the mind lost its hold on the original force of the name. Thus, in
- the polyonymy (by which term Sir George Cox means the giving of
- several names to one object), which was the result of the earliest
- form of human thought, we have the germ of the great epics of later
- times, and of the countless legends which make up the rich stores of
- mythical tradition ... and the legends so framed constitute the class
- of _secondary_ myths (p. 42).
-
- Henceforth the words which had denoted the sun and moon would denote
- not merely living things but living persons.... Every word would
- become an attribute, and all ideas, once grouped round a single
- object, would branch off into distinct personifications. The sun had
- been the lord of light, the driver of the chariot of the day; he had
- toiled and laboured for the sons of men, and sunk down to rest, after
- a hard battle, in the evening. But now the lord of light would be
- Phoibos Apollôn, while Helios would remain enthroned in his fiery
- chariot, and his toils and labours and death-struggles would be
- transferred to Heraklês. The violet clouds which greet his rising and
- his setting would now be represented by herds of cows which feed in
- earthly pastures. There would be other expressions which would still
- remain as floating phrases, not attached to any definite deities.
- These would gradually be converted into incidents in the life of
- heroes, and be woven at length into systematic variations. Finally,
- these gods and heroes, and the incidents of their mythical career,
- would receive each "a local habitation and a name." These would remain
- as genuine history when the origin and meaning of the words had been
- either wholly or in part forgotten (p. 51).
-
-Such is the "solar myth" theory. "We can hardly," as Mr. Matthew Arnold
-says, "now look up at the sun without having the sensations of a moth,"
-and if occasion has not been given to the adversary to blaspheme, he has
-been supplied with ample material for banter and ridicule. Some of the
-happiest illustrations of this are made by Mr. Foster in his amusing and
-really informing essay on "Nature Myths in Nursery Rhymes," reprinted in
-_Leisure Readings_,[32] an essay which it seems the immaculate critics
-took _au sérieux_! With a little exercise of one's invention, given also
-ability to parody, it will be found that many noted events, as well as the
-lives of the chief actors in them, yield results comforting to the solar
-mythologists. Not only the _Volsungs_ and the _Iliad_, but the story of
-the Crusades and of the conquest of Mexico; not only Arthur and Baldr, but
-Cæsar and Bonaparte, may be readily resolved, as Professor Tyndall says we
-all shall be, "like streaks of morning cloud, into the infinite azure of
-the past." Dupuis, in his researches into the connection between astronomy
-and mythology, had suggested that Jesus was the sun, and the twelve
-apostles the zodiacal signs; and Goldziher, analysing the records of a
-remote period, maintains the same concerning Jacob and his twelve sons. M.
-Senart has satisfied himself that Gotama, the Buddha, is a sun-myth.
-Archbishop Whately, to confound the sceptics, ingeniously disproved the
-existence of Bonaparte; and a French ecclesiastic has, by witty
-etymological analogies, shown that Napoleon is cognate with Apollo, the
-sun, and his mother Letitia identical with Leto, the mother of Apollo;
-that his _personnel_ of twelve marshals were the signs of the zodiac; that
-his retreat from Moscow was a fiery setting, and that his emergence from
-Elba, to rule for twelve months, and then be banished to St. Helena, is
-the sun rising out of the eastern waters to set in the western ocean after
-twelve hours' reign in the sky. But upon this solar theory let us cite
-what Dr. Tylor, whose soberness of judgment renders him a valuable guide
-along the zigzag path of human progress, says: "The close and deep
-analogies between the life of nature and the life of man have been for
-ages dwelt upon by poets and philosophers, who, in simile or in argument,
-have told of light and darkness, of calm and tempest, of birth, growth,
-change, decay, dissolution, renewal. But no one-sided interpretation can
-be permitted to absorb into a single theory such endless many-sided
-correspondences as these. Rash inferences which, on the strength of mere
-resemblance, derive episodes of myth from episodes of nature, must be
-regarded with utter mistrust, for the student who has no more stringent
-criterion than this for his myths of sun and sky and dawn, will find them
-wherever it pleases him to seek them."
-
-The investigations of comparative mythologists, more particularly in this
-country and Germany, have thrown such valuable light on the history of
-ideas, that it will be instructive to learn what excited the inquiry. The
-researches of Niebuhr and his school into the credibility of early history
-made manifest that the only authority on which the chroniclers relied was
-tradition. To them--children of an uncritical age--that tradition was
-venerable with the lapse of time, and binding as a revelation from the
-gods. To us the charm and interest of it lie in detecting within it the
-ancient deposit of a mythopoeic period, and in deciphering from it what
-manner of men they must have been among whom such explanation of the
-beginnings had credence. And in such an inquiry nothing can be "common or
-unclean," nothing too trivial or puerile for analysis; for where the most
-grotesque and impossible are found, there we are nearer to the conditions
-of which we would know more.
-
-The serious endeavour to get at the fact underlying the fabulous was
-extended to the great body of mythology which had not been incorporated
-into history, and the interpretations of which satisfied only those who
-suggested them. As hinted already, the Greeks had sought out the meaning
-of their myths, with here and there a glimpse of the truth gained; but
-this was confined to the philosophers and poets. Euhêmeros degraded them
-into dull chronicle, making Heraklês a thief who carried off a crop of
-oranges; Jove a king crushing rebellion; Atlas an astronomer; Pythôn a
-freebooter; Æolus a weather-wise seaman, and so on. Plutarch tried to
-"restore" them, but only defaced them, and after centuries of neglect they
-were discovered by Lord Bacon to be allegories with a moral. Then Banier
-and Lemprière emptied out of them what little life Euhêmeros had left, and
-the believers in Hebrew as the original speech of mankind saw in them the
-fragments of a universal primitive revelation! Even Professor Max Müller
-is so upset by the many loathsome and revolting stories in a mythology
-current in the land of Lykurgos and Solon, such as the marriage of his
-mother Jocasta by Oedipus, and the swallowing of his own children by
-Cronus, that he inquires (as if he half believed it possible) whether
-there was not "a period of temporary insanity through which the human mind
-had to pass," and a degradation from lovely metaphor to coarse fact which
-only a "disease of language," or the confusion arising from the forgotten
-meanings of words, explains. There is no need, however, for assumptions of
-this or of any other kind. This is best shown by a summary of facts which
-led, more or less directly, to the formulation of the solar theory.
-
-Some fifty years ago a good many idle speculations, products of a reverent
-and uncurbed fancy concerning Hebrew as the primitive speech of mankind,
-were laid to rest when the sober guess of Schlegel as to the connection of
-the leading languages of Europe and those of India and Persia, was
-converted into certainty by Bopp, Jacob Grimm, Schleicher, and later
-scholars.
-
-By the application of the comparative method to philology, _i.e._ the
-interpretation of any set of facts by comparison with corresponding facts,
-due allowance being made for differences which Grimm's law (see _infra_)
-explains, the relation of Greek, Latin, Slavonic, Teutonic, and Keltic to
-one another and to Indian and Persian, and their consequent descent from a
-common parent language, was proved. To this group the term Aryan (from a
-Sanskrit word cognate with the root _ar_, our English word _ear_, to
-plough), is given, a term which ancient records show was applied by the
-Asiatic Aryans to themselves as the lords of the soil, the dominant race.
-The names Indo-Germanic, and, more appropriately as roughly defining the
-peoples included thereunder, Indo-European, have been suggested in its
-stead, but Aryan, as the more convenient term, has come into general use.
-
-The survival of grammatical forms common to the Aryan ancestors, and the
-likeness between words necessary for daily use, evidenced to one parent
-primitive speech, and, passing from words to the ideas and things which
-they connoted, philologists were able to infer what manner of men these
-Aryans were, and under what conditions they dwelt. In the enthusiasm
-excited by so brilliant a discovery the soberest scholars were apt to
-over-colour their accurately-outlined picture of old Aryan life; to read
-modern meanings into the ancient words. But, making good allowance for
-this, the sketch which was presented in Max Müller's famous paper on
-_Comparative Mythology_[33] remains a credit to scholarship in its vivid
-generalisations from immaterial data.
-
-Professor Max Müller, in agreement with Pictet and others, placed the
-original settlement of the Aryans as probably in the region between the
-Hindu Kush Mountains and the Caspian Sea. But the opinion of later
-scholars of cooler judgment leans to Europe rather than to Asia as the
-primitive home of the Aryan tribes. The scanty hints which survive point
-to a larger acquaintance with European flora and fauna than with Asiatic;
-to a southward course, whilst silent about westward migration; the
-movement of races inclines from less genial to more genial zones; the
-traditions of certain branches, as the Greeks, tell of them as
-autochthones, or born on the soil where they are found; and the judgment
-of experts is decisive as to the greater nearness of the European
-languages to the original speech as contrasted with Sanskrit and Iranian.
-These are the principal reasons adduced in support of the theory of a
-European origin. Benfey places the old Aryan home in the neighbourhood of
-the Black Sea, Schrader and Geiger in Middle Germany, Karl Penka in
-Scandinavia. But in speculating on the exact habitation of congeries of
-tribes requiring vast tracts of country for support, no rigid boundaries
-can be fixed, and there is room for the play of both theories, the more so
-as theories they must remain.[34]
-
-At the back of this unsettled question lies the interesting subject of the
-civilisation of pre-Aryan races on the European-Asiatic Continent. In the
-Newer Stone Age this continent was inhabited by races of short stature,
-with long and narrow skulls, and probably dark complexions, races whom the
-Aryans, a tall, round-skulled, fair-complexioned race, conquered, and with
-whom they so largely intermingled that the varieties of fair and dark
-people in Europe at this day, speaking an Aryan language, are past finding
-out. Indeed, there are probably no unmixed races throughout Europe and
-Asia; the conquering race imposed its language on the conquered, and thus
-is explained the community of speech without community of race which must
-be recognised in the composite European peoples.
-
-With this qualification the kinship of the Aryan-language-speaking peoples
-is demonstrated, and the like kind of evidence by which this is proved has
-been applied to establish the identity of their mythologies, legends, and
-folk-tales. The meaning of the proper names of these once determined, the
-key to the meaning of the myth or tale was clear; because, it is
-contended, the names contain the germs or oldest surviving part. This is
-to make the last first; but the result, as already shown in the Aryan
-light-and-darkness myths, has been to bring out a few striking
-correspondences in Greek and Vedic names, although by no means so intimate
-and frequent as the solar mythologists assume. The uniform behaviour of
-the untutored mind before like phenomena to which barbaric myth witnesses
-prepares us for general correspondences, but not in such details as we
-find in the Aryan group. On what theory these, notably in the case of the
-folk-tales, are to be accounted for, it is not easy to say, for the mode
-of their diffusion from India to Iceland is obscure. But the fact abides
-that nursery stories told in Norway and Tyrol, in Scotland and the Deccan,
-are identical. After allowing for local colouring and for changes incident
-to the lapse of time, they are the variants of stories presumably related
-in the Aryan fatherland at a period historically remote, and, moreover,
-are told in words which are phonetically akin. Their resemblances in
-minor incident and detail are not easily explained by theories of
-borrowing, for apparently no trace of intercourse between the Asiatic
-Aryans and the Aryans of extreme Western Europe occurs until after the
-domiciling of the stories where we find them. Nor did they with such close
-resemblances as appear between the German Faithful John and the Hindu Rama
-and Luxman; between our own Cinderella, the German Aschenpüttel and the
-Hindu Sodewa Bai, spring native from their respective soils.[35] And there
-is just that unlikeness in certain details which might be expected from
-the different positions and products of the several Aryan lands. They
-explain, for example, the absence from Scandinavian folk-tale of creatures
-like the elephant, the giant, ape, and turtle, which figure in the
-Brahmanic.
-
-When we turn to the great Aryan epics, the _Iliad_ and the _Odyssey_; the
-_Volsungs_; the _Nibelungs_; _King Arthur and his Round Table_; the
-_Ramâyanâ_ and the _Mahâ Bhâratâ_; the _Shah Nameh_, and so forth, we find
-similarities of incident and episode which point to a common derivation
-from old Aryan myth. That common synonyms occur in cognate languages is to
-be expected, but so far as the names and the characteristics of the heroes
-and heroines are concerned, the phonetic identity is proven in a far less
-number of cases than the solar mythologists, working on their too
-exclusive method, argue. The key which for them unlocks the meaning of
-every Aryan myth is Sanskrit. In tracing the history of the Indo-European
-family of speech, it served as the starting-point, because it has more
-than any other member preserved the roots and suffixes, if not in their
-oldest, still in their most accessible form. And in tracing the course of
-Indo-European mythology, it is in the Vedic texts, chiefly the most
-ancient, the _Rig-Veda_, that we find the materials for comparative study,
-since in these venerable hymns of a Bible older than our own are preserved
-the earliest recorded forms of that mythology. That is to say, we have not
-in any European branch of Aryan speech any documentary relic of the age of
-the _Rig-Veda_, otherwise we might find ourselves in possession of more
-ancient relics of that speech. So that although the value of Sanskrit as
-the guide without which knowledge of the Aryan mother-tongue would have
-remained vague, indeed have been beyond reach, cannot be over-estimated,
-we must not accept as of universal worth what is local and special in
-it.[36]
-
-The phonetic kinship and actual identity which comparative philologists
-have sought to establish between the proper names of gods and heroes of
-the Greek and Vedic mythologies (for the inquiry has been chiefly
-restricted to these two), is based on the collection of rules by which we
-can at once tell what sounds in one language correspond to those of its
-kindred tongues, called, after its discoverer, "Grimm's Law." This law
-gave the quietus to theories of common origin and variation of words based
-on specious resemblances (theories satirised by Dean Swift in his
-derivation of _ostler_ from _oatstealer_), and introduced a scientific
-method into etymological study.
-
-The varying pronunciation of certain words among the Aryan-speaking
-peoples which were common to them was discovered by Grimm to be constant;
-for example, a Greek _th_ answers to an English _d_, and, _vice versâ_, a
-German _s_ or _z_ to an English _t_, and so forth, so that by comparing
-these altered forms the common form from which they spring is reached.
-
-At what fluent period in the history of the Aryan languages these changes
-of one sound into another were induced is unknown, nor are their precise
-causes easy of ascertainment, being referable to physical influences,
-climatal and local, which in the course of time brought about changes in
-the organs of speech, such, for example, as make our _th_ so difficult of
-pronunciation to a German, in whose language _d_ takes its place, as
-_drei_ for _three_, _durstig_ for _thirsty_, _dein_ for _thine_, etc. We
-may note tendencies to variation in children of the same household, their
-prattle often affording striking illustration of Grimm's law, and it is
-easy to see that among semi-civilised and isolated tribes, where no check
-upon the variations is imposed, they would tend to become fixed and give
-rise to new dialects.
-
-Tracing the operation of that law in the changes in proper names in Greek
-and Vedic mythology, their correlation is proved in a few important
-instances. The Greek _Zeus_, the Latin _Deus_ (whence French _Dieu_ and
-our _deity_, and also _deuce_), the Lithuanian _Diewas_, and the Sanskrit
-_Dyaus_ all come from an old Aryan root, _div_ or _dyu_, meaning "to
-shine." The Sanskrit _dyu_, as a noun means "sky" or "day," and in the
-_Veda Dyaus_ is the bright sky or heaven. _Varuna_, the noblest figure in
-the Vedic religion, the "enveloper" or all-surrounding heaven, is cognate
-with the Greek _Ouranos_ or _Uranus_, the common root being _var_, "to
-veil" or "cover." Agni, the fire-god, to whom the larger number of hymns
-occur in the _Veda_, is related to the Latin _ignis_, fire, and so forth.
-
-The heavens and the earth and all that in them is are the raw material on
-which man works, and the comparative philologists have established exactly
-what might have been predicated, the nature-origin of the Greek, Vedic,
-and other Aryan myths. They might well have rested content with this
-confirmation which their method gives to results arrived at by other
-methods, and not weakened or discredited it by applying it all round to
-every leading name in Aryan myth. For this has only revealed the
-fundamental differences among themselves as to the etymologies and
-meanings of such names. But not satisfied with the demonstration that the
-majestic epics have their germs in the phenomena of the natural world, and
-the course of the day and year, they strain the evidence by contending
-that "there is absolutely nothing left for further analysis in the
-stories;" that their "resemblances in detail defy the influences of
-climate and scenery;"[37] that every incident has its birth in the journey
-of the sun, the death of the dawn, the theft of the twilight by the powers
-of darkness, evidence which, in Sir George Cox's words, "not long hence
-will probably be regarded as excessive."
-
-They are nature-myths; but, and in this is the secret of their enduring
-life, they are much more than that. The impetus that has shaped them as we
-now know them came from other forces than clouds and storms.
-
-Without such caution as these remarks are designed to supply, any reader
-of the _Mythology of the Aryan Nations_ would conclude that the
-philological method had proved the meteorological origin of every epic and
-folk-tale among the Indo-European peoples. He would learn that, in a way
-rudely analogous to the supernatural guidance of the Christian Church, the
-several Aryan tribes had received from the fathers of the race an
-unvarying canon of interpretation of the primitive myths, a canon
-seemingly preserved with the jealous veneration with which the Jew
-regarded the _Thorah_, and the Brahman the _Veda_. He would also learn
-that the details of Norse and classic myth can be traced to the _Veda_,
-that these details, not of incident alone, but of thought and expression,
-survived unimpaired by time and untouched by circumstance, whilst, strange
-to say, the more prominent names and the leading characters became
-obscured in their meaning. Strange indeed, and not true. For what are the
-facts?
-
-Long before the hymns of the _Rig-Veda_ existed as we know them (and they
-have remained an inviolate sacred text since 600 B.C., when every verse,
-word, and syllable were counted) the Aryan tribes had swarmed from their
-parent hive across boundless steppes and over winding mountain passes,
-some to the westward limits of Europe, others southward into Hindustan.
-Among the slender intellectual capital of which they stood possessed was
-the common mythology of their savage ancestors, in which, as we have seen,
-sun and moon, storm and thunder-cloud, and all other natural phenomena,
-were credited with personal life and will. But that mythology had
-certainly advanced beyond the crude primitive form and entered the heroic
-stage, wherein the powers of nature were half human, half divine. Their
-language had passed into the inflective or highest stage, and had
-undergone such changes that the relationship between its several groups
-and their origin from one mother-tongue was obscured, and remained so
-until laid bare in our day. In short, the Aryan tribes had attained no
-mean state of civilisation, some being more advanced than the others,
-according as external circumstances helped or hindered, and one by one
-they passed from the condition of semi-civilised nomads to become fathers
-and founders of nations that abide to this day.
-
-These being the facts to which language itself bears witness, how was it
-possible for their mythologies, _i.e._ their stock of notions about
-things, to remain unaffected and secure of transmission without organic
-change? The myths, unfixed in literary form, yielded themselves with ease
-as vehicles of new ideas; their ancient meaning, already faded, paled
-before the all-absorbing significance of present facts. These were more
-potent realities than the kisses of the dawn; the human and the personal,
-in its struggles, of mightier interest than the battle of rosy morn or
-purple eve with the sons of thunder; and Homer's music would long since
-have died away were Achilles' "baneful wrath" but a passively-told tale of
-the sun's grief for the loss of the morning.
-
-In brief, the complex and varying influences which have transformed the
-primitive myth are the important factors which the solar theorists have
-omitted in their attempted solution of the problem. They have forgotten
-the part which, to borrow a term from astronomy, "personal equation" has
-played. They have not examined myth in the light of the long history of
-the race; and the new elements which it took into itself, while never
-wholly ridding itself of the old, have escaped them. They have secured a
-mechanical unity, whereas, by combination of the historical with their own
-method, they might have secured a vital unity.
-
-To all which classic myth itself bears record. The Greeks were of Aryan
-stock, but the time of their settlement is unknown. The period between
-this and the Homeric age was, however, long enough to admit of their
-advance to the state of a nation rejoicing in the fulness of intellectual
-life. They remembered not from what rock they were hewn, from what pit
-they were digged. The nature-gods of their remote ancestors had long since
-changed their meteorological character, and appeared in the likeness of
-men, or, at least, played very human pranks on Olympus. In the _Veda_ the
-primitive nature-myth, although exalted and purified, is persistent; under
-one name or another it is still the ceaseless battle between the darkness
-and the light; Dyaus was still the bright sky, the cattle of Siva were
-still the clouds. But the Greek of Homer's time, and his congener in the
-far north, had forgotten all that; the war in heaven was transferred to
-the strife of gods and men on the shores of the Hellespont and by the
-bleak seaboard of the Baltic. Their gods and goddesses, improved by age
-and experience, put off their physical and put on the ethical; the
-heaven-father became king of gods and men, source of order, law, and
-justice; the sun and the dawn, Apollo and Athênê, became wisdom, skill,
-and guardianship incarnate. And the story of human vicissitudes found in
-solar myth that "pattern of things in the heavens" which conformed to its
-design.
-
-Thus Homer, in whose day the old nature-myth had become confused with the
-vague traditions of veritable deeds of kings and heroes but dimly
-remembered, touched it as with heavenly fire unquenchable. The siege of
-Troy, so say the solar mythologists, "is a repetition of the daily siege
-of the east by the solar powers that every evening are robbed of their
-highest treasures in the west." It is surely a truer instinct which,
-recognising the physical framework of the great epics, feels that the
-vitality which inheres in them is due to whatever of human experience,
-joy, and sorrow is the burden of their immortal song. As to the repulsive
-features of Greek myth, one can neither share the distress of the solar
-theorists nor feel their difficulties. Both are self-created, and are
-aggravated by suggestions, serious or otherwise, of "periods of temporary
-insanity through which the human mind had to pass," as the rude health of
-childhood is checked by whooping-cough and measles. They are explained by
-the persistence with which the lower out of which man has emerged asserts
-itself, as primary rocks pierce through and overlap later strata.
-
-The ancestors of the Aryans were savages in the remote past, and the "old
-Adam" was never entirely cast out; indeed it is with us still. There are
-superstitions and credulities in our midst, in drawing-rooms as well as
-gipsy camps, quite as gross in nature, if less coarse in guise, as those
-extant among the Greeks. The future historian of our time, as he turns
-over the piles of our newspapers, will find contrasts of ignorance and
-culture as startling as any existing in the land of Homer, of Archimedes,
-and Aristotle. Spirit-rapping and belief in the "evil eye" have their cult
-among us, although Professor Huxley's _Hume_ can be bought for two
-shillings, and knowledge has free course. And it certainly accords best
-with all that we have learnt as to the mode of human progress to believe
-that the old lived into the new, than that the old had been cast out, but
-had gained re-entry, making the last state of the Greeks to be worse than
-the first.
-
-In this matter the Vedic hymns do not help us much. The conditions under
-which they took the form that insured their transmission are _ipso facto_
-as of yesterday, compared with the period during which man's endeavour was
-made to get at that meaning of his surroundings wherein is found the germ
-of myth throughout the world. They are the products of a relatively
-highly-civilised time; the conception of sky and dawn as living persons
-has passed out of its primitive simplicity; these heavenly powers have
-become complex deities; there is much confounding of persons, the same god
-called by one or many names. The thought is that of an age when moral
-problems have presented themselves for solution, and the references to
-social matters indicate a settled state of things far removed from the
-fisher and the hunter stage. Nevertheless there lurk within these sacred
-writings survivals of the lower culture, traces of coarse rites, bloody
-sacrifices, of repulsive myths of the gods, and of cosmogonies familiar to
-the student of barbaric myth and legend.
-
-Enough has been said to show that the extreme and one-sided
-interpretations of the solar mythologists are due to a one-sided method.
-The philological has yielded splendid results; this the solar theorists
-have done; the historical yields results equally rich and fertile; this
-they have left undone. Language has given us the key to the kinship
-between the several members of the great body of Aryan myths; the study of
-the historical evolution of myths, the comparison of these, without regard
-to affinity of speech, will give us the key to the kinship between savage
-interpretation of phenomena all the world over. The mythology of Greek and
-Bushman, of Kaffir and Scandinavian, of the Red man and the Hindu, springs
-from the like mental condition. It is the uniform and necessary product of
-the human mind in the childhood of the race.
-
-
-§ V.
-
-BELIEF IN METAMORPHOSIS INTO ANIMALS.
-
-The belief that human beings could change themselves into animals has been
-already alluded to, but in view of its large place in the history of
-illusions, some further reference is needful.
-
-Superstitions which now excite a smile, or which seem beneath notice, were
-no sudden phenomena, appearing now and again at the beck and call of
-wilful deceivers of their kind. That they survive at all, like organisms,
-atrophied or degenerate, which have seen "better days," is evidence of
-remote antiquity and persistence. Every seeming vagary of the mind had
-serious importance, and answered to some real need of man as a sober
-attempt to read the riddle of the earth, and get at its inmost secret.
-
-So with this belief. It is the outcome of that early thought of man which
-conceived a common nature and fellowship between himself and brutes, a
-conception based on rude analogies between his own and other forms of
-life, as also between himself and things without life, but having motion,
-be they waterspouts or rivers, trees or clouds, especially these last,
-when the wind, in violent surging and with howling voice, drove them
-across the sky. Where he blindly, timidly groped, we walk as in the light,
-and with love that casts out fear. Where rough resemblances suggested to
-him like mental states and actions in man and brute, the science of our
-time has, under the comparative method, converted the guess into a
-certainty; not to the confirmation of his conclusions, but to the proof of
-identity of structure and function, to the demonstrating of a common
-origin, however now impassable the chasm that separates us from the lower
-animals.
-
-The belief in man's power to change his form and nature is obviously
-nearly connected with the widespread doctrine of metempsychosis, or the
-passing of the soul at death into one or a series of animals, generally
-types of the dead man's character, as where the timid enter the body of a
-hare, the gluttonous that of a swine or vulture.
-
- "Fills with fresh energy another form,
- And towers an elephant or glides a worm;
- Swims as an eagle in the eye of noon,
- Or wails a screech-owl to the deaf, cold moon,
- Or haunts the brakes where serpents hiss and glare,
- Or hums, a glittering insect, in the air."
-
-But while in transmigration the soul returns not to the body which it had
-left, transformation was only for a time, occurring at stated periods, and
-effected by the will of the transformed, or by the aid of sorcery or
-magic, or sometimes imposed by the gods as a punishment for impious
-defiance and sin.
-
-Other causes, less remote, aided the spread of a belief to which the mind
-was already inclined. Among these were the hallucinations of men who
-believed themselves changed into beasts, and who, retreating to caves and
-forests, issued thence howling and foaming, ravening for blood and
-slaughter; hallucinations which afflicted not only single persons, as in
-the case of Nebuchadnezzar, whose milder monomania (he, himself, saying in
-the famous prize poem:--
-
- "As he ate the unwonted food,
- 'It may be wholesome, but it is not good'"),
-
-rather resembled that of the daughters of Prætus, who believed themselves
-cows, but which also spread as virulent epidemic among whole classes. It
-is related that, in 1600, multitudes were attacked by the disease known as
-lycanthropy, or wolf-madness (from Greek, _lukos_, a wolf, and
-_anthropos_, a man), and that they herded and hunted in packs, destroying
-and eating children, and keeping in their mountain fastnesses a cannibal
-or devil's sabbath, like the nocturnal meetings of witches and demons
-known as the Witches' Sabbath. Hundreds of them were executed on their own
-confession, but some time elapsed before the frightful epidemic, and the
-panic which it caused, passed away. Besides such delusions, history down
-to our own time records instances where a morbid innate craving for blood,
-leading sometimes to cannibalism, has shown itself. Mr. Baring-Gould, in
-his _Book of Werewolves_, cites a case from Gall of a Dutch priest who had
-such a desire to kill and to see killed that he became chaplain to a
-regiment for the sake of witnessing the slaughter in battle. But still
-more ghastly are the notorious cases of Elizabeth, a Hungarian lady of
-title, who inveigled girls into her castle and murdered them, that she
-might bathe her body in human blood to enhance her beauty; and of the
-Maréchal de Retz who, cursed with the abnormal desire to murder children,
-allured them with promises of dainties into his kitchen, and killed them,
-inhaling the odour of their blood with delight, and then burned their
-bodies in the huge fireplace in the room devoted to these horrors. When
-the deed was done the Maréchal would lie prostrate with grief, "would toss
-weeping and praying on a bed, or recite fervent prayers and litanies on
-his knees, only to rise with irresistible craving to repeat the crime."
-
-Such instances as the foregoing, whether of delusion or morbid desire to
-destroy, are among secondary causes; they may contribute, but they do not
-create, being inadequate to account for the world-wide existence of
-transformation myths. The animals which are the supposed subject of these
-vary with the habitat, but are always those which have inspired most
-dread from their ferocity. In Abyssinia we find the man-hyæna; in South
-Africa, the man-lion; in India, the man-tiger; in Northern Europe, the
-man-bear; and in other parts of Europe the man-wolf, or werewolf (from
-A.-S. _wer_, a man).
-
-Among the many survivals of primitive thought in the Greek mythology,
-which are the only key to its coarser features, this of belief in
-transformation occurs, and, indeed, along the whole line of human
-development it appears and re-appears in forms more or less vivid and
-tragic. The gods of the south, as of the north, came down in the likeness
-of beasts and birds, as well as of men, and among the references to these
-myths in classic writers, Ovid, in the _Metamorphoses_, tells the story of
-Zeus visiting Lykaon, king of Arcadia, who placed a dish of human flesh
-before the god to test thereby his omniscience. Zeus detected the trick,
-and punished the king by changing him into a wolf, so that his desire
-might be towards the food which he had impiously offered to his god.
-
- "In vain he attempted to speak; from that very instant
- His jaws were bespluttered with foam, and only he thirsted
- For blood, as he raged amongst flocks and panted for slaughter.
- His vesture was changed into hair, his limbs became crooked.
- A wolf--he retains yet large traces of his ancient expression,
- Hoary he is as afore, his countenance rabid,
- His eyes glitter savagely still, the picture of fury."
-
-But we may pass from this and such-like tales of the ancients to the grim
-realities of the belief in mediæval times.
-
-If wolves abounded, much more did the werewolf abound. According to Olaus
-Magnus, the sufferings which the inhabitants of Prussia and neighbouring
-nations endured from wolves were trivial compared with the ravages wrought
-by men turned into wolves. On the feast of the Nativity, these monsters
-were said to assemble and then disperse in companies to kill and plunder.
-Attacking lonely houses, they devoured all the human beings and every
-other animal found therein. "They burst into the beer-cellars and there
-they empty the tuns of beer or mead, and pile up the empty casks one above
-another in the middle of the cellar, thus showing their difference from
-natural wolves." In Scandinavia it was believed that some men had a second
-skin out of which they could slip and appear in the shape of a beast.
-Perhaps the phrase "to jump out of one's skin" is a relic of this notion.
-The Romans believed that the werewolf simply effected the change by
-turning his skin inside out, hence the term "versipellis," or
-"skin-changer." So in mediæval times it was said that the wolf's skin was
-under the human, and the unhappy suspects were hacked and tortured for
-signs of such hairy growth. Sometimes the change was induced, it is said,
-by putting on a girdle of human skin round the waist; sometimes by the use
-of magical ointment. Whatever the animal whose shape a man took could do,
-that he could do, plus such power as he possessed in virtue of his
-manhood or acquired by sorcery, his eyes remaining as the only features by
-which he could be recognised. If he was not changed himself, some charm
-was wrought on the eyes of onlookers whereby they could see him only in
-the shape which he was supposed to assume. The genuine monomaniacs aided
-such an illusion. The poor demented one who conceived himself a dog or a
-wolf, who barked, and snapped, and foamed at the mouth, and bit savagely
-at the flesh of others, was soon clothed by a terror-stricken fancy in the
-skin of either brute, and believed to have the canine or lupine appetite
-in addition to his human cunning. The imagination thus projects in visible
-form the spectres of its creation; the eye in this, as in so much else,
-sees the thing for which it looks. Some solid foundation for the belief
-would, however, exist in the custom among warriors of dressing themselves
-in the skins of beasts to add to their ferocious appearance. And it was
-amidst such that the remarkable form of mania in Northern Europe known as
-the Berserkr rage ("bear-sark" or "bear-skin" wearer) arose. Working
-themselves by the aid of strong drink or drugs and contagious excitement
-into a frenzy, these freebooters of the Northland sallied forth to break
-the backbones and cleave the skulls of quiet folk and unwary travellers.
-As with flashing eyes and foaming mouth they yelled and danced, seemingly
-endowed with magic power to resist assault by sword or club, they aroused
-in the hysterically disposed a like madness, which led to terrible crimes,
-and which died away only as the killing of one's fellows became less the
-business of life. History supplies many examples of strange mental
-epidemics which sped through towns and provinces in mediæval times. They
-were induced by religious enthusiasm and other extreme and harmful forms
-of mental stimulation, the most notorious being the great St. Vitus'
-dance, and the procession of Flagellants, to which in their mad orgies the
-hysterical ceremonies of barbarous tribes correspond. Of that tendency
-towards imitation which these freaks of erratic and unbalanced minds
-foster Dr. Carpenter[38] quotes an illustration from Zimmerman. A nun in a
-large convent in France began to mew like a cat, and shortly afterwards
-other nuns also mewed. At last all the nuns mewed every day at a given
-time and for several hours together. And this cat's concert was only
-stopped by the military arriving and threatening to whip the nuns.
-
-During the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries the belief in men-beasts
-reached its maximum, and met with no tender treatment at the hands of a
-church whose founder had manifested such soothing pity towards the
-"possessed" of Galilee and Judæa. That church had a cut-and-dried
-explanation of the whole thing, and applied a sharp and pitiless remedy.
-If the devil, with countless myrmidons at his command, was "going to and
-fro in the earth, and walking up and down in it," what limit could be put
-to his ingenuity and arts? Could he not as easily change a man into a wolf
-or a bear as a woman into a cat? and had not each secured this by a
-compact with him, the foe of God and His Church? The evidence in support
-of the one was as clear and cogent as in support of the other; hence
-werewolf hunting and burning became as Christian a duty and as paying a
-profession as witch-smelling and torturing. Any cruelty was justified by
-its perpetrators when the object in view was the vindication of the
-majesty of God; and not until the advancing intelligence of men recoiled
-against the popular explanations of witchcraft and lycanthropy were the
-laws against both repealed.
-
-Those explanations were survivals of savage mental philosophy blended with
-a crude theology. To the savage, all diseases are the work of evil
-spirits. If a man hurts himself against a stone, the demon in the stone is
-the cause. If the man falls suddenly ill, writhes or shrieks in his pain,
-the spirit which has smuggled itself in with the food or the drink or the
-breath is twisting or tearing him; if he has a fit, the spirit has flung
-him; if he is in the frenzy of hysteria, the spirit within him is laughing
-in fiendish glee. And when the man suddenly loses his reason, goes, as
-people say, "out of his mind," acts and looks no longer like his former
-self, still more does this seem the work of an evil agent within him. It
-is kindred with the old belief that the sickly and ugly infant had been
-left in the cradle by the witch in place of the child stolen by her before
-its baptism.[39] And the thing to do is to find some mode of conjuring or
-frightening or forcing the demon out of the man, just as it became a
-sacred duty to watch over the newly-born until the sign of the cross had
-been made on its forehead, and the regenerating water sprinkled over it.
-
-"Presbyter is but old priest writ large." And the theory of demoniacal
-agency was but the savage theory in a more elaborate guise. To theologians
-and jurists it was a sufficing explanation; it fitted in with the current
-notions of the government of the universe, and there was no need to frame
-any other. Body and mind were to them as separate entities as they are to
-the savage and the ignorant. Each regarded the soul as independent of the
-body, and framed his theories of occasional absence therefrom accordingly.
-But science has taught us to know ourselves not as dual, but as one. She
-lays her finger on the subtle, intricate framework of man's nervous
-system, and finds in the derangement of this the secret of those delusions
-and illusions which have been so prolific in agony and suffering. She
-makes clear how the yielding to morbid tendencies can still foster
-delusions, which, if no longer the subject of pains and penalties in the
-body politic, are themselves ministers of vengeance in the body where they
-arise. And in the recognition of a fundamental unity between the physical
-and the mental, in the healthy working of the one as dependent on the
-wholesome care of the other, she finds not only the remedy against mental
-derangement and all forms of harmful excitement, but also the prevention
-which is better than cure.
-
-Traditions of transformation of men into beasts are not confined to the
-Old world.[40] In Dr. Rink's _Tales of the Eskimo_ there are numerous
-stories both of men and women who have assumed animal form at will, as
-also incidental references to the belief in stories such as that telling
-how an Eskimo got inside a walrus skin, so that he might lead the life of
-that creature. And among the Red races, that rough analogy which led to
-the animal being credited with life and consciousness akin to the human,
-still expresses itself in thought and act. If even now it is matter of
-popular belief in the wilds of Norway that Finns and Lapps, who from
-remote times have passed as skilful witches and wizards, can at pleasure
-assume the shape of bears, the common saying, according to Sir George
-Dasent, about an unusually daring and savage beast being, "that can be no
-Christian bear," we may not be surprised that lower races still ascribe
-power of interchange to man and brute. The werewolf superstition is extant
-among the North-Western Indians, but free from those diabolical features
-which characterised it in mediæval times among ourselves. It takes its
-place in barbaric myth generally, and although it may have repellent or
-cruel elements, it was never blended with belief in the demoniacal. The
-Ahts say that men go into the mountains to seek their manitou (that is,
-the personal deity, generally the first animal seen by a native in the
-dream produced by his fasting on reaching manhood), and, mixing with
-wolves, are after a time changed into these creatures. Although the
-illustration bears more upon what has to be said concerning the barbaric
-belief in animal-ancestors, it has some reference to the matter in hand to
-cite the custom among the Tonkanays, a wild and unruly tribe in Texas, of
-celebrating their origin by a grand annual dance. One of them, naked as he
-was born, is buried in the earth, then the others, clothed in wolf-skins,
-walk over him, sniff around him, howl in wolfish style, and then dig him
-up with their nails.[41] The leading wolf solemnly places a bow and arrow
-in his hands, and, to his inquiry as to what he must do for a living,
-advises him "to do as the wolves do--rob, kill, and rove from place to
-place, never cultivating the soil." Dr. Brinton, in quoting the above from
-Schoolcraft, refers to a similar custom among the ancient dwellers on
-Mount Soracte.
-
-As in past times among ourselves, so in times present among races such as
-the foregoing, their wizards and shamans are believed to have power to
-turn themselves as they choose into beasts, birds, or reptiles. By
-whatever name these professional impostors are known, whether as
-medicine-men, or, as in Cherokee, by the high-sounding title of
-"possessors of the divine fire," they have traded, and wherever credulity
-or darkest ignorance abide, still trade on the fears and fancies of their
-fellows by disguising themselves in voice and gait and covering of the
-animal which they pretend to be. Among races believing in transformation
-such tricks have free course, and the more dexterous the sorcerer who
-could play bear's antics in a bear's skin proved himself in throwing off
-the disguise and appearing suddenly as a man, the greater his success, and
-the more firmly grounded the belief.
-
-The whole subject, although presented here only in the barest outline,
-would not be fitly dismissed without some reference to the survival of the
-primitive belief in men-animals in the world-wide stories known as
-beast-fables, in which animals act and talk like human beings. When to us
-all nature was Wonderland, and the four-footed, the birds, and the fishes,
-among our play-fellows; when in fireside tale and rhyme they spoke our
-language and lived that free life which we then shared and can never share
-again, the feeling of kinship to which the old fables gave expression may
-have checked many a wanton act, and, if we learned it not fully then, we
-may have taken the lesson to heart since--
-
- "Never to blend our pleasure or our pride
- With sorrow of the meanest thing that lives."
-
-And then those _Fables_ of Æsop, even with the tedious drawback of the
-"moral," as powder beneath the jam, did they not lighten for us in
-school-days the dark passages through our Valpy (for the omniscient Dr.
-William Smith was not then the tyro's dread), and again give us communion
-with the fowl of the air and the beast of the field? Now our mature
-thought may interest itself in following the beast-myths to the source
-whence Babrius and Phædrus, knowing not its springhead and antiquity, drew
-their vivid presentments of the living world, and find in the storied East
-the well-spring that fed the imagination of youngsters thousands of years
-ago. Such tales have not fallen in the East to the low level which they
-have reached here, because they yet accord in some degree with extant
-superstitions in India, whereas in Europe they find little or nothing to
-which they correspond. With some authorities the Egyptians have the credit
-of first inventing the beast-fable, but among them, as among every other
-advanced race, such stories are the remains of an earlier deposit; relics
-of a primitive philosophy in which wisdom and skill and cunning are no
-monopoly of man's. The fondness of the negro races, whose traditions are
-not limited to South and Central Africa, for such fables is well known, as
-witness the tales of which "Uncle Remus" is a type, and it is strikingly
-illustrated in the history of the Vai tribe, who having, partly through
-contact with whites, elaborated a system of writing, made the beast-fable
-their earliest essay in composition.[42]
-
-The evidence in support of the common ancestry of the languages spoken by
-the leading peoples in Europe, and by such important historical races in
-Asia as the Hindu and the Persian, has been already summarised. That
-evidence, it was remarked, is considered corroborative not only of the
-common origin of the myths on which the framework of the great
-Indo-European epics rests, but also of the possession by the several clans
-of a common stock of folk-lore and folk-tale, in which, of course, the
-beast-fables are included, these being the relics in didactic or humorous
-guise of that serious philosophy concerning the community of life in man
-and brute amongst the barbaric ancestors of the Indo-Europeans, upon which
-stress enough has been laid.
-
-Even if the common origin be disproved, the evidence would be shifted
-merely from local to general foundations, because the uniform attitude of
-mind before the same phenomena would have further confirmation; but the
-resemblances are too minute in detail to be explained by a theory of
-independent creation of the tales where we now find them. The likenesses
-are many, the unlikenesses are few, being the result of local colouring,
-historical fact blended with the fiction, popular belief, and
-superstition, all affected by the skill of the professional story-teller.
-As in the numerous variants of the familiar Cinderella, Beauty and the
-Beast, Punchkin, and the like, the same fairy prince or princess, the same
-wicked magician and clever versatile Boots, peep through, disclosing the
-near relationship of Hindu nursery tales to the folk-tales of Norway and
-the Highlands, of Iceland and Ceylon, of Persia and Serbia, of Russia and
-the lands washed by the Mediterranean.
-
-In the venerable collection of _Buddhist Birth Stories_, now in course of
-translation by Dr. Rhys Davids,[43] and to which is prefaced an
-interesting introduction on the source and migration of folk-tales, we are
-face to face with many a fable familiar to us in the _Æsop_ of our
-school-days. There is the story of the Ass in the Lion's Skin, not in
-which, as Æsop has it, the beast dressed himself, but which the hawker put
-on him to frighten the thieves who would steal his goods. Left one day to
-browse in a field whilst his master refreshed himself at an inn, some
-watchmen saw him, and, raising hue and cry, brought out the villagers,
-armed with their rude implements. The ass, fearing death, made a noise
-like an ass, and was killed. Long might he, adds the ancient moral--
-
- "Clad in a lion's skin
- Have fed on the barley green;
- But he brayed!
- And that moment he came to ruin."
-
-The variants of this old fable are found in mediæval, in French, German,
-Indian, and Turkish folk-lore, as are also those of the tortoise who lost
-his life through "much speaking." Desiring to emigrate, two ducks agreed
-to carry him, he seizing hold of a stick which they held between their
-beaks. As they passed over a village the people shouted and jeered,
-whereupon the irate tortoise called out: "What business is it of yours?"
-and, of course, thereby let go the stick and, falling down, split in two.
-Therefore--
-
- "Speak wise words not out of season;
- You see how, by talking overmuch,
- The tortoise fell."
-
-In _Æsop_ the tortoise asks an eagle to teach him to fly; in Chinese
-folk-lore he is carried by geese.
-
-Jacob Grimm's researches concerning the famous mediæval fable of "Reynard
-the Fox" revealed the ancient and scattered materials out of which that
-wonderful satire was woven, and there is no feature of the story which
-reappears more often in Eastern and Western folk-lore than that cunning of
-the animal which has been for the lampooner and the satirist the type of
-self-seeking monk and ecclesiastic. When Chanticleer proudly takes an
-airing with his family, he meets master Reynard, who tells him he has
-become a "religious," and shows him his beads, and his missal, and his
-hair shirt, adding, in a voice "that was childlike and bland," that he had
-vowed never to eat flesh. Then he went off singing his Credo, and slunk
-behind a hawthorn. Chanticleer, thus thrown off his guard, continues his
-airing, and the astute hypocrite, darting from his ambush, seizes the
-plump hen Coppel. So in Indian folk-tale a wolf living near the Ganges is
-cut off from food by the surrounding water. He decides to keep holy day,
-and the god Sakka, knowing his lupine weakness, resolves to have some fun
-with him, and turns himself into a wild goat "Aha!" says the wolf, "I'll
-keep the fast another day," and springing up he tried to seize the goat,
-who skipped about so that he could not be taken. So Lupus gives it up, and
-says as his solatium: "After all, I've not broken my vow."
-
-The Chinese have a story of a tiger who desired to eat a fox, but the
-latter claimed exemption as being superior to the other animals, adding
-that if the tiger doubted his word he could easily judge for himself. So
-the two set forth, and, of course, every animal fled at sight of the
-tiger, who, too stupid to see how he had been gulled, conceived high
-respect for the fox, and spared his life.
-
-Sometimes the tables are turned. Chanticleer gets his head out of
-Reynard's mouth by making him answer the farmer, and in the valuable
-collection of Hottentot tales which the late Dr. Bleek, with some warrant,
-called _Reynard in South Africa_, the cock makes the jackal say his
-prayers, and flies off while the outwitted beast folds his hands and shuts
-his eyes.
-
-But further quotations must be resisted; enough if it is made clearer that
-the beast-fable is the lineal descendant of barbaric conceptions of a life
-shared in common by man and brute, and another link thus added to the
-lengthening chain of the continuity of human history.
-
-
-§ VI.
-
-TOTEMISM: BELIEF IN DESCENT FROM ANIMAL OR PLANT.
-
-In addition to the beliefs in the transformation of men into animals and
-in the transmigration of souls into the bodies of animals, we find among
-barbarous peoples a belief which is probably the parent of one and
-certainly nearly related to both, namely, in descent from the animal or
-plant, more often the former, whose name they bear. Its connection with
-transmigration is seen in the belief of the Moquis of Arizona, that after
-death they live in the form of their totemic animal, those of the deer
-family becoming deer, and so on through the several gentes. The belief
-survives in its most primitive and vivid forms among two races, the
-aborigines of Australia and the North American Indians. The word
-"totemism," given to it both in its religious and social aspects, is
-derived from the Algonquin "dodaim" or "dodhaim," meaning "clanmark."
-Among the Australians the word "kobong," meaning "friend" or "protector,"
-is the generic term for the animal or plant by which they are known. It is
-somewhat akin in significance to the Indian words "manitou," "oki," etc.,
-comprehending "the manifestations of the unseen world, yet conveying no
-sense of personal unity," which are commonly translated by the misleading
-word "medicine;" hence "medicine-men."
-
-The family name, or second name borne by all the tribes in lineal descent,
-and which corresponds to our surname, _i.e._ _super nomen_, or
-"over-name," is derived from names of beasts, birds, plants, etc., around
-which traditions of their transformation into men linger. Sir George
-Grey[44] says that there is a mysterious connection between a native and
-his kobong. It is his protecting angel, like the "daimôn" of Socrates,
-like the "genius" of the early Italian. "If it is an animal, he will not
-kill one of the species to which it belongs, should he find it asleep, and
-he always kills it reluctantly and never without affording it a chance of
-escape. The family belief is that some one individual of the species is
-their dearest friend, to kill whom would be a great crime," as, in Hindu
-belief, when a Rajah was said to have entered at death into the body of a
-fish, a "close time" was at once decreed. Among the Indian tribes we find
-well-nigh the whole fauna and flora represented, their totems being the
-Bear, Turtle, Deer, Snake, Eagle, Pike, Corn, Tobacco, etc. Like the
-Australians, these tribes regarded themselves as being of the breed of
-their particular animal-totem, and avoided hunting, slaying, and eating
-(of which more presently) the creature under whose form the ancestor was
-thought to be manifest. The Chippeways carried their respect even farther.
-Deriving their origin from the dog, they at one time refrained from
-employing their supposed canine ancestors in dragging their sledges. The
-Bechuana and other people of South Africa will avoid eating their
-tribe-animal or wearing its skin. The same prohibitions are found among
-tribes in Northern Asia, and the Vogulitzi of Siberia, when they have
-killed a bear, address it formally, maintaining "that the blame is to be
-laid on the arrows and iron, which were made and forged by the Russians!"
-Among the Delawares the Tortoise gens claimed supremacy over the others,
-because their ancestor, who had become a fabled monster in their
-mythology, bore their world on his back. The California Indians are in
-interesting agreement with Lord Monboddo when, in claiming descent from
-the prairie wolf, they account for the loss of their tails by the habit of
-sitting, which, in course of time, wore them down to the stump! The
-Kickapoos say their ancestors had tails, and that when they lost them the
-"impudent fox sent every morning to ask how their tails were, and the bear
-shook his fat sides at the joke." The Patagonians are said to have a
-number of animal deities, creators of the several tribes, some being of
-the caste of the guanaco and others of the ostrich. In short, the group of
-beliefs and practices found among races in the lower stages of culture
-point to a widespread common attitude towards the mystery of life around
-them. In speaking of totemism among the Red races Dr. Brinton thinks that
-the free use of animate symbols to express abstract ideas, which he finds
-so frequent, is the source of a confusion which has led to their claiming
-literal descent from wild beasts. But the barbaric mind bristles with
-contradictions and mutually destructive conceptions; nothing is too
-wonderful, too _bizarre_, for its acceptance, and the belief in actual
-animal descent is not the most remarkable or far-fetched among the
-articles of its creed.
-
-The subject of totemism is full of interest both on its religious and
-social side:--
-
-On its religious side it has given rise, or, if this be not conceded,
-impetus, to that worship of animals which assuredly had its source in the
-attribution of mysterious power through some spirit within them, making
-them deity incarnate.
-
-On its social side it has led to prohibitions which are inwoven among the
-customs and prejudices of civilised communities. But, before speaking of
-these prohibitions, the barbaric mode of reckoning descent should be
-noticed.
-
-The family name borne by most Australian tribes is perpetuated by the
-children, whether boys or girls, taking their mother's name. Precisely the
-same custom is found among some American Indians, the children of both
-sexes being of the mother's clan. Among the Moquis of Arizona all the
-members of each gens trace descent from a common ancestor; they are
-regarded as brothers and sisters.[45] Now, the family, as we define it,
-does not exist in savage communities, nor, as Mr. McLennan says in his
-very remarkable work on _Primitive Marriage_, had "the earliest human
-groups any idea of kinship, ... the physical root of which could be
-discerned only through observation and reflection." Where the relations
-of the sexes were confused and promiscuous, the oldest system in which the
-idea of blood-ties was expressed was a system of kinship through the
-mother. The habits of the "much-married" primitive men made mistake about
-any one's mother less likely than mistake about his father; and, if in
-civilised times it is, as the saying goes, a wise child that knows its own
-father, he was, in barbarous times, a wise father who knew his own child.
-Examples tracing the kinship through females, father and offspring being
-never of the same clan, abound in both ancient and modern authorities, and
-perhaps the most amusing one that can be given is found in Dr. Morgan's
-_Systems of Consanguinity_. He says that the "natives of the province of
-Keang-se are celebrated among the natives of the other Chinese provinces
-for the mode or form used by them in address, namely, 'Laon peaon,' which,
-freely translated, means, 'Oh, you old fellow, brother mine by some of the
-ramifications of female relationship!'"[46]
-
-The prohibitions arising out of or confirmed by totemism are two: 1.
-Against intermarriage between those of the same name or crest. 2. Against
-the eating of the totem by any member of the tribe called after it.
-
-1. Among both Australians and Indians a man is forbidden to marry in his
-own clan, _i.e._ any woman of his own surname or badge, no matter where
-she was born or however distantly related to him. The Navajoes of Arizona
-say that if they married in their own clan "their bones would dry up and
-they would die."
-
-Were this practice of "Exogamy," as marriage outside the totem-kin is
-called, limited to one or two places, it might be classed among
-exceptional local customs based on a tradition, say, of some heated
-blood-feud between the tribes. But its prevalence among savage or
-semi-savage races all the world over points to reasons the nature of which
-is still a _crux_ to the anthropologists. The late Mr. McLennan, whose
-opinion on such a matter is entitled to the most weight, connects it with
-the custom of female infanticide, which, rendering women scarce, led at
-once to polyandry, or one female to several males, within the tribe, and
-to the capturing of women from other tribes. This last-named practice
-strengthens Mr. McLennan's theory. He cites numerous instances from past
-and present barbarous races, and traces its embodiment in formal code
-until we come to the mock relics of the custom in modern times, as, for
-example, the harmless "survival" in bride-lifting, that is, stealing, as
-in the word "cattle-lifting."
-
-Connected with this custom is the equally prevailing one which forbids
-intercourse between relations, as especially between a couple and their
-fathers and mothers-in-law, and which also forbids mentioning their names.
-So far as the aversion which the savage has to telling his own name, or
-uttering that of any person (especially of the dead) or thing feared by
-him is concerned, the reason is not far to seek. It lies in that
-confusion between names and things which marks all primitive thinking. The
-savage, who shrinks from having his likeness taken in the fear that a part
-of himself is being carried away thereby, regards his name as something
-through which he may be harmed. So he will use all sorts of roundabout
-phrases to avoid saying it, and even change it that he may elude his foes,
-and puzzle or cheat Death when he comes to look for him. But why a
-son-in-law should not see the face of his mother-in-law, for so it is
-among the Navajoes, (where the offender would, they say, go blind), the
-Aranaks of South America, the Caribs and other tribes of more northern
-regions, the Fijians, Sumatrans, Dyaks, the natives of Australia, the
-Zulus, in brief, along the range of the lower culture, is a question to
-which no satisfactory answer has been given, and to which reference is
-here made because of its connection with totemism.
-
-2. That the animal which is the totem of the tribe should not be eaten,
-even where men did not hesitate to eat men of another totem, is a custom
-for which it is less hard to account. The division of flesh into two
-classes of forbidden and permitted, of clean and unclean, with the
-resulting artificial liking or repulsion for food which custom arising out
-of that division has brought about, is probably referable to old beliefs
-in the inherent sacredness of certain animals. The Indians of Charlotte
-Island never eat crows, because they believe in crow-ancestors, and they
-smear themselves with black paint in memory of that tradition; the
-Dacotahs would neither kill nor eat their totems, and if necessity compels
-these and like barbarians to break the law, the meal is preceded by
-profuse apologies and religious ceremonies over the slain. Although the
-aborigines of Victoria, who are to be ranked among the lowest savages
-extant, devour the most loathsome things, worms, slugs, and vermin, they
-have a classification of meats to be eaten or avoided. A Kumite is deeply
-grieved when hunger compels him to eat anything which bears his name, but
-he may satisfy his hunger with anything that is Krokee. The abstention of
-the Brahmans from meat, the pseudo-revealed injunction to the Hebrews
-against certain flesh-foods (has that against pork its origin in the
-forgotten tradition of descent from a boar?), need no detailing here. But,
-as parallels, some restrictions amongst the ancient dwellers in these
-islands are of value. It was, according to Cæsar,[47] a crime to eat the
-domestic fowl, or goose, or hare, and to this day the last-named is an
-object of disgust in certain parts of Russia and Brittany. The oldest
-Welsh laws contain several allusions to the magical character of the hare,
-which was thought to change its sex every month or year, and to be the
-companion of the witches, who often assumed its shape.[48] The revulsion
-against horse-flesh as food may have its origin in the sacredness of the
-white horses, which, as Tacitus remarks,[49] were kept by the Germans at
-the public cost in groves holy to the gods, whose secrets they knew, and
-whose decrees regarding mortals their neighings interpreted. That this
-animal was a clan-totem among our forefathers there can be no doubt, and
-the proofs are with us in the white horses carved in outline on the chalk
-hills of Berkshire and the west, as in the names and crests of clan
-descendants.
-
-The totem is not only the clan-name indicating descent from a common
-ancestor. It is also the clan-symbol, badge, or crest. Where the tribes
-among whom it is found are still in the picture-writing stage, _i.e._ when
-the idea is expressed by a portrait of the thing itself instead of by some
-sound-sign--a stage in writing corresponding to the primitive stage in
-language, when words were imitative--there we find the rude hieroglyphic
-of the totem a means of intercourse between different tribes, as well as
-with whites. A striking example of the use of such totemic symbols occurs
-in a petition sent by some Western Indian tribes to the United States
-Congress for the right to fish in certain small lakes near Lake Superior.
-
-The leading clan is represented by a picture of the crane; then follow
-three martens, as totems of three tribes; then the bear, the man-fish, and
-the cat-fish, also totems. From the eye and heart of each of the animals
-runs a line connecting them with the eye and heart of the crane, to show
-that they are all of one mind, and the eye of the crane has also a line
-connecting it with the lakes on which the tribes have their eyes, and
-another line running towards Congress.
-
-In the barbaric custom of painting or carving the totem on oars, on the
-bows and sides of canoes, on weapons, on pillars in the front of houses,
-and on the houses themselves; in tattooing it on various parts of the body
-(in the latter case, in some instances, together with pictures of
-exploits; so that the man carries on his person an illustrated history of
-his own life) we have the remote and forgotten origin of heraldic emblems.
-The symbols of civilised nations, as, _e.g._ the Imperial eagle, which so
-many states of ancient and modern renown have chosen; the crests of
-families of rank, with their fabulous monsters, as the cherub, the Greek
-_gryps_, surviving in the griffin, the dragon, the unicorn, which, born of
-rude fancy or terrified imagination, are now carved on the entrance-gates
-to the houses of the great; the armorial bearings on carriages; the crest
-engraven on ring or embossed on writing-paper, these are the lineal
-descendants of the totem; and the Indians, who could see no difference
-between their system of manitous and those of the white people, with their
-spread-eagle or their lion-rampant, made a shrewd guess that would not
-occur to many a _parvenu_ applying at the Heralds' College for a crest.
-The continuity is traceable in the custom of the Mexicans and other
-civilised nations of painting the totemic animals on their banners, flags,
-crests, and other insignia; and it would seem that we have in the totem
-the key to the mystery of those huge animal-shaped mounds which abound on
-the North American continent.
-
-The arbitrary selection in the "ages of chivalry" of such arms as pleased
-the knightly fancy or ministered to its pride, or, as was often the case,
-resembled the name in sound, together with the ignorance then and till
-recently existing as to the origin of crests, and also the discredit into
-which a seemingly meaningless vanity had fallen, have made it difficult to
-trace the survival of the totem in the crests even of that numerous
-company of the Upper Ten who claim descent from warriors who came over
-with the Conqueror. But there is no doubt that an inquiry conducted on the
-lines suggested above, and not led into by-paths by false analogies, would
-yield matter of interest and value. It would add to the evidence of that
-common semi-civilised stage out of which we have risen. Such names as the
-Horsings, the Wylfings, the Derings, the Ravens, the Griffins, perhaps
-hold within themselves traces of the totem name of the horse, wolf, deer,
-raven, and that "animal fantasticall," the griffin. In Scotland we find
-the clan Chattan, or the wild cat; in Ireland "the men of Osory were
-called by a name signifying the wild red deer." On the other hand such
-names may have been given merely as nicknames (_i.e._ ekename or the
-_added_ name, from _eke_, "also," or "to augment"), suggested by the
-physical or mental likeness to the thing after which they are called.
-
-But it is time to turn to the religious significance of the totem, as
-shown among races worshipping the animal which is their supposed ancestor.
-
-At first glance this seems strong argument in support of Mr. Herbert
-Spencer's theory that all forms of religion, and all myth, have their
-origin in ancestor worship. The mysterious power of stimulation, of
-excitation to frenzy, or of healing and soothing, or of poisoning, which
-certain plants possess, has been attributed to indwelling spirits, which,
-as Mr. Spencer contends, are regarded as human and ancestral. Very many
-illustrations of this occur, as, _e.g._ the worship of the Soma plant, and
-its promotion as a deity among the Aryans; the use of tobacco in religious
-ceremonies among the tribes of both Americas; whilst now and again we find
-trees and plants as totems. The Moquis have a totem-kin called the
-tobacco-plant, and also one called the seed-grass. One of the Peruvian
-Incas was called after the native name of the tobacco-plant; and among the
-Ojibways the buffalo grass was carried as a charm, and its god said to
-cause madness.
-
-In Algonquin myth "there is a spirit for the corn, another for beans,
-another for squashes. They are sisters, and are very kind to each other.
-There are spirits in the water, in fire, in all the trees and berries, in
-herbs and in tobacco, in the grass."
-
-The worship of animals is on Mr. Spencer's theory explained as due to the
-giving of a nickname of some beast or bird to a remote ancestor, the
-belief arising in course of time that such animal was the actual
-progenitor, hence its worship. We call a man a bear, a pig, or a vampire,
-in symbolic phrase, and the figure of speech remains a figure of speech
-with us. But the savage loses the metaphor, and it crystallises into hard
-matter-of-fact. So the traditions have grown, and Black Eagle, Strong
-Buffalo, Big Owl, Tortoise, etc., take the shape of actual forefathers of
-the tribe bearing their name and crest. According to the same theory the
-adoration of sun, moon, and mountains, etc., is due to a like source. Some
-famous chief was called the Sun; the metaphor was forgotten; the personal
-and concrete, as the more easily apprehended, remained; hence worship of
-the powers of nature "is a form of ancestor-worship, which has lost in a
-still greater degree the character of the original."[50]
-
-The objection raised in these pages to the extreme application of the
-solar theory applies with equal force to Mr. Spencer's limitation of the
-origin of myth and religion to one source. Having cleared Scylla, we must
-not dash against Charybdis. Religion has its origin neither in fear of
-ghosts, as Mr. Spencer's theory assumes, nor in a perception of the
-Infinite inherent in man, as Professor Max Müller holds. Rather does it
-lie in man's sense of vague wonder in the presence of powers whose force
-he cannot measure, and his expressions towards which are manifold. There
-is underlying unity, but there are, to quote St. Paul, "diversities of
-operation." There is just that surface unlikeness which one might expect
-from the different physical conditions and their resulting variety of
-subtle influences surrounding various races; influences shaping for them
-their gods, their upper and nether worlds; influences of climate and soil
-which made the hell of volcanic countries an abyss of sulphurous stifling
-smoke and everlasting fire, and the hell of cold climates a place of
-deathly frost; which gave to the giant-gods of northern zones their rugged
-awfulness, and to the goddesses of the sunny south their soft and stately
-grace. The theory of ancestor-worship as the basis of every form of
-religion does not allow sufficient play for the vagaries in which the same
-thing will be dressed by the barbaric fear and fancy, nor for the
-imagination as a creative force in the primitive mind even at the lowest
-at which we know it. And, of course, beneath that lowest lies a lower
-never to be fathomed. We are apt to talk of primitive man as if his
-representatives were with us in the black fellows who are at the bottom of
-the scale, forgetting that during unnumbered ages he was a brute in
-everything but the capacity by which at last the ape and tiger were
-subdued within him. Of the beginnings of his _thought_ we can know
-nothing, but the fantastic forms in which it is first manifest compel us
-to regard him as a being whose feelings were uncurbed by reason. That
-ancestor-worship is one mode among others of man's attitude towards the
-awe-begetting, mystery-inspiring universe, none can deny. That his
-earliest temples, as defined sacred spots, were tombs; that he prayed to
-his dead dear ones, or his dead feared ones, as the case may be, is
-admitted. From its strong personal character, ancestor-worship was,
-without doubt, one of the earliest expressions of man's attitude before
-the world which his fancy filled with spirits. It flourishes among
-barbarous races to-day; it was the prominent feature of the old Aryan
-religion; it has entered into Christian practice in the worship of saints,
-and perhaps the only feature of religion which the modern Frenchman has
-retained is the _culte des morts_. That it was a part of the belief of the
-Emperor Napoleon III. the following extract from his will shows:--"We must
-remember that those we love look down upon us from heaven and protect us.
-It is the soul of my great Uncle which has always guided and supported me.
-Thus will it be with my son also if he proves worthy of his name."
-
-But the worship of ancestors is not primal. The comparatively late
-recognition of kinship by savages, among whom some rude form of religion
-existed, tells against it as the earliest mode of worship. Moreover,
-Nature is bigger than man, and this he was not slow to feel. Even if it be
-conceded that sun-myth and sun-worship once arose through the nicknaming
-of an ancestor as the Sun, we must take into account the force of that
-imagination which enabled the unconscious myth-maker, or creed-maker, to
-credit the moving orbs of heaven with personal life and will. The faculty
-which could do that might well express itself in awe-struck forms without
-intruding the ancestral ghost. Further, the records of the classic
-religions, themselves preserving many traces of a primitive
-nature-worship, point to an adoration of the great and bountiful, as well
-as to a sense of the maleficent and fateful, in earth and heaven which
-seem prior to the more concrete worship of forefathers and chieftains.
-
-If for the worship of these last we substitute a general worship of
-spirits, there seems little left on which to differ. As aids to the
-explanation of the belief in animal ancestors and their subsequent
-deification and worship, as of the lion, the bull, the serpent, etc., we
-have always present in the barbaric mind the tendency to credit living
-things, and indeed lifeless, but moving ones, with a passion, a will, and
-a power to help or harm immeasurably greater than man's. This is part and
-parcel of that belief in spirits everywhere which is the key to savage
-philosophy, and the growth of which is fostered by such secondary causes
-as the worship of ancestors.
-
-
-§ VII.
-
-SURVIVAL OF MYTH IN HISTORY.
-
-For proofs of the emergence of the higher out of the lower in philosophy
-and religion, to say nothing of less exalted matters, whether the
-beast-fable or the nursery rhyme, as holding barbaric thought in solution,
-examples have necessarily been drawn from the mythology of past and
-present savage races. But these are too remote in time or standpoint to
-stir other than a languid interest in the reader's mind; their purpose is
-served when they are cited and classified as specimens. Not thus is it
-with examples drawn nearer home from sources at which our young thirst for
-the stirring and romantic was slaked. When we learn that famous names and
-striking episodes are in some rare instances only transformed and
-personified natural phenomena, or, as occurring everywhere, possibly
-variants of a common legend, the far-reaching influence of primitive
-thought comes to us in more vivid and exciting form. And although one
-takes in hand this work of disenchantment in no eager fashion, the loss is
-more seeming than real. Whether the particular tale of bravery, of
-selflessness, of faithfulness, has truth of detail, matters little
-compared with the fact that its reception the wide world over witnesses to
-human belief, even at low levels, in the qualities which have given man
-empire over himself and ever raised the moral standard of the race.
-Moreover, in times like these, when criticism is testing without fear or
-favour the trustworthiness of records of the past, whether of Jew or
-Gentile, the knowledge of the legendary origin of events woven into sober
-history prepares us to recognise how the imagination has fed the stream of
-tradition, itself no mean tributary of that larger stream of history, the
-purity of which is now subject of analysis. As a familiar and interesting
-example let us take the story of William Tell.
-
-Everybody has heard how, in the year 1307 (or, as some say, 1296) Gessler,
-Vogt (or Governor) of the Emperor Albert of Hapsburg, set a hat on a pole
-as symbol of the Imperial power, and ordered every one who passed by to do
-obeisance to it; and how a mountaineer named Wilhelm Tell, who hated
-Gessler and the tyranny which the symbol expressed, passed by without
-saluting the hat, and was at once seized and brought before Gessler, who
-ordered that as punishment Tell should shoot an apple off the head of his
-own son. As resistance was vain, the apple was placed on the boy's head,
-when Tell bent his bow, and the arrow, piercing the apple, fell with it to
-the ground. Gessler saw that Tell, before shooting, had stuck a second
-arrow in his belt, and, asking the reason, received this for answer: "It
-was for you; had I shot my child, know that this would have pierced your
-heart."
-
-Now, this story first occurs in the chronicle of Melchior Russ, who wrote
-at the end of the fifteenth century, _i.e._ about one hundred and seventy
-years after its reputed occurrence. The absence of any reference to it in
-contemporary records caused doubt to be thrown upon it three centuries
-ago. Guillimann, the author of a work on Swiss antiquities, published in
-1598, calls it a fable, but subscribes to the current belief in it because
-the tale is so popular! The race to which he belonged is not yet extinct.
-A century and a half later a more fearless sceptic, who said that the
-story was of Danish origin, was condemned by the Canton of Uri to be burnt
-alive, and in the well-timed absence of the offender his book was ordered
-to be burnt by the common hangman. But the truth is great, and prevails.
-G. von Wyss, the Swiss historian, has pointed out that the name of Wilhelm
-Tell does not occur even once in the history of the three cantons, neither
-is there any trace that a Vogt named Gessler ever served the house of
-Hapsburg there. Moreover, the legend does not correspond to any fact of a
-period of oppression of the Swiss at the hands of their Austrian rulers.
-
-"There exist in contemporary records no instances of wanton outrage and
-insolence on the Hapsburg side. It was the object of that power to obtain
-political ascendancy, not to indulge its representatives in lust or wanton
-insult," and, where records of disputes between particular persons occur,
-"the symptoms of violence, as is natural enough, appear rather on the side
-of the Swiss than on that of the aggrandising Imperial house."[51]
-
-Candour, however, requires that the "evidence" in support of the legend
-should be stated. There is the fountain on the supposed site of the
-lime-tree in the market-place at Altdorf by which young Tell stood, as
-well as the colossal plaster statue of the hero himself which confronts us
-as we enter the quaint village. But more than this, the veritable
-cross-bow itself is preserved in the arsenal at Zurich!
-
-However, although the little Tell's chapel, as restored, was opened with
-a national _fête_, in the presence of two members of the Federal Council,
-in June 1883,[52] the Swiss now admit in their school-teaching that the
-story of the _Apfelschusz_ is legendary.
-
-Freudenberger, who earned his death-sentence for affirming that the story
-came from Denmark, was on the right track, for the following variant of it
-is given by Saxo Grammaticus, a Danish writer of the twelfth century, who
-puts it as happening in the year 950:--
-
- Nor ought what follows to be enveloped in silence. Palnatoki, for some
- time in the body-guard of King Harold (Harold Gormson, or Bluetooth),
- had made his bravery odious to many of his fellow-soldiers by the zeal
- with which he surpassed them. One day, when he had drunk too much, he
- boasted that he was so skilled a bowman that he could hit the smallest
- apple, set on the top of a stick some way off, at the first shot,
- which boast reached the ears of the king. This monarch's wickedness
- soon turned the confidence of the father to the peril of the son, for
- he commanded that this dearest pledge of his life should stand in
- place of the stick, adding a threat that if Palnatoki did not at his
- first shot strike off the apple, he should with his head pay the
- penalty of making an empty boast. This command forced him to attempt
- more than he had promised, and what he _had_ said, reported by
- slanderous tongues, bound him to accomplish what he had _not_ said.
- Yet did not his sterling courage, though caught in the snare of
- slander, suffer him to lay aside his firmness of heart. As soon as the
- boy was led forth Palnatoki warned him to await the speeding of the
- arrow with calm ears and unbent head, lest by any slight movement of
- the body he should frustrate the archer's well-tried skill. He then
- made him stand with his back towards him, lest he should be scared at
- the sight of the arrow. Then he drew three arrows from his quiver, and
- with the first that he fitted to the string he struck the apple. When
- the king asked him why he had taken more than one arrow from his
- quiver, when he was to be allowed to make but one trial with his bow,
- he made answer, "That I might avenge on thee the swerving of the first
- by the points of the others, lest perchance my innocence might have
- been punished, while your violence escaped scot-free."[53]
-
-Going farther northward we find tales corresponding in their main features
-to the above, in the Icelandic _Saga_, the Vilkina; in the Norse _Saga_ of
-Saint Olaf or Thidrik; and in the story of Harold, son of Sigurd. In the
-Olaf _Saga_ it is said that the saint or king, desiring the conversion of
-a brave heathen named Eindridi, competed with him in various athletic
-sports, swam with him, wrestled with him, and then shot with him. Olaf
-then dared Eindridi to strike a writing-tablet from off his son's head
-with an arrow, and bade two men bind the eyes of the child and hold the
-napkin so that the boy might not move when he heard the whizz of the
-arrow. Olaf aimed first, and the arrow grazed the lad's head. Eindridi
-then prepared to shoot, but the mother of the boy interfered and persuaded
-the king to abandon this dangerous test of skill. The story adds that had
-the boy been injured Eindridi would have revenged himself on the king.[54]
-
-Somewhat like this, as from the locality might be expected, is the Faröe
-Isles variant. King Harold challenges Geyti, son of Aslak, and, vexed at
-being beaten in a swimming match, bids Geyti shoot a hazel-nut from off
-his brother's head. He consents, and the king witnesses the feat, when
-Geyti
-
- "Shot the little nut away,
- Nor hurt the lad a hair."
-
-Next day Harold sends for the archer, and says:--
-
- "List thee, Geyti, Aslak's son,
- And truly tell to me,
- Wherefore hadst thou arrows twain
- In the wood yestreen with thee?"
-
-To which Geyti answers:--
-
- "Therefore had I arrows twain
- Yestreen in the wood with me,
- Had I but hurt my brother dear
- The other had pierced thee."
-
-With ourselves it is the burden of the ballad of William of Cloudeslee,
-where the brave archer says:--
-
- "I have a sonne seven years old;
- Hee is to me full deere;
- I will tye him to a stake--
- All shall see him that bee here--
- And lay an apple upon his head,
- And goe six paces him froe;
- And I myself with a broad arroe
- Shall cleave the apple in towe."
-
-In the _Malleus Maleficarum_ Puncher, a magician on the Upper Rhine, is
-required to shoot a coin from off a lad's head; while, travelling
-eastwards as far as Persia, we find the Tell myth as an incident in the
-poem _Mantic Ultraïr_, a work of the twelfth century.
-
-Thus far the variants of the legend found among Aryan peoples have been
-summarised, and it is tempting to base upon this diffusion of a common
-incident a theory of its origin among the ancestors of the Swiss and the
-Norseman, the Persian and the Icelander. But it is found among non-Aryans
-also. The ethnologist, Castrén, whose researches in Finland have secured a
-valuable mass of fast-perishing materials, obtained this tale in the
-village of Ultuwa. "A fight took place between some freebooters and the
-inhabitants of the village of Alajärai. The robbers plundered every house,
-and carried off amongst their captives an old man. As they proceeded with
-their spoils along the strand of the lake a lad of twelve years old
-appeared from among the reeds on the opposite bank, armed with a bow and
-amply provided with arrows; he threatened to shoot down the captors unless
-the old man, his father, was restored to him. The robbers mockingly
-replied that the aged man would be given to him if he could shoot an apple
-off his head. The boy accepted the challenge, pierced the apple and freed
-his father." Among a people in close contact with an Aryan race as the
-Finns are in contact with both Swedes and Russians, the main incident of
-the Tell story may easily have been woven into their native tales. But in
-reference to other non-Aryan races Sir George Dasent, who has treated of
-the diffusion of the Tell story very fully in the Introduction to his
-_Popular Tales from the Norse_ (a reprint of which would be a boon to
-students of folk-lore), says that it is common to the Turks and
-Mongolians, and a legend of the wild Samoyedes, who never heard of Tell or
-saw a book in their lives, relates it, chapter and verse, of one of their
-marksmen. What shall we say, then, but that the story of this bold
-mastershot was prominent amongst many tribes and races, and that it only
-crystallised itself round the great name of Tell by that process of
-attraction which invariably leads a grateful people to throw such mythic
-wreaths, such garlands of bold deeds of precious memory, around the brow
-of its darling champion. Of course the solar mythologists see in Tell the
-sun or cloud deity; in his bow the storm-cloud or the iris; and in his
-arrows the sun-rays or lightning darts.
-
-This is a question which we may leave to the champions concerned to
-settle. Apart from the evidence of the survival of legend in history, and
-the lesson of caution in accepting any ancient record as gospel which we
-should learn therefrom, it is the human element in the venerable tale
-which interests us most.
-
-Remote in time, far away in place, as is its origin, it moves us yet. The
-ennobling qualities incarnated in some hero (whether he be real or ideal
-matters not) meet with admiring response in the primitive listeners to the
-story, else it would have been speedily forgotten. Thus does it retain for
-us witness to the underlying oneness of the human heart beneath all
-surface differences.
-
-Widespread as a myth may be, it takes depth of root according to the more
-or less congenial soil where it is dropped. That about Tell found
-favourable home in the uplands and the free air of Switzerland; with us S.
-George, falling on times of chivalry, had abiding place, as also, less
-rugged of type than the Swiss marksman, had Arthur, the "Blameless King,"
-who, if he ever existed, is smothered in overgrowth of legends both native
-and imported.
-
-For such cycle of tales as gathered round the name of Arthur, and on which
-our youthhood was nourished, is as mythical as the wolf that suckled
-Romulus and Remus. Modern criticism and research have thoroughly sifted
-the legendary from the true, and if the past remains vague and shadowy, we
-at least know how far the horizon of certainty extends. The criticism has
-made short work of the romancing chronicles which so long did duty for
-sober history, and has shown that no accurate knowledge of the sequence of
-events is obtainable until late in the period of the English invasions.
-Save in scattered hints here and there, we are quite in the dark as to the
-condition of this island during the Roman occupation, whilst for anything
-that is known of times prior to this, called for convenience
-"pre-historic," we are dependent upon unwritten records preserved in tombs
-and mounds. The information gathered from these has given us some clue to
-what manner of men they were who confronted the first Aryan immigrants,
-and, enriched by researches of the ethnologist and philologist, enabled us
-to trace the movements of races westwards, until we find old and new
-commingled as one English-speaking folk.
-
-All or any of which could not be known to the earlier chroniclers. When
-Geoffry of Monmouth set forth the glory and renown of Arthur and his Court
-he recorded and embellished traditions six hundred years old, without
-thought of weighing the evidence or questioning the credibility of the
-transmitters. Whether there was a king of that name who ruled over the
-Silures, and around whom the remnant of brave Kelts rallied in their final
-struggle against the invading hordes, and who, wounded in battle, died at
-Glastonbury, and was buried, or rather sleeps, as the legend has it, in
-the Vale of Avilion, "hath been," as Milton says, "doubted heretofore, and
-may again, with good reason, for the Monk of Malmesbury and others, whose
-credit hath swayed most with the learned sort, we may well perceive to
-have known no more of this Arthur nor of his doings than we now
-living."[55]
-
-In the group of legends both of the Old and New World, which, the solar
-theorists tell us, symbolise the long sleep of winter before the sweet
-awakening of the spring, Arthur of course has place. "Men said he was not
-dead, but by the will of our Lord Jesus Christ was in another place, and
-men say that he will come again ... that there is written on his tomb this
-verse:
-
- 'Hic jacet Arthurus rex quondam, Rexque futurus.'"
-
-So Charlemagne reposes beneath the Untersberg, waiting for the appointed
-time to rise and do battle with anti-Christ; Tell slumbers ready-panoplied
-to save Switzerland when danger threatens; the hero-deity of the
-Algonquins, when he left the earth, promised to return, but has not,
-wherefore he is called Glooskap, or the Liar; St. John sleeps at Ephesus
-till the last days are at hand; and the Church militant awaits the return
-of her Lord at the Second Advent.
-
-The comparative mythologists say that Arthur is a myth, pure and simple, a
-variant of Sigurd and Perseus; the winning of his famous sword but a
-repetition of the story of the Teutonic and Greek heroes; the gift of
-Guinevere as fatal to him as Helen to Menelaus; his knights but
-reproductions of the Achaian hosts--much of which may be true; but the
-romance corresponded to some probable event; it fitted in with the
-national traditions. There were struggles between the Kelts and subsequent
-invaders--Romans, Angles, Saxons, Jutes. There were brave chieftains who
-led forlorn hopes or fought to the death in their fastnesses. There were,
-in the numerous tribal divisions, petty kings and queens ruling over mimic
-courts, with retinues of knights bent on chivalrous, unselfish service.
-These were the nuclei of stories which were the early annals of the tribe,
-the glad theme of bards and minstrels, and from which a long line of poets
-to the latest singer of the _Idylls of the King_ have drawn the materials
-of their epics. The fascination which such a cycle of tales had for the
-people, especially in days when the ballad was history and poetry and all
-literature rolled into one, was so strong, that the Church wisely imported
-an element which gave loftier meaning to the knightly life, and infused
-religious ardour into the camp and court. To the stories of Tristram and
-Gawayne, already woven into the old romance, she added the half-Christian,
-half-pagan, legend of the knights who left the feast at the Round Table to
-travel across land and sea that they might free the enslaved, remove the
-spell from the enchanted, and deliver fair women from the monsters of
-tyranny and lust, setting forth on what in her eyes was a nobler quest--to
-seek and look upon the San Graal, or Holy Vessel used by Jesus at the Last
-Supper, and into which Joseph of Arimathea collected the blood and water
-that streamed from the side of the crucified Jesus. This mystic cup, in
-which we have probably a sacrificial relic of the old British religion
-imported into the Christian incident with which it blended so well,
-floated, according to Arthurian legend, suddenly into the presence of the
-King and his Round Table knights at Camelot as they sat at supper, and was
-as suddenly borne away, to be henceforth the coveted object of knightly
-endeavour. Only the baptized could hope to behold it; to the unchaste it
-was veiled: hence only they among the knights who were pure in heart and
-life vowed to go in quest of the San Graal, and return not until they had
-seen it. So to Sir Galahad, the "just and faithful," Tennyson sings how
-the sacred cup appeared--
-
- "Sometimes on lonely mountain meres
- I find a magic bark;
- I leap on board: no helmsman steers:
- I float till all is dark.
- A gentle sound, an awful light!
- Three angels bear the holy Grail:
- With folded feet, in stoles of white,
- On sleeping wings they sail.
- Ah, blessed vision! blood of God!
- My spirit beats her mortal bars,
- As down dark tides the glory slides,
- And, star-like, mingles with the stars."
-
-Whilst in such legends as the Arthurian group the grain of truth, if it
-exists, is so embedded as to be out of reach, there are others concerning
-actual personages, notably Cyrus and Charlemagne, not to quote other names
-from both "profane" and sacred history, in which the fable can be
-separated from the fact without difficulty. Enough is known of the life
-and times of such men to detach the certain from the doubtful, as, _e.g._,
-when Charlemagne is spoken of as a Frenchman and as a Crusader before
-there was a French nation, or the idea of Crusades had entered the heads
-of most Christian kings; and as in the legends of the infancy of Cyrus,
-which are of a type related to like legends of the wonderful round the
-early years of the famous.
-
-This, however, by the way. Leaving illustration of the fabulous in heroic
-story, it will be interesting to trace it through such a tale of pathos
-and domestic life as the well-known one of Llewellyn and his faithful
-hound, Gellert.
-
-Whose emotions have not been stirred by the story of Llewellyn the Great
-going out hunting, and missing his favourite dog; of his return, to be
-greeted by the creature with more than usual pleasure in his eye, but with
-jaws besmeared with blood; of the anxiety with which Llewellyn rushed into
-the house, to find the cradle where had lain his beautiful boy upset, and
-the ground around it soaked with blood; of his thereupon killing the dog,
-and then seeing the child lying unharmed beneath the cradle, and sleeping
-by the side of a dead wolf, from whose ravenous maw the faithful Gellert
-had delivered it? Most of us, in our visits to North Wales, have stood by
-Gellert's grave at Beddgelert, little suspecting that the affecting story
-occurs in the folk-lore of nearly every Aryan people, and of several
-non-Aryan races, as the Egyptians and Chinese.
-
-Probably it comes to us as many other tales have come, through collections
-like the well-known _Gesta Romanorum_, compiled by mediæval monks for
-popular entertainment. In the version given in that book the knight who
-corresponds to Llewellyn, after slaying his dog, discovers that it had
-saved his child from a serpent, and thereupon breaks his sword and departs
-on a pilgrimage to the Holy Land. But the monks were no inventors of such
-tales; they recorded those that came to them through the pilgrims,
-students, traders, and warriors who travelled from west to east and from
-east to west in the Middle Ages, and it is in the native home of fable and
-imagery the storied Orient, that we must seek for the earliest forms of
-the Gellert legend. In the _Panchatantra_, the oldest and most celebrated
-Sanskrit fable-book, the story takes this form:--An infirm child is left
-by its mother while she goes to fetch water, and she charges the father,
-who is a Brahman, to watch over it. But he leaves the house to collect
-alms, and soon after this a snake crawls towards the child. In the house
-was an ichneumon, a creature often cherished as a house pet, who sprang at
-the snake and throttled it. When the mother came back, the ichneumon went
-gladly to meet her, his jaws and face smeared with the snake's blood. The
-horrified mother, thinking it had killed her child, threw her water-jar at
-it, and killed it; then seeing the child safe beside the mangled body of
-the snake, she beat her breast and face with grief, and scolded her
-husband for leaving the house.
-
-We find the same story, with the slight difference that the animal is an
-otter, in a later Sanskrit collection, the _Hitopadesa_, but we can track
-it to that fertile source of classic and mediæval fable, the Buddhist
-_Jâtakas_, or _Birth Stories_, a very ancient collection of fables, which,
-professing to have been told by the Buddha, narrates his exploits in the
-550 births through which he passed before attaining Buddhahood. In the
-_Vinaya Pitaka_ of the Chinese Buddhist collection, which, according to
-Mr. Beal, dates from the fifth century A.D., and is translated from
-original scriptures supposed to have existed near the time of Asoka's
-council in the third century B.C., we have the earliest extant form of
-the tale. That in the _Panchatantra_ is obviously borrowed from it, the
-differences being in unimportant detail, as, for example, the nakula, or
-mongoose, is killed by the Brahman on his return home, the wife having
-neglected to take the child with her as bidden by him. He is filled with
-sorrow, and then a Deva continues the strain:--
-
- "Let there be due thought and consideration,
- Give not way to hasty impulse,
- By forgetting the claims of true friendship
- You may heedlessly injure a kind heart (person)
- As the Brahman killed the nakula."
-
-The several versions of the story which could be cited from German,
-Russian, Persian, and other Aryan folk-lore, would merely present certain
-variations due to local colouring and to the inventiveness of the
-narrators or transcribers; and, omitting these, it will suffice to give
-the Egyptian variant or corresponding form, in which the tragical has
-given place to the amusing, save, perhaps, in the opinion of the Wali.
-This luckless person "once smashed a pot full of herbs which a cook had
-prepared. The exasperated cook thrashed the well-intentioned but
-unfortunate Wali within an inch of his life, and when he returned,
-exhausted with his efforts at belabouring the man, he discovered among the
-herbs a poisonous snake."
-
-In pointing to the venerable Buddhist _Birth Stories_ as the earliest
-extant source of Aryan fables, it should be added that these were with the
-Buddha and his disciples the favourite vehicle of carrying to the hearts
-of men those lessons of gentleness and tenderness towards all living
-things which are a distinctive feature of that non-persecuting religion.
-
-
-§ VIII.
-
-MYTH AMONG THE HEBREWS.
-
-With the important exception of reference to the change effected in the
-Jewish doctrine of spirits, and its resulting influence on Christian
-theology, by the transformation of the mythical Ahriman of the old Persian
-religion into the archfiend Satan, but slight allusion has been made in
-these pages to the myths and legends of the Semitic race. Under this term,
-borrowed from the current belief in their descent from Shem, are included
-extant and extinct people, the Assyrians, Chaldeans or Babylonians,
-Phoenicians, Arabs, Syrians, Jews, and Ethiopians.
-
-The mythology of the Aryan nations has had the advantage of the most
-scholarly criticism, and the light which this has thrown upon the racial
-connection of peoples between whom all superficial likeness had long
-disappeared, as well as upon the early condition of their common
-ancestors, is of the greatest value as aid to our knowledge of the mode of
-man's intellectual and spiritual growth. And the comparisons made between
-the older and cruder forms underlying the elaborated myth and the myths of
-semi-barbarous races have supported conclusions concerning man's
-primitive state identical with those deduced from the material relics of
-the Ancient and Newer Stone Ages, namely, that the savage races of to-day
-represent not a degradation to which man has sunk, but a condition out of
-which all races above the savage have, through much tribulation, emerged.
-An important exception to this has, however, been claimed on behalf of at
-least one branch of the Semitic race--namely, the Hebrews or Jews. This
-claim has rested on their assumed selection by the Deity for a definite
-purpose in the ordering and directing of human affairs; but no assumption
-of supernatural origin can screen the documents of disputed authorship and
-uncertain meaning on which that claim is based from the investigation
-applied to all ancient records; nor can the materials elude dissection
-because hitherto regarded as organic parts of revelation. The real
-difficulties are in the structure of the language and in the scantiness of
-the material as contrasted with the flexile and copious mythology of the
-Aryan race. And the investigation has been in some degree checked by the
-mistaken dicta of authorities such as M. Renan and the late Baron Bunsen;
-the former contending that "the Semites never had a mythology," and the
-latter (although any statement of his carries far less weight) that "it is
-the grand, momentous, and fortunate self-denial of Judaism to possess
-none."
-
-But, independently of the refusal of the student of history to admit that
-exceptional place has been accorded of direct Divine purpose to any
-particular race, the discoveries of literatures much older than the
-Hebrew, and in which legends akin to those in the earlier books of the Old
-Testament are found, together with the proofs of historical connection
-between the peoples having these common legends, have given the refutation
-to the distinctive character of the Semitic race claimed by M. Renan. That
-a people dwelling for centuries, as the Hebrews did, in a land which was
-the common highway between the great nations of antiquity; a people
-subject to vicissitudes bringing them, as the pipkin between iron pots,
-into collision and subject relations to Egyptians, Persians, and other
-powerful folk, should remain uninfluenced in their intellectual
-speculations and religious beliefs, would indeed be a greater miracle than
-that which makes their literature inspired in every word and vowel-point.
-The remarkable collection of cuneiform inscriptions (so called from their
-wedge-like shape: Latin, _cuneus_, a wedge) on the baked clay cylinders
-and tablets of the vast libraries of Babylon and Nineveh, has brought out
-one striking fact, namely, that the Semitic civilisation, venerable as
-that is, was the product of, or at least, greatly influenced by, the
-culture of a non-Semitic people called the Akkadians, from a word meaning
-"highlanders." These more ancient dwellers in the Euphrates valley and
-uplands were not only non-Semitic but non-Aryan, and probably racially
-connected with the complex group of peoples embracing the
-Tatar-Mongolians, the distinguishing features of whose religion are
-Shamanistic, with belief in magic in its manifold forms. "In Babylonia,
-under the non-Semitic Akkadian rule, the dominant creed was the fetish
-worship, with all its ritual of magic and witchcraft; and when the Semites
-conquered the country, the old learning of the land became the property of
-the priests and astrologers, and the Akkadian language the Latin of the
-Empire."[56]
-
-It was during the memorable period of the Exile that the historical
-records of the Jews underwent revision, and from that time dates the
-incorporation into them of legends and traditions which, invested with a
-purity and majesty distinctively Hebrew, were borrowed from the
-Babylonians, although primarily Akkadian. They are here, as elsewhere, the
-product of the childhood of the race, when it speculates and invents,
-framing its theory of the beginnings, their when and how; when it prattles
-of the Golden Age, which seems to lie behind, in the fond and not extinct
-delusion that "the old is better;" when it frames its fairy tales, weird
-or winsome, in explanation of the uncommon, the unknown, and the
-bewildering.
-
-The Babylonian origin of the early biblical stories is now generally
-admitted, although the dogmas based upon certain of them still retard the
-acceptance of this result of modern inquiry in some quarters. That
-reluctance is suggestively illustrated in Dr. Wm. Smith's _Dictionary of
-the Bible_, where, turning to the heading "Deluge," the reader is referred
-to "Flood" and thence to "Noah!"
-
-So much for the legendary; but the analysis of the more strictly mythical,
-the names of culture-ancestors and heroes, sons of Anak and of God,
-scattered over the Pentateuch, is not so easy a matter. The most important
-work in this direction has been attempted by Dr. Goldziher,[57] but even
-his scholarship has failed to convince sympathetic readers that Abraham
-and Isaac are sun-myths, and that the twelve sons of Jacob are the
-zodiacal signs! Under the Professor's etymological solvent the personality
-of the patriarchs disappears, and the charming idylls and pastorals of old
-Eastern life become but phases of the sun and the weather. The Hebrew,
-like the Aryan myth-maker, speaks of the relations of day and night, of
-gray morning and sunrise, of red sunset and the darkness of night, as of
-love and union, or strife and pursuit, or gloomy desire and coy evasion.
-Abh-râm is the High or Heaven-Father (from _râm_, "to be high") with his
-numberless host of descendants. Yis-châk, commonly called Isaac, denotes
-"he who laughs," and so the Laughing one, whom the High Father intends to
-slay, is the smiling day or the smiling sunset, which gets the worst of
-the contest with the night sky, and disappears. Sarah signifies princess,
-or the moon, the queen who rules over the great army glittering amidst the
-darkness. The expulsion of Hagar (derived from a root _hajara_, meaning
-"to fly," and yielding the word hijrâ or "flight," whence the Mohammadan
-Hegira) is the Semitic variant of that inexhaustible theme of all
-mythology, the battle of Day and Night; Hagar flying before the inconstant
-sun and the jealous moon. And so on through the whole range of leading
-characters in Hebrew history; Cain and Abel, in which Dr. Goldziher, to
-whom they are the sun and dark sky, overlooks the more likely explanation
-of the story as a quarrel between nomads and tillers of the soil;
-Jephthah, in which the sun-god kills at mid-day the dawn, his own
-offspring; Samson, or more correctly Shimshôn, from the Hebrew word for
-sun, the incidents of whose life, as expounded by Professor Steinthal,[58]
-are more clearly typical of the labours of the sun; Jonah and the fish, a
-story long ago connected with the myth of Herakles and Hêsionê; "as on
-occasion of the storm the dragon or serpent swallows the sun, so when he
-sets he is swallowed by a mighty fish, waiting for him at the bottom of
-the sea. Then when he appears again on the horizon, he is spat out on the
-shore by the sea-monster."[59]
-
-These bare references must suffice to show that there is in Hebrew
-literature a large body of material which must undergo the sifting and the
-criticism already applied with success to Indo-European and non-Aryan
-myth. This done, the Semitic race will contribute its share of evidence in
-support of those conditions under which it has been the main purpose of
-this book to show that myth has its birth and growth.
-
-
-§ IX.
-
-CONCLUSION.
-
-The multitude of subjects traversed in the foregoing sections has
-compelled presentment in so concise a form that any attempt to gather into
-a few sentences the sum of things said would be as a digest of a digest,
-and it is, therefore, better to briefly emphasise the conclusions to which
-the gathered evidence points. It was remarked at the outset, when
-insisting on the serious meaning which lies at the heart of myths, that
-they have their origin in the endeavour of barbaric man to explain his
-surroundings. The mass of fact brought together illustrates and confirms
-this view, and has thereby tended to raise what was once looked upon as
-fantastic, curious, and lawless, to the level of a subject demanding sober
-treatment and examination on strictly scientific methods.
-
-Archbishop Trench, in his _Study of Words_, quotes Emerson's happy
-characterisation of language as fossil poetry and fossil history: "Just as
-in some fossil, curious and beautiful shapes of vegetable or animal life,
-the graceful fern, or the finely-vertebrated lizard, such as have been
-extinct for thousands of years, are permanently bound up with the stone,
-so in words are beautiful thoughts and images, the imagination and the
-feeling of past ages, of men long since in their graves, of men whose very
-names have perished, preserved and made safe for ever." In like manner we
-may speak of myths as fossil ethics and fossil theology, but, with more
-appositeness, as embryonic ethics and theology, since they contain
-potentially all the philosophies and theologies "that man did ever find."
-
-And to the student of the history of humanity who rejoices in the sure
-foundation on which, tested in manifold ways, the convictions of the
-highest and noblest of the race rest, the value of myth is increased in
-its being a natural outgrowth of the mind when, having advanced to the
-point at which curiosity concerning the causes of surrounding things
-arises, it frames its crude explanations. For not that which man claims to
-have received as a message from the gods, as a revelation from heaven, but
-that which he has learned by experience often painful and bitter, and
-which succeeding generations have either verified or improved upon, or
-disproved altogether, is, in the long run, of any worth. Through it alone,
-as we follow the changes wrought in the process from guess to certainty,
-can we determine what was the intellectual stage of man in his mental
-infancy, and how far it finds correspondences in the intellectual stage of
-existing barbaric races.
-
-Thus, the study of myth is nothing less than the study of the mental and
-spiritual history of mankind. It is a branch of that larger, vaster
-science of evolution which so occupies our thoughts to-day, and with it
-the philosopher and the theologian must reckon. The evidence which it
-brings from the living and dead mythologies of every race is in accord
-with that furnished by their more tangible relics, that the history of
-mankind is a history of slow but sure advance from a lower to a higher; of
-ascent, although with oft backslidings. It confirms a momentous canon of
-modern science, that the laws of evolution in the spiritual world are as
-determinable as they are in the physical. To this we, for the enrichment
-of our life and helpful service of our kind, do well to give heed.
-Wherever we now turn eye or ear the unity of things is manifest, and their
-unbroken harmony heard. With the theory of evolution in our hands as the
-master-key, the immense array of facts that seemed to lie unrelated and
-discrete are seen to be interrelated and in necessary dependence--"a
-mighty sum of things for ever speaking." That undisturbed relation of
-cause and effect which science has revealed and confirmed extends
-backwards as well as reaches forwards; its continuity involves the
-inclusion of man as a part of nature, and the study of his development as
-one in which both the biologist and the mythologist engage towards a
-common end.
-
-
-
-
-II.
-
-DREAMS: THEIR PLACE IN THE GROWTH OF BELIEFS IN THE SUPERNATURAL.
-
-
-"The physical world is made up of atoms and ether, and there is no room
-for ghosts."
-
-W. K. CLIFFORD.
-
-
-"If ghos'es want me to believe in 'em, let 'em leave off skulking i' the
-dark and i' lone places--let 'em come where there's company and candles."
-
-GEORGE ELIOT.
-
-
-DREAMS: THEIR PLACE IN THE GROWTH OF BELIEFS IN THE SUPERNATURAL.
-
-
-§ I.
-
-DIFFERENCE BETWEEN SAVAGE AND CIVILISED MAN.
-
-The evidence as to pre-historic man's material furniture and surroundings,
-which was first gathered from and restricted to ancient river valleys and
-bone caverns of Great Britain, France, and Belgium, is no longer isolated.
-It is supported by evidence which has been collected from every part of
-the globe inhabited in past or present times, and its uniform character
-has enabled us to determine what lies beyond an horizon which within the
-last half century was bounded by the hazy line of myth and tradition. So
-rigid seemed the limit defining man's knowledge of his past that some
-forty years ago even the Geological Society of London recorded with barest
-reference the unearthing of relics witnessing to his presence in Britain
-hundreds of thousands of years ago. The canon was closed, and no one
-ventured to add to the sayings of the book. But the discoveries which had
-disproved belief in the earth's supremacy in the universe, and in its
-creation in six days, led the way to researches into the history of the
-life upon its surface, and especially of that which, in the language of
-ancient writ, was "made in the image of God." When the long-forbidding
-line, imaginary as the equator and lacking its convenience, was crossed,
-there was found the evidence of the conditions under which man emerged
-from a state quite other than that which had formed the burden of legends
-sacred with the hoariness of time. Those conditions, it is well-nigh
-needless to remind the reader, accord with that theory which holds man to
-be no specially-created being, started on this earth, fully equipped,
-Minerva-like, with all ripeness of wisdom and loftiness of soul, but the
-last and long result of an ever-ascending series of organisms ranging from
-the lowest, shapeless, nerveless specks to _homo sapiens_, "the foremost
-in the files of time." Evolution is advance from the simple to the
-complex. The most primitive forms reach maturity in a shorter time than
-the higher forms, and fulfil their purpose quicker, and this doctrine
-applies not only in relation to man and the inferior creatures, but as
-between the several races of man himself. Herein the differences, which
-are determined by size, still more by increase in complexity, of
-brain-stuff, are greater than between the lowest man and the highest
-animals--that is to say, the savage and civilised man are farther apart
-than the savage and the anthropoid ape. The cranial capacity of the
-modern Englishman surpasses that of the non-Aryan inhabitant of India by a
-difference of sixty-eight cubic inches, while between this non-Aryan skull
-and the skull of the gorilla the difference in capacity is but eleven
-inches,[60] and if we were to take into account the differences in
-structural complexity, as indicated by the creasing and furrowing of the
-brain surface, the contrast would be still more striking.
-
-The brains of the earliest known races, the men of the Ancient Stone Age,
-ape-like savages who fought with woolly-haired elephants, cave-lions, and
-cave-bears, amidst the forests and on the slopes of the valleys and hills
-where London now stands, and who in the dawn of human intelligence,
-applying means to ends, came off victorious, were doubtless much nearer to
-the chimpanzee with his thirty-five cubic inches than to the Papuan with
-his fifty-five cubic inches. Indeed, we need not travel beyond this age
-or island; it suffices to compare the brain quality of the rustic,
-thinking of "maistly nowt," with that of the highest minds amongst us, as
-evidence of the enormous diversity between wild and cultivated stocks of
-mankind.
-
-Unless we are so enchained to fond delusions as to place man in a kingdom
-by himself, and deny in the sympathetic, moral, and intellectual faculties
-in brutes the germs of those capacities which, existing in a pre-human
-ancestry, have flowered in the noblest and wisest of our race, we may find
-in such differences as are shown to occur between civilised and primitive
-man further evidence of the enormous time since the latter appeared. For
-unnumbered ages man--then physically hardly distinguishable from apes--may
-have remained stationary. Certainly the relics from the Drift show no
-advance: given no change in the conditions, the species do not vary, and
-man, once adapted to his surroundings, changed only as these changed. But,
-obscure as are the causes, there came a period when conditions arose
-inducing some variation, no matter how slight, in brain development, which
-was of more need than any variation in the rest of the body, and when an
-impetus was given which, leaving the latter but slightly affected,
-quickened the former, so that man passed from the highest animality to the
-lowest humanity. Slowly, in the course of a struggle not yet ended, "the
-ape and tiger" were subdued within him, and those social conditions
-induced to which are due that progress which ever draws him nearer to the
-angels.
-
-The discussion of this in detail lies outside the limits of these pages.
-Here, after briefly noting on what lines it must run, we are concerned
-with man at that far later stage in his development when the physical and
-material evidence respecting his bodily development gives place to the
-psychical and immaterial evidence respecting his mental development.
-Chipped flints, flakes, and scrapers of the Drift are indispensable
-witnesses to his primitive state, but during the long ages that he was
-making shift with them he remains within the boundaries of the zoological;
-he is more geological than human. Gleams of the soul within that will one
-day be responsive to grace of form and harmony of colour appear in the
-rude portraits of mammoth, reindeer, urus, whale, and man himself,
-scratched on ivory and horn. Indications of germinal ideas about an
-after-life are present in the contents of tumuli with the skeletons in
-defined positions, and with weapons presumably for the use of the departed
-in the happy hunting-grounds. In these last we are nearing the historic
-period, for a vast interval exists between the tomb-building races and the
-men of the Reindeer Period, yet even then the ages are many before man had
-so advanced as to bequeath the intangible relics of his thought,
-disclosing what answer he had beat out for himself to the riddle of the
-earth and the mysteries of life and death. Although the story of his
-intellectual and spiritual development is a broken one, of the earlier
-chapters of which we have no record, enough survives to induce and
-strengthen the conviction that in this, as in aught else, there is no
-real disconnection. In the shaping of the rudest pointed flint-tool and
-weapon there are the germs of the highest mechanical art; in the
-discordant war-whoop of the savage the latent strains of the
-"Marseillaise," as, quoting Tennyson, in the eggs of the nightingale
-sleeps the music of the moon. If we cannot get so near to the elemental
-forms of thought as we could wish, we must lay hold of the lowest extant,
-and trace in these the connection to be sought between the barbaric and
-civilised mind. We must have understanding of the mental condition of
-races, still on low levels of culture, and if the result is to show that
-many highly-elaborated beliefs among advanced peoples are but barbaric
-philosophies "writ large," the conception of an underlying unity between
-all nations of men that do dwell, or have dwelt, on the face of the earth,
-will receive additional proof.
-
-
-§ II.
-
-LIMITATIONS OF BARBARIC LANGUAGE.
-
-Illustrations of the low intellectual stage of some extant races not quite
-at the bottom of the scale, drawn from simple matters, will make clearer
-how they will interpret matters of a more complex order, and interpret
-them only in one way.
-
-Of the beginning of thought we can know nothing. For numberless ages man
-was marked out from the animals most nearly allied to him by that power
-of more readily adapting means to ends which gave him mastery over nature.
-Through that dim and dateless time he thought without knowing that he
-thought. "His senses made him conversant only with things externally
-existing and with his own body, and he transcended his senses only far
-enough to draw concrete inferences respecting the action of these
-things."[61] He is human only when the thought reaches us through
-articulate speech. Language, as a means of communication between him and
-his fellows, denotes the existence of the social state, the play of the
-social evolution which gives the impetus to ideas. Language is the outcome
-of man's social needs and nature; he speaks not so much because he thinks
-and feels as because he must perforce tell his thoughts and feelings to
-others. And by the richness or poverty of his speech we may assess the
-richness or poverty of his ideas, since language cannot transcend the
-thought of which it is the vehicle.
-
-By what tones and gestures, by what signs and grimaces, the beginnings of
-speech were made, we know not. Countless processions of races appeared and
-vanished before language had reached a stage when the elements of which
-words are built up could be separated, and the reason which governed the
-choice of this and that sound or symbol discovered. Now and again, when a
-correspondence is found between the roots of terms in use amongst the
-higher races and the names given by lower races to the same thing, we get
-nearer primitive thought, the correspondence being not always in sound or
-spelling, which may be delusive, but in physical or sensible meaning. It
-would be a wholesome corrective of theories concerning the origin of
-languages to which many are yet wedded to show that terms not only for
-things material and concrete, but also for things immaterial and abstract,
-are of purely physical origin, _i.e._ have been chosen from their analogy
-to something real. But the consideration of such matters lies outside the
-purpose of this work.
-
-Language proves the limited range of ideas among barbaric peoples in the
-absence of their capacity to generalise. They have a word for every
-familiar thing, sound, and colour, but no word for animal, plant, sound,
-or colour as abstract terms. It is the concrete, the special shape and
-feature and action of a thing, which strike the senses at the outset; to
-strip it of these accidents, as we call them, and merge it in the general,
-and realise its relation to what is common to the class to which it
-belongs, is an effort of which the untutored mind is incapable. Many of
-the northern non-Aryan tribes, as among the Mongols, have names for the
-smallest rivulet, but no word for river; names for each finger, but no
-word for finger. The Society Islanders have a separate name for the tails
-of various animals, but no name for tail. The Mohicans have verbs for
-every kind of cutting, but no verb "to cut." The Australians and other
-southern aborigines have no generic term for tree, neither have the
-Malays, yet they have words for the several parts, the root, stem, twig,
-etc. When the Tasmanians wished to express qualities of things, as hard,
-soft, warm, long, round, they would say for hard, "like a stone"; for
-tall, "long legs"; for round, "like the moon," and so on. Certain
-hill-tribes of India give names to sunshine, candle, and flames of fire,
-but "light" is a high abstraction which they are unable to grasp. Some of
-the Red Race languages have separate verbs for "I wish to eat meat," or "I
-wish to eat soup," but no verb for "I wish." Of course, the verb "to be,"
-which, as Adam Smith remarked long ago, is the most abstract and
-metaphysical of all words, and therefore of no early coinage, is absent
-from a large number of barbaric languages. Abstract though it be, it is,
-as Professor Whitney points out, made up of the relics of several verbs
-which once had, like all elements and parts of speech, a distinct physical
-meaning. As in "be" and "been" the idea of "growing" is contained, so in
-"am," "art," "is," and "are," the idea of "sitting" (or, as some think, of
-"breathing") is embodied. As an example of its absence, the Abipones
-cannot say "I am an Abipone," only "I Abipone." Turning to another class
-of illustration, we have proof what a far cry it is from the savage to the
-Senior Wrangler in the powerlessness of the former to count beyond his
-fingers; indeed, he cannot always count as far as that, any number beyond
-two bewildering him. One of the best stories to the point is given in Mr.
-Galton's _Tropical South Africa_.
-
-"When the Dammaras wish to express four they take to their fingers, which
-are to them as formidable instruments of calculation as a sliding rule is
-to an English schoolboy. They puzzle very much after five, because no
-spare hand remains to grasp and secure the fingers that are required for
-units. Yet they seldom lose oxen; the way in which they discover the loss
-of one is not by the number of the herd being diminished, but by the
-absence of a face they know. When bartering is going on, each sheep must
-be paid for separately. Thus, suppose two sticks of tobacco to be the rate
-of exchange for one sheep, it would sorely puzzle a Dammara to take two
-sheep and give him four sticks. I have done so, and seen a man put two of
-the sticks apart, and take a sight over them at one of the sheep he was
-about to sell. Having satisfied himself that that one was honestly paid
-for, and finding to his surprise that exactly two sticks remained in hand
-to settle the account for the other sheep, he would be afflicted with
-doubts; the transaction seemed to come out too "pat" to be correct, and he
-would refer back to the first couple of sticks; and then his mind got hazy
-and confused, and wandered from one sheep to the other, and he broke off
-the transaction until two sticks were put into his hand and one sheep
-driven away, and then the other two sticks given him and the second sheep
-driven away. Once while I watched a Dammara floundering hopelessly in a
-calculation on one side of me, I observed Dinah, my spaniel, equally
-embarrassed on the other. She was overlooking half a dozen of her new-born
-puppies, which had been removed two or three times from her, and her
-anxiety was excessive, as she tried to find out if they were all present,
-or if any were still missing. She kept puzzling and running her eyes over
-them, backwards and forwards, but could not satisfy herself. She evidently
-had a vague notion of counting, but the figure was too large for her
-brain. Taking the two as they stood, dog and Dammara, the comparison
-reflected no great honour on the man."
-
-Dr. Rae says that if an Eskimo is asked the number of his children he is
-generally puzzled. After counting some time on his fingers he will
-probably consult his wife, and the two often differ, even though they may
-not have more than four or five in family. Of the languages of the
-Australian savages, who are the lowest extant, examined by Mr. Crawfurd,
-thirty were found to have no number beyond four, all beyond this being
-spoken of as "many," whilst the Brazilian Indians got confused in trying
-to reckon beyond three. The list of such cases might be largely extended,
-and although exceptions occur where savages are found with a fairly wide
-range of numbers, notably where barter prevails, the larger proportion of
-uncivilised people are bewildered at any effort to count beyond three or
-five. The fingers have, in most cases, determined the limits, for men
-counted on these before they gave words to the numbers, the words being at
-last borrowed from the fingers, as in our "five," which is cognate with
-the Greek "pente," and the Persian "pendji" (said to be derived from the
-word for "hand"), and "digits," from Latin "digitus," a finger. This
-limited power of numeration thus shown to be possessed by the savage
-justifies the statement that he is nearer to the ape than to the average
-civilised man, nearer, as the extract from Mr. Galton shows, to the
-spaniel than to the mathematician. What conception of the succession of
-time, still less of it as a confluence of the eternities, can he have
-whose feeble brain cannot grasp a to-morrow! And yet the difference is not
-one of kind, but of degree, which separates the aborigines of Victoria or
-Papua from the astronomer who is led by certain irregularities in the
-motion of a planet to calculate the position of the disturbing cause, and
-thereby to discover it nearly a thousand million miles beyond in the
-planet Neptune.
-
-
-§ III.
-
-BARBARIC CONFUSION BETWEEN NAMES AND THINGS.
-
-Races which have names for different kinds of oaks, but none for an oak,
-still less for a tree, and who cannot count beyond their fingers, may be
-expected to have hazy notions concerning the objective and subjective; or,
-to put these in terms less technical, concerning that which belongs to the
-object of thought, and that which is to be referred to the thinking
-subject. Although primitive religion and philosophy are too nearly allied
-to admit of sharp definitions, the former may be said, if the slang is
-allowed, to be one of funk, and the latter one of fog. There are those
-amongst us who say that the terrorism which lies at the base of the one
-and the mist which is an element of the other, linger yet in extant belief
-and metaphysics. What man cannot understand he fears; and in all primary
-beliefs the powers around which seem to him so wayward are baleful, to be
-appeased by sacrifice or foiled by sorcery. And the confusion which reigns
-in his cosmos extends to his notion of what is in the mind and what is out
-of it. He cannot distinguish between an illusion and a reality, between a
-substance and its image or shadow; and it needs only some bodily ailment,
-as indigestion through gorging, or delirium through starving, to give to
-spectres of diseased or morbid origin, airy nothings, a substantive
-existence, a local habitation, and a name.
-
-The tangle between things and their symbols is well illustrated in the
-barbaric notion that the name of a man is an integral part of himself, and
-that to reveal it is to put the owner in the power of another. An Indian
-asked Kane whether his wish to know his name arose from a desire to steal
-it; the Araucanians would not allow their names to be told to strangers,
-lest these should be used in sorcery. So with the Indians of British
-Columbia; and among the Ojibways husbands and wives never told each
-other's names, the children being warned against repeating their own names
-lest they stop growing. Dobrizhoffer says that the Abipones of Paraguay
-had the like superstition. They would knock at his door at night, and when
-asked who was there, no answer would come, through dread of uttering their
-names. Mr. im Thurn tells us that, although the Indians of British Guiana
-have an intricate system of names, it is "of little use, in that owners
-have a very strong objection to telling or using them, apparently on the
-ground that the name is part of the man, and that he who knows it has part
-of the owner of that name in his power." In Borneo the name of a sickly
-child is changed, to deceive the evil spirits that have tormented it; the
-Lapps change the baptismal name of a child for the same reason; and among
-the Abipones, the Fuegians, the Lenguas of Brazil, the North-West Indians,
-and other tribes at corresponding low levels, when any member died the
-relatives would change their names to elude Death when he should come to
-look for them, as well as give their children horrid names to frighten the
-bad spirits away. All over the barbaric world we find a great horror of
-naming the dead, lest the ghost appear. An aged Indian of Lake Michigan
-explained why tales of the spirits were told only in winter, by saying
-that when the deep snow is on the ground the voices of those repeating
-their names are muffled; but that in summer the slightest mention of them
-must be avoided, lest the spirits be offended. Among the Californian
-tribes the name of the departed spoken inadvertently caused a shudder to
-pass over all those present. Among the Iroquois the name of a dead man
-could not be used again in the lifetime of his oldest surviving son
-without the consent of the latter, and the Australians believe that a dead
-man's ghost creeps into the liver of the impious wretch who has dared to
-utter his name. Dr. Lang tried to get the name of a relative who had been
-killed from an Australian. "He told me who the lad's father was, who was
-his brother, what he was like, how he walked, how he held his tomahawk in
-his left hand instead of his right, and who were his companions; but the
-dreaded name never escaped his lips, and I believe no promises or threats
-could have induced him to utter it." Dorman gives a pathetic illustration
-of this superstition in the Shawnee myth of Yellow Sky. "She was a
-daughter of the tribe, and had dreams which told her she was created for
-an unheard-of mission. There was a mystery about her being, and none could
-comprehend the meaning of her evening songs. The paths leading to her
-father's lodge were more beaten than those to any other. On one condition
-alone at last she consented to become a wife, namely, that he who wedded
-her should never mention her name. If he did, she warned him that a sad
-calamity would befall him, and he would for ever thereafter regret his
-thoughtlessness. After a time Yellow Sky sickened and died, and her last
-words were that her husband might never breathe her name. For five summers
-he lived in solitude, but, alas, one day as he was by the grave of his
-dead wife, an Indian asked him whose it was, and in forgetfulness he
-uttered the forbidden name. He fell to the earth in great pain, and as
-darkness settled round about him a change came over him. Next morning,
-near the grave of Yellow Sky a large buck was quietly feeding. It was the
-unhappy husband."
-
-The original meaning has dropped out of the current saying, "Talk of the
-devil and you'll see his horns," but savage philosophy recovers it for us.
-And the shrinking from naming persons is still more marked as we ascend
-the scale of principalities and powers. In the South Sea Islands not only
-are the names of chiefs tabooed, but also words and syllables resembling
-those names in sound. The Tahitians have a custom called _Te pi_, which
-consists in avoiding in daily language those words which form a part or
-the whole of the names of the king and royal family, and in inventing new
-terms in their place. The king's name being _Tu fetu_, "star," had to be
-changed into _fetia_, and _tui_, "to strike," became _tiai_. In New
-Zealand knives were called _nekra_, because a chief's name was _Maripi_,
-or "knife." It is, Professor Max Müller aptly remarks, as if with the
-accession of Queen Victoria either the word _victory_ had been tabooed
-altogether, or only part of it, as _tori_, so as to make it high treason
-to speak of _Tories_ during her reign. The secret name of Pocahontas was
-Matokas, which was concealed from the English through superstitious fear;
-and in the mythical story of "Hiawatha" the same metonymic practice
-occurs, his real name being Tarenyawagon. A survival of the dislike to
-calling exalted temporal, and also spiritual, beings by their names,
-probably lies at the root of the Jews' unwillingness to use the name of
-Yahweh (commonly and incorrectly spelt Jehovah[62]), and in the name
-"Allah," which is an epithet or title of the Mohammadan deity, and not the
-"great name"; whilst the concealment by the Romans of the name of the
-tutelary deity of their city was fostered by their practice, when
-besieging any place, to invoke the treacherous aid of its protecting god
-by offering him a high place in their Pantheon. And in the title of
-Eumenidês, or the "gracious ones," given to the Furies by the Greeks, may
-be noted a survival of the verbal bribes by which the thing feared was
-"squared." For example, the Finnish hunters called the bear "the apple of
-the forest," "the beautiful honey-claw," "the pride of the thicket"; the
-Laplander speaks of it as "the old man with the fur coat"; in Annam the
-natives call the tiger "grandfather," or "lord"; and the Dyaks of Borneo
-speak of the small-pox as "the chief," or "jungle leaves."
-
-The confusion between ideas and objects which these examples illustrate is
-shared by us, although in a remote degree. If the initials of any
-well-known name are transposed, for example, let W. E. Gladstone be
-printed E. W. Gladstone; or if some familiar name is altered, for example,
-let John Bright be misprinted James Bright, it is curious to note how for
-a moment the identity is obscured in one's mind. Another personality,
-indistinct and bewildering, rises before us, showing how we have come to
-link together a man and his name even to the details of his initials. That
-which we feel momentarily the uncivilised feels constantly. He cannot
-think of himself, of his squaw, of his children, or of his
-fellow-tribesmen, apart from names which are more significant to him than
-ours are to us. With us the reason which governed selection is forgotten
-or obscured, the physical features and conditions no longer correspond to
-ancestral names; but with barbarous peoples those features and conditions
-are more apparent. Besides which, children are often named by the
-medicine-man, and the name is thus endowed with a charm which may roughly
-be analogous to the halo round a name confirmed by baptism to one simply
-recorded in the office of a Registrar of Births.
-
-
-§ IV.
-
-BARBARIC BELIEF IN VIRTUE IN INANIMATE THINGS.
-
-The artificial divisions which man in his pride of birth made between the
-several classes of phenomena in the inorganic world, and also between the
-inorganic and the organic, are being swept away before the larger
-knowledge and insight of our time. Indeed, it would seem that the surest
-test we can apply to the worth of any kind of knowledge is whether it adds
-to or takes from our growing conception of unity. If it does the former,
-we cannot overthrow it; if it does the latter, then is it science "falsely
-so called."
-
-That notable doctrine known as the correlation of physical forces, or the
-convertibility into one another of heat, light, electricity, chemical
-affinity, etc., each being a mode of manifestation of an unknown energy
-which "lives through all life, extends through all extent," has its
-counterpart in the correlation of spiritual forces. Varied as are the
-modes of expression of these, that variety is on the surface only. Deep
-down lies the one source that feeds them, the one heart to whose existence
-their pulsations witness. All primitive philosophies, all religions "that
-man did ever find," are but as the refractions of the same light dispersed
-through different media; are the result of the speculations of the same
-subject, allowances being made for local and non-essential differences
-upon like objects. And, therefore, in treating of the nature and
-limitations of man's early thought concerning his surroundings, whether
-these be the broad earth bathed in the sunshine or swathed in the
-darkness, or the sounds that come from unseen agents, the sight of
-spectral visitants of whom he cannot have touch, and out of which are
-built up his theories of the invisible world, the reader may find
-reference to the same conditions which were shown in former pages to give
-birth and sustenance to primitive myth. The same fantastic conclusions,
-drawn from rude analyses and associations, and from seeming connections of
-cause and effect, the same bewildering entanglement between things which
-we know can have nothing in common, meet us; and the same scientific
-method by which we determine the necessary place of each in the advance of
-man to truth through illusion is applied.
-
-The illustrations of the vital connection which the savage assumes between
-himself and his name show how easy is the passage from belief in life
-inhering in everything to belief in it as capable of power for good or
-evil. This can be shown by illustrations from more tangible things than
-names. The savage who is afraid to utter these also shrinks from having
-his likeness taken, in the feeling that some part of him is transferred,
-and at the mercy of the sorcerer and enemy. The Malemutes of North America
-refused to risk their lives before a photographic apparatus. They said
-that those who had their likenesses had their spirit, and they would not
-let these pass into the keeping of those who might use them as instruments
-of torment. Catlin relates that he caused great commotion among the Sioux
-by drawing one of their chiefs in profile. "Why was half his face left
-out?" they asked; "Mahtocheega was never ashamed to look a white man in
-the face." The chief himself did not take offence, but Shouka the Dog
-taunted him, saying: "The Englishman knows that you are but half a man; he
-has painted but one-half of your face, and knows that the rest is good
-for nothing." This led to a quarrel, and in the end Mahtocheega was shot,
-the fatal bullet tearing away just that part of the face which Catlin had
-not drawn! He had to make his escape, and the matter was not settled till
-both Shouka and his brother had been killed in revenge for Mahtocheega's
-death. The Yanktons accused Catlin of causing a scarcity of buffaloes by
-putting a great many of them in his book, and refused to let him take
-their portraits. So with the Araucanians, who ran away if any attempt was
-made to sketch them. Among such races we find great care exercised lest
-cuttings of hair, parings of nails, saliva, refuse of food, water in which
-they had washed, etc., should fall into unfriendly or mistrusted hands.
-The South Sea Island chiefs had servants following them with spittoons,
-that the saliva might be buried in some hidden place. Among the
-Polynesians any one who fell ill attributed it to some sorcerer, who had
-got hold of refuse from the sick and was burning it, and the quiet of the
-night was often broken by the blowing of shell-trumpets, as signals for
-the sorcerer to stop until the gifts on their way to appease him could
-arrive. The idea is common both to Eskimo and Indian that so long as a
-fragment of a body remains unburnt, the being, man or beast, may, by
-magic, be revived from it. As with the name or the portrait, whoever
-possessed a part of the material substance possessed a part of the
-spiritual, and in this world-wide belief in a sympathetic connection
-between things living and not living lies the whole philosophy of
-sorcery, of charms, amulets, spells, and the general doctrine of luck
-surviving through the successive stages of culture to this day. And he who
-would prevent anything from his person getting into hostile hands,
-naturally sought after things in which coveted qualities were believed to
-dwell, and avoided those of a reverse nature. So we find tiger's flesh
-eaten to give courage, and the eyes of owls swallowed to give good sight
-in the dark. The Kaffirs prepare a powder made of the dried flesh of
-various wild beasts, the leopard, tiger, elephant, snake, etc., so as to
-absorb the several virtues of these creatures. The Tyrolese hunter wears
-his tuft of eagle's down to gain long sight and daring, and the Red Indian
-strings bears claws round his neck to get Bruin's savage courage. The
-customs of scalping and, in some measure, of cannibalism, may be referred
-to the same notion, for the Red man will risk his life to prevent a
-tribesman's scalp being captured by the foe, and the New Zealander will
-swallow the eyes of his slain enemy to improve his sight. In Greenland "a
-slain man is said to have power to avenge himself upon the murderer by
-_rushing into him_, which can only be prevented by eating a piece of his
-liver."[63] When a whaler died the Eskimos distributed portions of his
-dried body among his friends, and rubbed the points of their lances with
-them, it being held that a weapon thus charmed would pierce a vital part
-in a whale, where another would fail. Sometimes the body was laid in a
-cave, and, before starting for the chase, the whalers would assemble, and,
-carrying it to a stream, plunge it in, and then drink the water. When the
-heroic Jesuit Brébeuf was tortured by the Iroquois, they were so
-astonished at his endurance that they laid open his breast and came in a
-crowd to drink the blood of so valiant a foe, thinking to imbibe with it
-some portion of his courage, while a chief tore out his heart and devoured
-it.
-
-Cannibalism, it may be remarked, _en passant_, is also found to have a
-religious significance, on the supposition, which has unsuspected survival
-among advanced races, that eating the body and drinking the blood
-communicates the spirit of the victim to the consumer. It is not always
-the most savage races who practise it; for example, the Australians,
-despite the scarcity of large animals for food supply, rarely ate the
-flesh of man, whilst the New Zealanders, who rank far above them, and had
-not the like excuse, were systematic feeders on human flesh.
-
-As examples of a reverse kind, but witnessing to the play of like beliefs
-in qualities passing from brutes and lifeless things, we find some races
-avoiding oil, lest the game slip through their fingers, abstaining from
-the flesh of deer, lest it engenders timidity, and from that of pigs and
-of tortoises lest the eater has very small eyes. Dr. Tylor gives an
-apposite illustration of a kindred superstition in the Hessian lad who
-thinks that he may escape the conscription by carrying a baby-girl's cap
-in his pocket as a symbolical way of repudiating manhood. So the thief of
-our London slums hopes to evade the police by carrying a piece of coal or
-slate in his pocket for luck. Among ourselves there was an old medical
-saw, "Hare-flesh engendereth melancholy bloude," and in Swift's _Polite
-Conversation_ we have this reason assigned by Lady Answerall when asked to
-eat it; whilst faith is not yet extinct in the "Doctrine of Signatures,"
-or the notion that the appearance of a plant indicates the disease for
-which it is a remedy, as the "eye-bright," the black purple spot on the
-corolla of which was said to show that it was good for weak eyes. In
-referring to the mandrake superstition (a plant whose roots are said to
-rudely resemble the human form) as illustration of the "recognised
-principles in magic that things like each other, however superficially,
-affect each other in a mystic way and possess identical properties," Mr.
-Andrew Lang quotes a Melanesian belief that a stone in the shape of a pig,
-of a bread-fruit, of a yam, was a most valuable find, because it made pigs
-prolific and fertilised bread-fruit trees and yam-plots.[64]
-
-Brand remarks[65] that the custom of giving infants coral to help in
-cutting the teeth is said to be a survival of an old belief in it as an
-amulet; and in English, Sicilian, and West Indian folk-lore, we find the
-belief that it changes colour in sympathy with the pale or healthy look of
-the wearer. An old Latin author says,[66] "It putteth of lightenynge,
-whirle-wynde, tempeste, and storms fro shyppes and houses that it is in."
-
-We are each of us hundreds of thousands of years old, and although our
-customs and beliefs have a far less venerable antiquity, their sources lie
-not less in primitive thought. Like the survival of the ancient Roman
-workman's "casula" or "little house" or "shelter" in the chasuble of the
-priest; like the use of stone knives in circumcision long after the
-discovery of metals; the general tends to become special; the common, its
-primitive need or service forgotten, to become sacred. Sometimes the early
-idea abides; the Crees, who carry about the bones of the dead carefully
-wrapped up as a fetish; the Caribs, who think such relics can answer
-questions; the Xomanes, who drink the powdered bones in water, that they
-may receive the spirit; the Algonquins, whose god Manobozho turned bits of
-his own flesh or his wife's into raccoons for food; the Iroquois cited
-above; represent the barbarous ancestry of higher races, whether of the
-Bacchanalians described by Arnobius,[67] who thought that the fulness of
-the divine majesty was imparted to them when they tore and ate the
-struggling rams with mouths dripping with gore, or of the faithful who
-receive nutriment through the symbols of the Cross. And the prayers of
-savage and civilised have this in common, that some advantage is thereby
-sought by the utterer; their sacrifices are alike the giving up of one's
-goods or one's self to a deity who may be appeased or bribed thereby;
-their fastings are cultivated as inducing the abnormal states in which
-their old men dream dreams and their young men see visions of spirits
-appearing as angels ascending and descending between earth and the abode
-of the blest. Baptisms are the ancient lustrations, which water, as the
-cleansing element, suggested; and the eastward position, over which
-priests and ecclesiastics have fought, is the undoubted relic of worship
-of the rising sun.
-
-In short, there is no rite or ceremony yet practised and revered amongst
-us which is not the lineal descendant of barbaric thought and usage,
-expressing a need which, were men less the slaves of custom and indolence,
-would long since have found loftier form than in genuflexion before shrine
-and reliquary. By an exercise of imagination not possible but for these
-being a felicitous "gesture language" of the cries of human souls, a mass
-of heathen and pagan rites have been transformed into those of the
-Christian faith. That they have come to be mistaken for the ideas
-symbolised, that with the loftiest spiritual teaching there should remain
-commingled belief in miraculous power in fragments (mostly spurious) of
-dead men and their clothes; only shows the persistency of that notion of a
-vital connection between the lifeless and the living which this section
-has sought to illustrate.
-
-
-§ V.
-
-BARBARIC BELIEF IN THE REALITY OF DREAMS.
-
-The confusion in the barbaric mind between the objective and the
-subjective, and between the name and the person or thing, which has been
-illustrated in the foregoing pages, will enable us to see more clearly how
-the like confusion must enter into the interpretation of such occult and
-compound phenomena as dreams, and all their kind.
-
-They supply the conditions for exciting and sustaining that feeling of
-mystery which attends man's endeavour to get at the meaning of his
-surroundings. The phantasies which have defiled through the brain in
-coherent order, or danced in mazy whirl about its sinuous passages when
-complete sleep was lacking, leave their footprints on the memory, and they
-are strong of head and heart, true pepticians, like the countryman cited
-by Carlyle, who, "for his part, had no system," whose composure on awaking
-is not affected by the harmonious or discordant, the pleasant or
-disagreeable, illusions which have made up their dreams. In the felicitous
-words of Lucretius, "When sleep has chained down our limbs in sweet
-slumber, and the whole body is sunk in profound repose, yet then we seem
-to ourselves to be awake and to be moving our limbs, and amid the thick
-darkness of night we think we see the sun and the daylight; and though in
-a confined room, we seem to be passing to new climates, seas, rivers,
-mountains, and to be crossing plains on foot, and to hear voices, though
-the austere silence of night prevails all round, and to be uttering
-speech, though quite silent. Many are the other things of this marvellous
-sort we see, which all seek to shake, as it were, the credit of the
-senses: quite in vain, since the greatest part of these cases cheat us on
-account of the mental suppositions which we add of ourselves, taking those
-things as seen which have not been seen by the senses. For nothing is
-harder than to separate manifest facts from doubtful, which the mind
-without hesitation adds on of itself."[68]
-
-While for us dreams fill an empty moment in the telling, albeit now and
-again nurturing such remains of superstition as cling to the majority of
-people, they are to the untrained intelligence, unable to distinguish fact
-from fiction, or to follow any sequence of ideas, as solid as the
-experiences of waking moments. As a Zulu, well expressing the limits of
-savage thought, said to Bishop Callaway, "Our knowledge does not urge us
-to search out the roots of it, we do not try to see them, if any one
-thinks ever so little, he soon gives it up, and passes on to what he sees
-with his eyes; and he does not understand the real state of even what he
-sees." Nor does his language clear the confusion within when he tells what
-he has seen and heard and felt, where he has been and what he has done,
-for the speech cannot transcend the thought, and therefore can represent
-neither to himself nor to his hearers the difference between the illusions
-of the night and the realities of the day. The dead relatives and friends
-who appear in dreams and live their old life, with whom he joins in the
-battle, the chase, and the feast, the foes with whom he struggles, the
-wild beasts from whom he flees, or in whose clutches he feels himself, and
-with shrieks awakens his squaw, the long distances he travels to sunnier
-climes lit by a light that never was on land or sea, are all real, and no
-"baseless fabric of a vision." That now and again he should have walked in
-his sleep would confirm the seeming reality; still more so would the
-intensified form of dreaming called "nightmare,"[69] when hideous spectres
-sit upon the breast, stopping breath and paralysing motion, and to which
-is largely due the creation of the vast army of nocturnal demons that fill
-the folk-lore of the world, and that, under infinite variety of repellent
-form, have had place in the hierarchy of religions.
-
-Dreams are in the main referred by the savage either to the entrance into
-him of some outside spirit, as among the Fijians, who believe that the
-spirit of a living man will leave the body to trouble sleeping folk, or to
-the real doings of himself.
-
-When the Greenlander dreams of hunting, or fishing, or courting, he
-believes that the soul quits the body; the Dyaks of Borneo think that
-during sleep the soul sometimes remains in the body or travels far away,
-being endowed, whether present or absent, with conditions which in waking
-moments are lacking. Wherever we find a low state of mental development
-the like belief exists. In Mr. im Thurn's elaborate work on the _Indians
-of Guiana_ we have corroborative evidence, the more valuable because of
-its freshness. He tells us that the dreams which come to the Indian are to
-him as real as any of the events of his waking life. To him dream-acts
-and waking-acts differ only in one respect--namely, that the former are
-done only by the spirit, the latter are done by the spirit in its body.
-Seeing other men asleep, and afterwards hearing from them the things which
-they suppose themselves to have done when asleep, the Indian has no
-difficulty in reconciling that which he hears with the fact that the
-bodies of the sleepers were in his sight and motionless throughout the
-time of supposed action, because he never questions that the spirits,
-leaving the sleepers, played their part in dream-adventures. Mr. im Thurn
-illustrates the complete belief of the Indian in the unbroken continuity
-of his dream-life and waking-life by incidents which came under his own
-notice, and which are quoted as serving the present argument better than
-any theorising.
-
- One morning when it was important to me to get away from a camp on the
- Essequibo River, at which I had been detained for some days by the
- illness of some of my Indian companions, I found that one of the
- invalids, a young Macusi, though better in health, was so enraged
- against me that he refused to stir, for he declared that, with great
- want of consideration for his weak health, I had taken him out during
- the night and had made him haul the canoe up a series of difficult
- cataracts. Nothing could persuade him that this was but a dream, and
- it was some time before he was so far pacified as to throw himself
- sulkily into the bottom of the canoe. At that time we were all
- suffering from a great scarcity of food, and, hunger having its usual
- effect in producing vivid dreams, similar events frequently occurred.
- More than once the men declared in the morning that some absent man,
- whom they named, had come during the night, and had beaten, or
- otherwise maltreated them; and they insisted on much rubbing of the
- bruised parts of their bodies. Another instance was amusing. In the
- middle of one night I was awakened by an Arawak named Sam, the captain
- or head-man of the Indians who were with me, only to be told the
- bewildering words, "George speak me very bad, boss; you cut his bits!"
- It was some time before I could collect my senses sufficiently to
- remember that "bits," or fourpenny-pieces, are the units in which,
- among Creoles and semi-civilised Indians, calculation of money, and
- consequently of wages, is made; that to cut bits means to reduce the
- number of bits or wages given; and to understand that Captain Sam,
- having dreamed that his subordinate George had spoken insolently to
- him, the former, with a fine sense of the dignity of his office, now
- insisted that the culprit should be punished in real life. One more
- incident, of which the same Sam was the hero, may be told for the sake
- of the humour, though it did not happen within my personal experience,
- but was told me by a friend. This friend, in whose employ Sam was at
- the time, told his man, as they sat round the fire one night, of the
- Zulu or some other African war which was then in progress, and in so
- doing inadvertently made frequent use of the expression, "to punish
- the niggers." That night, after all in camp had been asleep for some
- time, they were raised by loud cries for help. Sam, who was one of the
- most powerful Indians I ever saw, was "punishing a nigger" who
- happened to be one of the party; with one hand he had firmly grasped
- the back of the breeches-band of the black man, and had twisted this
- round so tightly that the poor wretch was almost cut in two. Sam
- sturdily maintained that he had received orders from his master for
- this outrageous conduct, and on inquiry it turned out that he had
- dreamed this.[70]
-
-Taking an illustration from nearer home, although from a more remote time,
-we have in the Scandinavian _Vatnsdæla Saga_ a curious account of three
-Finns who were shut up in a hut for three nights, and ordered by
-Ingimund, a Norwegian chief, to visit Iceland, and inform him of the line
-of the country where he was to settle. Their bodies became rigid, and they
-sent their souls on their errand, and, on their awaking at the end of
-three days, gave an accurate account of the Vatnsdæl, in which Ingimund
-ultimately dwelt. No wonder that in mediæval times, when witches swept the
-air and harried the cattle, swooning and other forms of insensibility were
-adduced in support of the theory of soul-absence, or that we find among
-savages--as the Tajals of the Luzon islands--objections to waking a
-sleeper lest the soul happens to be out of the body. As a corollary to
-this belief in soul-absence, fear arises lest it be prolonged to the peril
-of the owner, and hence a rough and ready theory of the cause of disease
-is framed, for savages rarely die in their beds.
-
-
-§ VI.
-
-BARBARIC THEORY OF DISEASE.
-
-That disease is a derangement of functions interrupting their natural
-action, and carrying attendant pain as its indication, could not enter the
-head of the uncivilised: and, indeed, among ourselves a cold or a fever is
-commonly thought of as an entity in the body which has stolen in, and,
-having been caught, must be somehow expelled. With the universal primitive
-belief in spiritual agencies everywhere inhaled with the breath or
-swallowed with the food or drink, all diseases were regarded as their
-work, whether, as remarked above, through absence of the rightful spirit
-or subtle entrance of some hostile one. If these be the causes to which
-sicknesses are due, obviously the only cure is to get rid of them, and
-hence the sorcerer and the medicine-man find their services in request in
-casting out the demon by force, or enticing him by cajolery, or in
-bringing back the truant soul.
-
-To the savage mind no other explanation of illness is possible than that
-it is due to the exit of one's own spirit or to the intrusion of a
-stronger one, whether of revengeful man or animal. An old Dakota, whose
-son had sore eyes, said that nearly thirty years before, when the latter
-was a boy, he fastened a pin to a stick and speared a minnow with it, and
-it was strange that after so long a time the fish should come to seek
-revenge. When an Indian is attacked by any wild beast he believes that the
-avenging Kenaima has transferred his spirit to the animal which seizes
-him, and if he has even a toothache, of which more presently, then the
-Kenaima has insinuated himself in the shape of a worm. The tribal chief
-among the Brazilian natives acts as doctor, and when he visits the sick he
-asks what animal the patient has offended, and if no cure is effected, the
-convenient explanation is at hand that the right animal has not been
-found. At the death of Iron Arms, a noted North American Indian warrior,
-it was said that he died because the doctor made a mistake, thinking that
-a prairie-dog had entered him, when it was a mud-hen. In the weird
-mythology of the Finns the third daughter of the ruler of Tuonela, the
-underworld, sits on a rock rising from hell-river, beneath which the
-spirits of all diseases are shut up. As she whirls the rock round like a
-millstone the spirits escape and go on their torturing errand to mortals.
-The more abnormal and striking phases of disease manifest when a man is
-writhing under intense agony, as if torn and twisted by some fiendish
-living thing, or when in delirium he raves and starts, or when thrown down
-in epilepsy he struggles convulsively, or when he shivers in an ague, or
-when in more violent forms of madness he seems endowed with superhuman
-strength; the various symptoms attending hysteria; each and all support
-that theory of spirit-influence which survives among advanced races in
-referring disease to supernatural causes. For the ancient theories of a
-divine government under which disease is the expression of the anger of
-the gods, and medicine the token of their healing mercy, and the current
-notions that any epidemic or pestilence is a visitation of God, are
-identical in character, however improved in feature, with the barbaric
-belief illustrated above; and in the ages when belief in the devil as one
-walking to and fro upon the earth was rampant, he especially was regarded
-as bringer of both bane and antidote. "He may," says an old writer,
-"inflict diseases, which is an effect he may occasion _applicando activa
-passivis_ (by applying actives to passives), and by the same means he may
-likewise cure ... and not only may he cure diseases laid on by himself, as
-Wierus observes, but even natural diseases, since he knows the natural
-causes and the origin of even those better than the physicians can, who
-are not present when diseases are contracted, and who, _being younger than
-he_, must have less experience."[71] In Lancashire folk-lore "casting out
-the ague" was but another name for "casting out the devil"; in the Arabic
-language the words for epilepsy and possession by demons are the same; and
-in such phrases as a man being "beside himself," "transported," "out of
-his mind," or in the converse, as when it is said in the parable of the
-prodigal son, "he came to himself"; in the words "ecstasy," which means a
-displacement or removal of the soul, and "catalepsy," a seizing of the
-body by some external power, we have language preserving the primitive
-ideas of an intruding or departing spirit. Such minor actions as gaping
-and sneezing confirm the belief. The philosophy of the latter, as Mr. Gill
-remarks in his _Myths and Songs of the South Pacific_, is that the spirit
-having gone travelling about, its return to the body is naturally attended
-with some difficulty and excitement, occasioning a tingling and enlivening
-sensation all over the body. And the like explanation lies at the root of
-the mass of customs attendant on sneezing, and of the superstitions
-generated by it, which extend through the world.
-
-Williams tells us that among the Fijians, when any one faints or dies,
-their spirit, it is said, may sometimes be brought back by calling after
-it, and occasionally the ludicrous scene is witnessed of a stout man lying
-at full length and bawling out lustily for the return of his soul. So in
-China, when a child is lying dangerously ill, its mother will go outside
-into the garden and call its name, in the hope of bringing back the
-wandering spirit. But for all the ills that flesh is heir to, from
-hiccupping to madness, from toothache to broken limbs, the patient seldom
-dares to doctor himself; neither the etiquette of the ordained
-medicine-man nor the orthodox therapeutics favour that show of
-independence. The methods adopted by the faculty vary in detail, but they
-are ruled by a single assumption. When a Chinaman is dying, and the soul
-is believed to be already out of the body, a relative holds up his coat on
-a bamboo stick, and a Taoist priest seeks by incantations to bring back
-the truant soul so that it may re-enter the sick man. Among the Six
-Nations the Indians sought to discover the intruder by gathering a
-quantity of ashes and scattering them in the cabin where the sick person
-was lying. A similar recipe for tracking demons is given in the _Talmud_;
-but, as more nearly bearing on the Indian practice, a Polish custom
-mentioned by Grimm[72] may be quoted. When the white folk torment a sick
-man a friend walks round him carrying a sieveful of ashes on his back, and
-lets the ashes run out till the floor round the bed is covered with them.
-The next morning all the lines in the ashes are counted, and the result
-told to a wise woman, who prescribes accordingly.
-
-A favourite mode of treatment is blowing upon or sucking the diseased
-organ, and deception is no infrequent resort when the sorcerer secretes
-thorns or fishbones, beetles or worms, in his mouth, and then pretends
-that he has extracted them. Cranz says that the Eskimo old women appear to
-suck from a swollen leg scraps of leather or a parcel of hair which they
-have previously crammed into their mouths, and in Australia the same dodge
-is practised, when the sorcerer makes believe that he has drawn out a
-piece of bone from the affected part. That toothache is due to a worm is a
-belief which exists throughout Europe and Asia, and from the Orkneys to
-New Zealand. Shakspere refers to it in _Much Ado about Nothing_, Act III.
-Scene ii.--
-
- _Don Pedro._ What! sigh for the toothache?
-
- _Leonata._ Where is but a humour or a worm;
-
-and instances are current of this superstition being acted upon in rural
-districts, whilst in China the itinerant dentist conceals a worm in the
-stick which he applies to the aching tooth, and on the stick being gently
-tapped, the worm wriggles out to the satisfaction of the sufferer. But
-among barbaric races the treatment of disease is ordinarily the reverse of
-soothing. Here and there the virtues of some plant have been discovered by
-accident, and, whilst exalted into a deity in its native home, it has
-become, like cinchona, a priceless boon to the fever-stricken all over the
-world; but, speaking broadly, the medicine-man is no Melampus, winning
-the secret of their healing balm from herb and tree. Nor has he much faith
-in magic or charm compared to his faith in noise, in incantations, with
-their accompanying hideous grimaces and gestures, and their deafening
-yells with clang of instrument to drown the sufferer's groans and chase
-away the demon. Not unfrequently, when the patient is kept without food so
-as to starve out the indwelling enemy, or when the body is pommelled and
-squeezed to force him out, the remedy helps the disease! An illustration
-or two from a great mass at command must suffice. Among the Mapuches the
-sorcerer adopts the canonical howls and grimaces. Making himself as
-horrible-looking as he can, he begins beating a drum and working himself
-into a frenzy until he falls to the ground with his breast working
-convulsively. As soon as he falls, a number of young men outside the hut,
-who are there to help him in frightening the disease-bringing spirit out
-of the patient, add their defiant yells, and dash at full speed, with
-lighted torches, against the hut. If this does not succeed, and the
-patient dies, the result is attributed to witchcraft. When a Pawnee chief
-had some ribs and an arm broken, the medicine-men danced round him, and
-raised their voices from murmurous chants to howls, accompanying the music
-by blows upon the wounded man's breast to banish the bad spirit. In olden
-time this rough-and-tumble business of blows, to which immersion was
-added, was applied to lunatics in these islands. And, in fact, until some
-local paper narrates a current superstition, we seldom awaken to the fact
-how widely the theological explanation of diseases and the empirical
-choice of remedies still obtains, each being survivals of barbaric theory
-and practice.
-
-The savage who has more faith, as a curative, in plants that grow on
-burial-places, and the Christian, who ascribed special healing power to
-turf and dew from a saint's grave,[73] differ no whit in kind; and so
-ingrained was the medicinal belief in virtue inhering in fragments of the
-dead, that not even the satire of "Reynard the Fox," telling how the wolf
-was cured of his earache, and the hare of his fever, the moment that they
-lay down on the grave of the martyred hen, could give quietus to the
-notion that grated skulls and sacramental shillings were specifics for the
-healing of the faithful.
-
-This reference to like practices reminds us how belief in the action of
-invisible agencies has passed into the practice of confession among
-advanced races outside Christendom, as in Mexico and Peru. The Roman
-Catholic priests were not less astonished at finding this in vogue on
-their arrival in South America than the good Father Huc when, on reaching
-Tibet, he found shaven monks wearing rosaries, worshipping relics, using
-holy water, and a grand Lama decked in mitre, cope, and cross.[74] But, as
-the Italian proverb has it, the world is one country, and "we have all
-one human heart," so that the confessional has the like explanation in
-east as in west. If the disease be the work of an offended deity or of an
-avenging spirit, let the wrong-doer admit his fault, and trust to him who
-is credited with influence with the unseen to exorcise the intruder.
-
-
-§ VII.
-
-BARBARIC THEORY OF A SECOND SELF OR SOUL.
-
-In thus far illustrating the confusion inherent in the barbaric mind
-between what is and what is not external to itself, the explanation given
-of matters still dividing philosophers into opposite camps has been hardly
-indicated. The uniformity of this confusion among the lower intelligence
-in every zone and age might surprise us, and we should be in bondage to
-the theory which explains it by assumption of primal intuitions of the
-race, were we not rejoicing in the freedom of the truth of the doctrine of
-the descent, or ascent, of man from an ape-like ancestry, and the
-resulting slow development of his psychical faculties, involving his
-accounting for motion in things around by the like personal life and will
-of which he is conscious in himself, and for his regarding the world of
-great and small alike as the home and haunt of spirits.
-
-For the assumption underlying the savage explanation of such things as
-dreams and diseases involves a larger assumption--namely, that the spirit
-which acts thus arbitrarily, playing this game of hide-and-seek, now, as
-it were, caught up into Paradise, and now dodging its owner and worrying
-its enemy on earth--is, to quote Mr. Spencer's appropriate term, a man's
-_other self_. It is, at least, what the scientists call a working
-hypothesis; it is the only possible explanation which the uncultivated
-mind can give of what it has not the power to see is a subjective
-phenomenon. Odd and out-of-the-way events have happened to the dreamer; he
-has been to strange places and seen strange doings, but waking up, he
-knows that he is in the same wigwam where he laid down to sleep, and can
-be convinced by his squaw that he has not moved therefrom all night.
-Therefore it is the other self, this phantom-soul, which has been away for
-a time, seeing and taking part in things both new and old. We civilised
-folk, as Dr. Wendell Holmes remarks, not rarely find our personality
-doubled in our dreams, and do battle with ourselves, unconscious that we
-are our own antagonists. Dr. Johnson dreamed that he had a contest with an
-opponent and got the worst of it; of course, he found the argument for
-both! Tartini heard the devil play a wonderful sonata, and lay entranced
-by the arch-fiend's execution. On waking he seized his violin, and
-although he could not reproduce the actual succession of notes, he
-recovered sufficient impressions to compose his celebrated "Devil's
-Sonata." Obviously the devil was no other than Tartini.
-
-Thus the philosopher, to whom dreaming merely indicates a certain amount
-of uncontrolled mental activity, may satisfy himself; not thus can the
-savage, who cannot even think that he thinks, and to whom the phenomena of
-shadows, reflection, and echoes bring confirming evidence of the existence
-of his mysterious double. What else than a veritable entity can his shadow
-be to him? Its intangibility feeds his awe and wonder, and increases his
-bewilderment; its actions, ever corresponding with his own, make it, even
-more than its outline, a part of himself, the loss of which may be
-serious. Only when the light is withdrawn or intercepted does the shadow
-cease to accompany, precede, or follow him, and to lengthen, shorten, or
-distort itself; whilst not he alone, but all things above and around, have
-this phantom attendant. The Choctaws believed that each man has an outside
-shadow, _shilombish_, and an inside shadow, _shilup_, both of which
-survive his decease. Among the Fijians a man's shadow is called the dark
-spirit, which goes to the unseen world, while the other spirit, which is
-his likeness reflected in water or a mirror, stays near the place where he
-dies. The Basutos are careful, when walking by a river, not to let their
-shadow fall on the water, lest a crocodile seize it, and harm the owner.
-Among the Algonquin Indians sickness is accounted for by the patient's
-shadow being unsettled or detached from the body; the Zulus say that a
-corpse cannot cast a shadow, and in the barbaric belief that its loss is
-baleful, we have the germ of the mediæval legends of shadowless men and of
-tales of which Chamisso's story of Peter Schlemihl is a type. The New
-England tribes called the soul _chemung_, the shadow, and in the Quiche
-and Eskimo languages, as also in the several dialects of Costa Rica, the
-same word expresses both ideas; while civilised speech indicates community
-of thought in the _skia_ of the Greeks, the _manes_ or _umbra_ of the
-Romans, and the _shade_ of our own tongue. Still more complete in the
-mimicry is the reflection of the body in water or mirror, the image
-repeating every gesture and adopting every colour, whilst in the echoes
-which forest and hillside fling back, the savage hears confirmation of his
-belief in the other self, as well as in the nearness of the spirits of the
-dead. The Sonora Indians say that departed souls dwell among the caves and
-nooks of the cliffs, and that the echoes are their voices, and in South
-Pacific myth echo is the first and parent fairy, to whom at Marquesas
-divine honours are still paid as the giver of food, and as she who "speaks
-to the worshippers out of the rocks." In Greek myth she is punished by
-Juno for diverting her attention whilst Jupiter flirts with the nymphs,
-and at last, pining in grief at her unrequited love for Narcissus, there
-remains nothing but her voice.
-
-But what, in primitive conception, is the more specific nature of the
-other self, and how does it make the passage from within to without, and
-_vice versâ_? Very early in man's history he must have wondered at the
-difference between a waking and a sleeping person, a living and a dead
-one, and sought wherein this consisted. There lay the body in the repose,
-more or less broken, of sleep, or in the undisturbed repose of the
-unawakening sleep; in the latter case, with nothing tangible or visible
-gone, but that which was once "quick" and warm, which had spoken, moved,
-smiled, or frowned but a little while before, and which still came in
-dream or vision, was now cold and still.
-
-It should here be remarked, in passing, that many savage races do not
-believe in death as a natural event, but regard it as differing from sleep
-only in the length of time that the spirit is absent from the body. No
-matter what any one's age may be, if his death is not caused by wounds, it
-is attributed to magic, and the search for the sorcerer becomes a family
-duty, like the vendetta for other injuries. The widespread myths which
-account for death have as their underlying idea the infraction of some law
-or custom, for which the offender pays the extreme penalty. And that
-personification of it which pervades barbaric thought, whilst undergoing
-many changes of form, yet retains its hold in popular conception as well
-as in poetry. Pictured as the messenger of Deity, as the awful angel who
-sought the rebellious and impious, or who, in mission of tenderness, bore
-the soul to its home in the bosom of the Eternal, it was transformed and
-degraded by the grotesque fancy of a later time into a grim and dancing
-skeleton whetting his sickle for ingathering of the young and fair to
-their doom, or into the grinning skull and crossbones of Christian
-headstones. So when the maiden Proserpine is plucking the spring flowers,
-"crocuses and roses and fair violets," in the Elysian fields, Hades,
-regent of hell, regardless of her cries, carries her off to his invisible
-realm.
-
-But to resume. Whilst shadows, reflections, and echoes, one and all,
-seemed to satisfy the uncivilised mind as to the existence of the other
-self, they gave no key to its nature, to what it is like. Obviously the
-difference between death and life lay in some unsubstantial or
-semi-substantial thing. Perhaps, thought some races, it lies in the blood,
-with the unchecked outflow of which death ensues, and the idea of this
-connection has not been confined to barbaric peoples. Perhaps, thought
-other races, it lies in the heart, which, say the Basutos, has gone out of
-any one dead, but has returned when the sick have recovered. Among the
-Greeks some philosophers held that it was fire, which was extinct when the
-fuel of life was burnt out, or water, which would evaporate away. But, as
-language shows, it is with the _breath_ that the other self of the savage
-and the vital principle of the philosopher has been most widely
-identified. For it is the cessation of breathing which would in the
-long-run be noted as the unfailing accompaniment of death; and the
-condensing vapour, as it was exhaled, would confirm the existing theories
-of a shadowy and gaseous-like soul. In this, as the illustrations to be
-adduced from various languages will evidence, the continuity of idea which
-travels along the whole line of barbaric and learned speculation is
-unbroken.
-
-
-§ VIII.
-
-BARBARIC PHILOSOPHY IN "PUNCHKIN" AND ALLIED STORIES.
-
-As bearing upon the barbaric belief in the soul leaving the body at
-pleasure, there is a remarkable group of stories, the central idea of
-which is the dwelling apart of the soul or heart, as the seat of life, in
-some secret place, in an egg, or a necklace, or a flower, the good or evil
-fortunes of the soul involving those of the body. To this group the name
-of "Punchkin," the title of one of the older specimens, may conveniently
-be given. In Miss Frere's _Old Deccan Days_ it takes the following form.
-
-A Rajah has seven daughters, and his wife dying when they were quite
-children, he marries the widow of his prime minister. Her cruelty to his
-children made them run off to a jungle, where seven neighbouring princes,
-who were out hunting, found them, and each took one of them to wife. After
-a time they again went hunting, and did not come back. So when the son of
-the youngest princess, who had also been enchanted away, grew up, he set
-out in search of his mother and father and uncles, and at last discovered
-that the seven princes had been turned into stone by the magician
-Punchkin, who had shut up the princess in a tower because she would not
-marry him. Recognising her son, she plotted with him to feign agreement to
-marry Punchkin if he would tell her where the secret of his life was
-hidden. Overjoyed at her yielding to his wish, the magician told her that
-it was true that he was not as others.
-
- "Far, far away, hundreds of thousands of miles from this, there lies a
- desolate country covered with thick jungle. In the midst of the jungle
- grows a circle of palm-trees, and in the centre of the circle stand
- six chattees full of water, piled one above another; below the sixth
- chattee is a small cage which contains a little green parrot; on the
- life of the parrot depends my life, and if the parrot is killed I must
- die. But," he added, "this was not possible, because thousands of
- genii surround the palm-trees, and kill all who approach the place."
-
-The princess told her son this, and he set forth on his journey. On the
-way he rescued some young eagles from a serpent, and the grateful birds
-carried him until they reached the jungle, where, the genii being overcome
-with sleep by the heat, the eaglets swooped down. "Down jumped the prince;
-in an instant he had overthrown the chattees full of water and seized the
-parrot, which he rolled up in his cloak," then mounted again into the air
-and was carried back to Punchkin's palace. Punchkin was dismayed to see
-the parrot in the prince's hands, and asked him to name any price he
-willed for it, whereupon the prince demanded the restoration of his father
-and his uncles to life. This was done; then he insisted on Punchkin doing
-the like to "all whom he had thus imprisoned," when, at the waving of the
-magician's wand, the whole garden became suddenly alive.
-
-"Give me my parrot!" cried Punchkin. Then the boy took hold of the
-parrot, and tore off one of his wings; and as he did so the magician's
-right arm fell off. He then pulled off the parrot's second wing, and
-Punchkin's left arm fell off; then he pulled off the bird's legs, and down
-fell the magician's right leg and left leg. Nothing remained of him save
-the limbless body and the head; but still he rolled his eyes, and cried,
-"Give me my parrot!" "Take your parrot, then," cried the boy, and with
-that he wrung the bird's neck, and threw it at the magician, and as he did
-so, Punchkin's head twisted round, and, with a fearful groan, he died. Of
-course, all the rest "lived very happily ever afterwards," as they do in
-the plays and the novels.
-
-In the stories of _Chundum Rajah_, and of _Sodewa Bai_, the Hindu
-Cinderella, the heroine's soul is contained in a string of golden beads.
-When the Ranee, jealous of her husband's love for Sodewa Bai, asked her
-why she always wore the same beads, she replies: "I was born with them
-round my neck, and the wise men told my father and mother that they
-contained my soul, and that if any one else wore them I should die."
-Whereupon the Ranee instructed her servant to steal the beads from the
-princess when she slept; then she died, but her body did not decay, and in
-the end she was restored to life by the recovery of her necklace. In the
-Bengali tale, _Life's Secret_, a Rajah's favourite wife gives birth
-miraculously to a boy, whose soul is bound up in a necklace in the stomach
-of a boal-fish. In both instances the ornaments are stolen, and while
-they are worn by the thieves, prince and princess alike are lifeless,
-whilst with the recovery of the beads life returned to each. A not unlike
-idea occurs in the story, _Truth's Triumph_. The children of a village
-beauty, whom the Rajah had married, are changed into mango trees, to save
-them from the fury of the jealous Ranee, until the time of danger was
-past.
-
-In Miss Stokes' collection of _Indian Fairy Tales_, we have variants
-corresponding more closely to _Punchkin_. In _Brave Hirálálbásá_, a
-Rakshas (the common name for demon) is induced to reveal the secret of his
-life. He says, "Sixteen miles from here is a tree, round it are tigers and
-bears and other animals, on the top of it is a large flat snake, on the
-head of which is a bird in a cage, and my soul is in that bird." By
-enchantment Hirálálbásá reached the tree and secured the cage. He pulled
-the bird's limbs off, and the Rakshas' arms and legs fell off; then he
-wrung its neck, and the Rakshas fell dead. And in the tale of _The Demon
-and the King's Son_, from the same collection, the prince falls in love
-with the monster's daughter, who is dead during the day and alive in the
-night. The prince asks what she would do, if whilst she is dead, her
-father were to be killed? She tells him it is impossible for any one to
-kill her father, for his life is in a _mainá_ (starling), which is in a
-nest in a tree on the other side of the sea, and if, she adds, any one in
-killing the bird spilt the blood on the ground, a hundred demons would be
-born from it. The prince reached the other side, and taking the _mainá_,
-proceeded to kill it, but first wrapt it in his handkerchief, that no
-blood might be spilt. The demon, who was far away, knew that the bird was
-caught, and he set out at once to avert his doom. The story ends, like the
-preceding one, with the dismemberment of the bird, and the consequent
-death of the demon.
-
-The nearest approach to tales similar to these in the _Buddhist
-Birth-stories_, is in one or two isolated cases, when the Karma of a human
-being is spoken of as immediately transferred to an animal.
-
-In _Tales from the Norse_ the one in most striking correspondence with the
-Punchkin group is that of _The giant who had no heart in his body_. The
-monster turns six princes and their wives into stone, whereupon the
-seventh and only surviving son, Boots, sets out to avenge their fate. On
-his journey he saves the lives of a raven, a salmon, and a wolf, and the
-wolf, having eaten his horse, compensates Boots by carrying him to the
-giant's castle, where the lovely princess who is to be his bride is
-confined. She promises to find out where the giant keeps his heart, and by
-blandishments and divers arts known to the fair sex both before and since
-the time of Delilah, she worms out the secret. He tells her that "far, far
-away in a lake lies an island; on that island stands a church; in that
-church is a well; in that well swims a duck; in that duck is an egg; and
-in that egg lies my heart, you darling!" Boots, taking fond farewell of
-the princess, rides on the wolf's back to the island. Then the raven he
-had befriended flies to the steeple and fetches the key of the church; the
-salmon, in like return for kindness, brings him the egg from the well
-where the duck had dropped it.
-
- Then the wolf told him to squeeze the egg, and as soon as ever he did
- so, the giant screamed out. "Squeeze it again," said the wolf; and
- when the prince did so, the giant screamed still more piteously, and
- begged and prayed so prettily to be spared, saying he would do all
- that the prince wished if he would only not squeeze his heart in two.
- "Tell him if he will restore to life again your six brothers and their
- brides, you will spare his life," said the wolf. Yes, the giant was
- ready to do that, and he turned the six brothers into kings' sons
- again, and their brides into kings' daughters. "Now squeeze the egg in
- two," said the wolf. With questionable morality, doing evil that good
- might come, Boots squeezed the egg to pieces, and the giant burst at
- once.
-
-Asbjörnsen's _New Series_ gives a variant in which a Troll who has seized
-a princess tells her that he and all his companions will burst, as did the
-heartless giant, when there passes above them "the grain of sand that lies
-under the ninth tongue in the ninth head" of a certain dragon. The grain
-of sand is found and passed over them, when the Troll and all his brood
-are destroyed. In the Gaelic stories, for which we are indebted to the
-skill of an early worker in this field, the late Mr. J. F. Campbell, that
-of the _Young King of Easaidh Ruadh_ locates the secret thus: "There is a
-great flagstone underneath the threshold. There is a wether under the
-flagstone. There is a duck in the wether's belly, and an egg in the duck,
-in the egg is my soul." In the _Sea-Maiden_ there is a "great beast with
-three heads, which cannot be killed until an egg is broken which is in the
-mouth of a trout, which springs out of a crow, which flies out of a hind,
-which lives on an island in the middle of the loch."
-
-In his valuable collection of _Russian Folk-Tales_, which is enriched by
-comparative notes, Mr. Ralston supplies some interesting variants of
-Punchkin. Koshchei, called "the immortal or deathless," is merely one of
-the many incarnations of the dark spirit which takes so many monstrous
-shapes in folk-tales. Sometimes his death, that is, the object with which
-his life is indissolubly connected, does exist within his body. In one
-story he carries off a queen, for whom her three sons, one after another,
-go in search. Prince Ivan, the youngest, at last discovers where his
-mother dwells, and she at the approach of Koshchei hides her son away. The
-monster sniffs the blood of a Russian, and inquires if her son has not
-been with her. She assures him it is only the Russian air in his nostrils.
-Then after talking to him affectionately on one thing and another, she
-asks where his death is, and he tells her that, "under an oak is a casket,
-in the casket is a hare, in the hare is a duck, in the duck an egg, in the
-egg is my death." Prince Ivan found the egg, and reached his mother's
-house with it. Presently Koshchei flew in and said, "Phoo, phoo; no
-Russian bone can the ear hear or the eye see, but there's a smell of
-Russia here." Then Prince Ivan came out from his hiding place, and,
-holding up the egg, said, "There is your death, oh Koshchei!" then he
-smashed it, and Koshchei fell dead. In another story Koshchei is killed by
-a blow on the forehead from the mysterious egg. Mr. Ralston also quotes a
-Transylvanian Saxon story concerning a witch's life, which is a light
-burning in an egg inside a duck that swims on a pond inside a mountain,
-and she dies when the light is put out. In the Bohemian story of the
-_Sun-horse_ a warlock's strength lies in an egg in a duck, which is within
-a stag under a tree. A seer finds the egg and sucks it. Then the warlock
-becomes as weak as a child, "for all his strength had passed into the
-seer."
-
-In Servian folk-tale the strength of a baleful being who had stolen a
-princess lies in a bird which is inside the heart of a fox, and when the
-bird was taken out of the heart and set on fire, that moment the
-wife-stealer falls down dead, and the prince regains his bride. From the
-same source we have the tale of the _Golden-haired Twins_, with an
-incident akin to that in Punchkin. When the king's stepmother buries the
-twins whom she had stolen, there spring from the spot where they lie trees
-with golden leaves and blossoms. The king's admiration of them aroused her
-jealousy, and she had them cut down, but eventually his golden-haired
-princes are restored to him.
-
-Thus far the illustrations have been drawn solely from the folk-tales of
-the widespread Indo-European races, but they are not confined to these.
-From non-Aryan sources we have the Tatar story of the demon-giant who
-kept his soul in a twelve-headed snake carried in a bag on his horse's
-back. The hero finds out the secret, kills the snake, and the giant dies.
-In one of the Samoyed tales a man had no heart in his body, and could
-recover it only on restoring to life a woman whom he had killed. Then the
-man said to his wife, "Go to the place where the dead lies; there you will
-find a purse, in that purse is her soul; shake the purse over her bones,
-and she will come to life." The wife did as she was ordered, and the woman
-revived, whereupon her son dashed the heart to the ground, and the man
-died.[75]
-
-More elaborate than these are the tales from _The Thousand and One
-Nights_. In _Seyf-el-Mulook_ the jinnee's soul is enclosed in the crop of
-a sparrow, and the sparrow is imprisoned in a small box, and this is in
-seven other boxes which are put into seven chests; these are enclosed in a
-coffer of marble that is sunk in the ocean surrounding the world. By the
-aid of Suleyman's seal-ring Seyf-el-Mulook raises the coffer, and
-extricating the sparrow, strangles it, whereupon the jinnee's body is
-converted into a heap of black ashes. In some tales not included by
-Galland or Lane, which Mr. Kirby has translated and edited under the title
-of the _New Arabian Nights_, we have a variant of the above under the
-title of _Joadar of Cairo and Mahmood of Tunis_. Joadar is bent on
-releasing his enchanted betrothed, which he does by also strangling a
-sparrow, the ogre being simultaneously dissolved into a heap of ashes.
-
-The most venerable illustration of the leading idea in the Punchkin group
-is however found, though in more subtle form, in the Egyptian tale of the
-_Two Brothers_. This is of great value on account of its high antiquity,
-and, moreover, specially interesting as recording an incident similar to
-that narrated in the life of Joseph. It is contained in the D'Orbiney
-papyrus preserved in the Bibliothèque Impériale, the date being about the
-fourteenth or fifteenth century B.C.
-
-There were two brothers, Anepou and Satou, joined as one in love and
-labour. One day Satou was sent to fetch seed-corn from Anepou's house,
-where he found his brother's wife adorning her hair. She urged him to stay
-with her, but he refused, promising, however, to keep her wickedness
-secret. When Anepou returned at even, she, being afraid, "made herself to
-seem as a woman that had suffered violence," and told him exactly the
-reverse of what had happened. Anepou's wrath was kindled against Satou,
-and he went out to slay him; but Satou called on Phra to save him, and the
-god placed a river between the brothers, so that when day dawned Anepou
-might hear the truth. At sunrise Satou tells his story, and, mutilating
-himself, he says that he will leave Anepou and go to the valley of the
-cedar, in the cones of which he will deposit his heart, "so that if the
-tree be cut his heart will fall to the earth, and he must die."
-
-For us the value of these folk-tales lies in the relics of barbaric
-notions concerning the nature of man and his relation to external things
-which they preserve. They have amused our youth-hood; they may instruct
-our manhood. But if we go to the solar mythologists for their
-interpretation, we shall learn from Sir G. W. Cox that the "magician
-Punchkin and the heartless giant are only other forms of the Panis who
-steal bright treasures from the gleaming west," that "Balna herself is
-Helen shut up in Ilion ... the eagles the bright clouds,"[76] and from
-Professor de Gubernatis that the duck is the dawn and the egg the sun.
-
-These venerable tales have a larger, richer meaning than this, expressive
-of the wonder deep-seated in the heart of man. Like the "drusy" cavity in
-granite rock which, when broken open, reveals beautiful prisms of topaz
-and beryl, the folk-tales disclose under analysis that thought, now
-crystallised, which confuses ideas and objects, illusions and realities,
-substances and shadows.
-
-
-§ IX.
-
-BARBARIC AND CIVILISED NOTIONS OF THE SOUL'S NATURE.
-
-In proof of the closing remarks in § VII., that the breath has given the
-chief name to the soul, we find the Western Australians using the same
-word, _waug_, for "breath, spirit, soul"; in Java the word _nawa_ is used
-for "health, life, soul"; in the Dakota tongue _niya_ is literally
-"breath," figuratively "life"; in Netela _piuts_ is "breath" and "soul";
-in Eskimo _silla_ means "air" and "wind," and is also the word that
-conveys the highest idea of the world as a whole, and of the reasoning
-faculty. The supreme existence they call _Sillam Innua_, Owner of the Air,
-or of the All; in the Yakama tongue of Oregon _wkrisha_ signifies "there
-is wind," _wkrishwit_, "life"; with the Aztecs _ehecatl_ expressed "air,
-life, and the soul," and, personified in their myths, it was said to have
-been born of the breath of Tezcatlipoca, their highest divinity, who
-himself is often called Yoalliehecatl, the Wind of Night.[77] This
-identity of wind with breath, of breath with spirit, and thence of spirit
-with the Great Spirit, which
-
- "Sees God in clouds, and hears Him in the wind,"
-
-has further illustration in the legends of the Quiches, in which the
-unknown creative power is Hurakan, a name familiar to us under the form
-_hurricane_, and in our own sacred records, where the advent of the Holy
-Spirit is described "as of a rushing mighty wind." In the Mohawk language
-_atonritz_, the "soul," is from _atonrion_, "to breathe"; whilst, as
-showing the analogy between the effects of restricted sense and restricted
-civilisation, Dr. Tylor quotes the case of a girl who was a deaf-mute as
-well as blind, and who, when telling a dream in gesture language, said:
-"I thought God took away my breath to heaven." Among the higher languages
-the same evidence abides.
-
- "The spirit doth but mean the breath."
-
-That word _spirit_ is derived from a verb _spirare_, which means "to draw
-breath." _Animus_, "the mind," is cognate with _anima_, "air"; in Irish,
-which belongs to the same family of speech as Latin, namely, the Aryan or
-Indo-European, we have _anal_, "breath," and _anam_, "life," or "soul";
-and in Sanskrit we find the root _an_, to "blow" or "breathe," whence
-_anila_, "wind," and in Greek _anemos_, with the like meaning. In
-Hampole's _Ayenbite of Inwyt_, _i.e._ "Prick or Remorse of Conscience," a
-poem of the fourteenth century, we find _ande_ or "breath" used as "soul."
-
- "Thus sall ilka saul other se (_i.e._ in the other world)
- For nan of tham may feled be
- Na mar than here a man, ande may
- When it passes fra his mouthe away."[78]
-
-The Greek _psyche_, _pneuma_, and _thymos_, each meaning "soul" and
-"spirit," are from roots expressing the wind or breath. In Slavonic the
-root _du_ has developed the meaning of breath into that of soul or spirit,
-and the dialect of the gipsies has _duk_ with the meanings of breath,
-spirit, ghost. That word _ghost_, the German _geist_, the Dutch _geest_,
-from a root meaning "to blow with violence," is connected with _gust_,
-_gas_, _geyser_; in Scandinavian, _glösor_, "to pour forth." In non-Aryan
-languages, as the Finnish, _far_ means "soul, breath, spirit, wind";
-_henki_, "spirit, person, breath, air"; the Hebrew _nephesh_, "breath,"
-has also the meanings of "life, soul, mind"; and _ruach_ and _neshamah_,
-to which the Arabic _nefs_ and _ruh_ correspond, pass from meaning
-"breath" to "spirit." The legend of man's creation records that he became
-a living soul through God breathing into his nostrils "the breath of
-life," and concerning this the Psalmist says of all that live, "Thou
-takest away their breath, they die, and return unto the dust." As a final
-illustration, the Egyptian _kneph_ has the alternative meanings of "life"
-and "breath."[79]
-
-When we pass from names to descriptions, we find the same underlying idea
-of the ethereal nature of spirit. The natives of Nicaragua, California,
-and other countries remote from these, agree in describing the other self
-as air or breeze, which passes in and out through the mouth and nostrils.
-The Tongans conceived it as the aëriform part of the body, related to it
-as the perfume to the flower. The Greenlanders describe it as pale and
-soft, as without flesh and bone, so that he who tries to seize it grasps
-nothing. The Lapps say that the ghosts are invisible to all but the
-Shamans. The Congo negroes leave the house of the dead unswept for a year,
-lest the dust should injure the delicate substance of the ghost; and the
-German peasants have a saying that a door should not be slammed, lest a
-soul gets pinched in it. In some parts of Northern Europe, when the
-wind-god, Odin, rides the sky with his furious spectral host, the peasants
-open the windows of every sick-room that the soul of the dying may have
-free exit to join the wild chase; whilst both here and in France it is
-still no uncommon practice to open doors and windows that the soul may
-depart quickly. Dr. Tylor[80] cites a passage from Hampole, in which the
-author speaks of the intenser suffering which the soul undergoes in
-purgatory by reason of its delicate organisation.
-
- "The soul is more tendre and nesche (soft)
- Than the bodi that hath bones and fleysche;
- Thanne the soul that is so tendere of kinde,
- Mote nedis hure penaunce hardere-y-finde,
- Than eni bodi that evere on live was,"
-
-a doctrine clearly due to Patristic theories of incorporeal souls. And a
-modern poet, Dante Rossetti, in his _Blessed Damozel_, when he describes
-her as leaning out from the gold bar of heaven and looking down towards
-the earth, that "spins like a fretful midge," whence she awaits the coming
-of her lover, depicts the souls mounting up to God as passing by her "like
-thin flames." The Greeks and, following them, the Romans, conceived the
-soul as of thin, impalpable texture, as exhaled with the dying breath, or,
-as in Homer, rushing out through the wound that causes the warrior's
-death. In the metaphysical Arabian romance of Yokdhan, the hero seeks the
-source of life and thought, and discovers in one of the cavities of the
-heart a bluish vapour, which was the living soul. Among the Hebrews it was
-of shadowy nature, with echoless motion, haunting a ghostly realm:
-
- "It is a land of shadows; yea, the land
- Itself is but a shadow, and the race
- That dwell therein are voices, forms of forms."
-
-Such conceptions are but little varied; and, to this day, the intelligence
-of the major number of people who think about the thing at all presents
-the departing soul as something vaporous, as a little white cloud.
-
-In keeping with such ideas, the belief in transfer of spirit expresses
-itself. Algonquin women who desired to become mothers flocked to the couch
-of those about to die, in hope that the vital principle as it passed from
-the body would enter theirs. Among the Seminoles of Florida, when a woman
-died in childbirth, the infant was held over her face to receive her
-parting spirit, and thus acquire strength and knowledge for its future
-use. So among the Tákahlis, the priest is accustomed to lay his hand on
-the head of the nearest relative of the deceased, and to blow into him the
-soul of the departed, which is supposed to come to life in his next
-child.[81]
-
-In Harland and Wilkinson's _Lancashire Folk-lore_ it is related that while
-a well-known witch lay dying, "she must needs, before she could 'shuffle
-off this mortal coil,' transfer her _familiar spirit_ to some trusty
-successor. An intimate acquaintance from a neighbouring township was
-consequently sent for in all haste, and on her arrival was immediately
-closeted with her dying friend. What passed between them has never fully
-transpired, but it is asserted that at the close of the interview this
-associate _received the witch's last breath into her mouth, and with it
-her familiar spirit_. The powers for good or evil of the dreaded woman
-were thus transferred to her companion, and on passing along the road from
-Burnley to Blackburn we can point out a farmhouse at no great distance,
-with whose thrifty matron no neighbouring farmer will yet dare to
-quarrel." When a Roman lay at the point of death, his nearest relative
-inhaled the last breath; in New Testament story, the risen Jesus breathes
-on His disciples, that they may receive the Holy Spirit, and the form thus
-adopted in conferring supernatural grace is still used in the rites and
-ceremonies of the Catholic Church.
-
-Speculation about the other self could not, however, stop at identifying
-it with a man's breath or shadow, or with regarding it as absolutely
-impalpable. These nebulous and gaseous theories necessarily condensed, as
-it were, into theories of semi-substantiality still charged with ethereal
-conceptions, but giving embodiment to the soul to account for the
-appearances of both dead and living in dreams, when their persons were
-clasped, their forms and features seen, and their voices heard.
-
-Such theories involve a kind of continuity of identity, and often take the
-form of belief in the soul as a replica of the body, and as suffering
-corresponding mutilation. When the native Australian has slain his foe, he
-cuts off his right thumb, so as to prevent him from throwing a shadowy
-spear; the Chinese dread of decapitation, lest their spirits are headless,
-is well known; but a more telling illustration is that cited by Dr. Tylor,
-from Waitz, of the West Indian planter, whose slaves sought refuge from
-the lash and toil in suicide. But he was too cunning for them; he cut off
-the heads and hands of the corpses, that the survivors might see that not
-even death could save them from a taskmaster who could maim their souls in
-the next world. Among advanced nations the same conceptions survived.
-Achilles, resting by the shore, sees the dead Patroclus in a dream. "Ay
-me, there remaineth then, even in the house of Hades, a spirit and phantom
-of the dead, albeit the life be not anywise therein; for all night long
-hath the ghost of hapless Patroclus stood over me, wailing and making
-moan, and wondrous like his living self it seemed."[82] Virgil portrays
-Æneas, and Homer describes Ulysses, as recognising their old comrades
-when they enter the "viewless shades," where the dwellers continue the
-tasks of their earthly life. In Hebrew legend Saul recognises the shade of
-Samuel when the magic spell of the Witch of Endor evokes it, although the
-grave of the old "judge" was sixty miles away. The monarch-shades of
-"Sheol" hail with derision the entrance of the King of Babylon among them.
-In New Testament narrative the risen Jesus is alternately material and
-spiritual, now passing through closed doors, and now submitting his
-wound-prints to the touch of the doubter. In _Hamlet_ the ghost is as "the
-air, invulnerable," yet "like a king" ...
-
- "... that fair and warlike form
- In which the majesty of buried Denmark
- Did sometimes march."
-
-Notions of material punishments and rewards involved notions of a material
-soul, even pending its reunion with the body at the general resurrection.
-The angels are depicted as weighing souls in a literal balance, while
-devils clinging to the scales endeavour to disturb the equilibrium.[83] In
-some frescoes of the fourteenth century, on the walls of the Campo Santo,
-at Pisa, illustrations of these notions abound; the soul is portrayed as a
-sexless child rising out of the mouth of the corpse, and eagerly awaited
-as the crown of rejoicing of the angels, or as the lawful prey of the
-demons. After this it is amusing to learn that extreme tests of the
-weight of ghosts are now and then forthcoming,[84] from the assertion of a
-Basuto divine that the late queen had been bestriding his shoulders, and
-he never felt such a weight in his life, to the alleged modern
-spiritualistic reckoning of the weight of a human soul at from three to
-four ounces! And do not spirit-photographs adorn the albums of the
-credulous?
-
-
-§ X.
-
-BARBARIC BELIEF IN SOULS IN BRUTES AND PLANTS AND LIFELESS THINGS.
-
-More graceful is the conception which makes the soul spring up as a flower
-or cleave the air as a bird. It is, of course, the purified survival of
-the primitive thought which did not limit its belief in an indwelling
-spirit to man, but extended it to brutes and plants, and even to lifeless
-things. For the lower creatures manifested the phenomena from which the
-belief in spirits in higher creatures was inferred. They moved and
-breathed, their life ceased with their breath; they cast shadows and
-reflections; their cries, which to the savage seemed so like human
-speech,[85] awakened echoes; and they appeared in dreams. Among the
-western tribes of North America the phantoms of all animals are supposed
-to go to the happy beasts' grounds, and in Assam the ghosts of those slain
-become the property of the hunter who kills them; whilst the custom of
-begging pardon of the animal before or after despatching it, as among the
-Red Indians, who even put the pipe of peace in the dead creature's mouth,
-further evidences to barbarian belief in beast-souls. Although the belief
-in the immortality of brutes has now no place in serious philosophy, it
-has been a favourite doctrine from the Kamchadales, who believe in the
-after-life of flies and bugs, to the eminent naturalist Agassiz, who
-advocates the doctrine in his _Essay on Classification_; and in a list of
-4977 books on the nature and future of the soul given in Mr. Alger's
-elaborate critical history of the subject, nearly 200 deal with the
-after-life of animals. The advocates have often felt the difficulty of
-granting this after-life to man and denying it to creatures to which he
-stands so closely related in ultimate community of origin; but science,
-while it finds links of sympathy with the ideas of rude races respecting
-the common life of all that moves, and presents evidence in support of the
-common destiny, lends no support to the doctrine of the immortality of
-oysters. The custom of apologising to doomed brutes is practised in regard
-to plants. If they exhibit the phenomena of life in a lesser degree,
-enough are shown to justify the accrediting of them with souls. Besides
-flinging wavy shadows and reflections (and it cannot be too often enforced
-that to the barbaric intelligence motion is a prime sign of life), they
-are not voiceless. Murmurs are heard in their leaves; sounds echo from
-their hollow trunks, or tremble, Æolian-like, through their branches; and
-in their juices are the sources of repose or frenzy.
-
-"The Ojibways believed that trees had souls, and in pagan times they
-seldom cut down green or living trees, for they thought it put them to
-pain. They pretended to hear the wailing of the trees when they suffered
-in this way. On account of these noises, real or imaginary, trees have had
-spirits assigned them, and worship offered to them. A mountain-ash, in the
-vicinity of South Ste. Marie, which made a noise, had offerings piled up
-around it. If a tree should emit from its hollow trunk or branches a sound
-during a calm state of the atmosphere, or should any one fancy such
-sounds, the tree would be at once reported, and soon come to be regarded
-as the residence of some local god."[86] As expressed in Greek myth,
-purified in this case from grosser elements, we have the Dryades, who were
-believed to die together with the trees in which their life had begun to
-be, and in which they had dwelt. As expressed in folk-lore and its poetic
-forms, it is in the growth or blossoming of flowers, or the intertwining
-of branches, that the idea survives. In the ballad of "Fair Margaret and
-Sweet William"--
-
- "Out of her brest there sprang a _rose_,
- And out of his a _briar_;
- They grew till they grew unto the church-top,
- And there they tyed in a true lover's knot;"[87]
-
-in the story of "Tristram and Ysonde," "from his grave there grew an
-eglantine which twined about the statue, a marvel for all men to see; and,
-though three times they cut it down, it grew again, and ever wound its
-arms about the image of the fair Ysonde;"[88] while the conception often
-lends itself to the poet's thoughts, from Laertes' words over Ophelia:--
-
- "Lay her i' the earth,
- And from her fair and unpolluted flesh
- May violets spring,"
-
-to Tennyson's
-
- "And from his ashes may be made
- The violet of his native land."
-
-In Grimm's _Teutonic Mythology_ a number of illustrations are supplied of
-the vagaries of popular imagination, which picture the soul as a bird
-flying out of a dead person's mouth, and, as a cognate example from rude
-culture, we find a belief among the Powhatans that "a certain small wood
-bird received the souls of their princes at death, and they religiously
-refrained from doing it harm; while the Aztecs and various other nations
-thought that all good people, as a reward of merit, were metamorphosed at
-the close of life into feathered songsters of the grove, and in this form
-passed a certain term in the umbrageous bowers of Paradise."[89] But many
-pages might be filled with examples of varying conceptions of the soul,
-the major number of which (for the idea of it as a mouse, snake, etc.,
-must not be forgotten) have as their nucleus its ethereal nature and
-freedom from the limitations of solid earth, although round that nucleus
-gather some more concrete ideas for the mind, desiring something more
-substantial than symbols, to grasp. The belief that inanimate things as
-well as animals and plants have a dual being is not so obvious at first
-sight, and yet, given the reasons for the latter, there are as good
-grounds, because like in kind, for the former. The Algonquins told Father
-Charlevoix that "since hatchets and kettles have shadows, as well as men
-and women, it follows that these shadows must pass along with human
-shadows into the spirit-land." When the tools or weapons are injured or
-done with, their souls must cross the water to the Great Village, where
-the sun sets. Besides, spears and pots and pans, as well as men and dogs,
-appear in dreams; they throw shadows and images in the water, they give
-forth a sound when struck, and, as the Fijians also argue, "if an animal
-or plant die, its soul goes to Bolotoo; if a stone or anything else is
-broken, it has its reward there; nay, has equal good luck with men and
-hogs and yams. If an axe or a chisel is worn out or broken up, away flies
-its soul for the service of the gods." Logically, the savage who believes
-that in the other world
-
- "The hunter still the deer pursues,
- The hunter and the deer a shade,"
-
-must put in the hands of the one a shadow spear. So when an Ojibway
-chief, after a four days' trance, gave an account of his visit to the land
-of shadows, he told of the hosts whom he had met travelling there laden
-with pipes and kettles and weapons. These primitive ideas explain, once
-and for all, matters which have too often been explained by fanciful
-theories, or cited as evidences of the benighted condition of those places
-which on missionary maps of the world are painted black. They disclose the
-reason why food and utensils and weapons were broken and buried with the
-dead; why fires were lighted round the grave; why animals were slain on
-the death of a chief; why the Greenlanders, when a child dies, bury a dog
-with him, because the dog, they say, is able to find his way anywhere; why
-North American Indian mothers in pathetic custom drop their milk on the
-lips of the dead child; and why, what seemed so inexplicable to the early
-missionaries to the East, ignorant of the practice of widow-sacrifice
-among the ancient peoples of the West, as the Gauls, Teutons, and others,
-wives and slaves were burned on the funeral pyre. Among the Mexicans
-sometimes a very rich man would even have his chaplain slaughtered, that
-he might not be deprived of his support in the other world.
-
-In their initial stage all these gifts are made, all these rites
-performed, for the supposed need of the dead. Every one had his _manes_,
-which followed him into the next world, and, lacking which, he would be as
-poor as if in this world he had lacked it. The spiritual counterpart of
-the offerings was consumed by his spirit, just as the old deities were
-thought to enjoy the sweet-smelling savour of the burnt sacrifices; the
-fires were kindled that the soul might not grope about in darkness. So the
-obolus was put into the mouth of the dead, that its _manes_ might be
-payment to Charon for the ferry of the Styx, as money is put in the
-corpse's hand or mouth among the German and Irish peasants to this day; so
-the warrior's horse was slain at his tomb and the armour laid therein,
-that he might enter Valhalla riding, and clothed with the tokens of his
-right to the abode reserved for those who had fallen in battle.
-
-Any explanation of customs like the foregoing, persistent as they are in
-kind, however varying in expression, is defective which does not take into
-account what large part the emotions play in all that is connected with
-death, and how they infuse such customs with vitality. The bereaved refuse
-to believe that those whom they have lost have no more concern in the
-interests of life once common and dear to both. As among the Dakotas, when
-a mother feels a pain at her breast, they say that her dead child is
-thinking of her. The place where the body lies becomes the connecting link
-between it and the soul which is still the solicitude and care, or, it may
-be, the dread of the living; succouring and protecting, or, on the other
-hand, avenging.
-
-The element of dread undoubtedly comes into play early. The awe which we
-feel in the presence of death, or in passing in the dark through a
-churchyard, takes in the savage the form of terror. The behaviour of the
-ghost in dreams, its ability to do what men still in the flesh cannot do,
-quicken the belief in occult power, and the desire to propitiate it. Among
-the Lapps red-hot stones are cast behind the coffins of the dead, and
-their graves fenced round to prevent their return to earth. The articles
-placed in the grave as gifts for the dead become sacrifices laid on the
-altar to appease malignant spirits; the mound or tomb becomes a temple,
-and awe passes by easy degrees into worship. The prevalence in one form or
-another of ancestor-worship has, as remarked already, led Mr. Spencer to
-the conclusion that it is the rudimentary form of all religions; even sun,
-moon, volcano, river, etc., being feared and adored because they were
-believed to be the dwelling-places of ancestral ghosts. The facts are
-against this theory. It is to the larger, the more impressive phenomena of
-the natural world, the sun in noontide strength and splendour, the
-lightning and the thunder, that we must look for the primary causes which
-awakened the fear, the wonder, and the adoration in which lie the germs of
-the highest religions. Such causes are not only sufficient, but more
-operative on the undeveloped intelligence than the belief in ancestral
-spirits of the mountain and the sea, which involves a more complex mental
-action.[90] The one is contributory, but subordinate, to the other. It is,
-as M. Réville remarks, "the phenomena of nature regarded as animated and
-conscious that wake and stimulate the religious sentiments, and become
-the objects of the adoration of man.... If nature-worship, with the
-animism that it engenders,[91] shapes the first law to which nascent
-religion submits in the human race, anthropomorphism furnishes the second,
-disengaging itself ever more and more completely from the zoomorphism
-which generally serves as an intermediary. This is so _everywhere_."[92]
-
-
-§ XI.
-
-BARBARIC AND CIVILISED NOTIONS ABOUT THE SOUL'S DWELLING-PLACE.
-
-The existence of the ghost-soul or other self being unquestioned, the
-inquiry follows, where does it dwell? Like the trolls of Norse myth, who
-burst at sunrise, the flitting spirit vanishes in the light and comes with
-the darkness; but what places does it haunt when the quiet of the night is
-unbroken by its intrusion, and where are they?
-
-The answers to these are as varied as the vagaries of rude imagination
-permit. We must not expect to find any theories of the soul's prolonged
-after-existence among races who have but a dim remembrance of yesterday,
-and but a hazy conception of a to-morrow. Neither, among such, any
-theories of the soul abiding in a place of reward or punishment, as the
-result of things done in the body. Speaking of the heaven of the Red man,
-Dr. Brinton remarks that "nowhere was any well-defined doctrine that moral
-turpitude was judged and punished in the next world. No contrast is
-discoverable between a place of torment and a realm of joy; at the worst
-but a negative castigation awaited the liar, the coward, or the niggard."
-Ideas of a devil and a hell are altogether absent from the barbaric mind,
-since it is obvious that any theory of retribution could arise only when
-man's moral nature had so developed as to awaken questions about the
-government of the universe, and to call another world into existence to
-redress the wrongs and balance the injustices of this. His earliest
-queries were concerned with the whereabouts of the soul more than with its
-destiny, and it was, and still is, among the lower races, thought of as
-haunting its old abode or the burial-place of its body, and as acting very
-much as it had acted when in the flesh. The shade of the Algonquin hunter
-chases the spirits of the beaver and the elk with the spirits of his bow
-and arrow, and stalks on the spirits of his snow-shoes over the spirit of
-the snow. Among the Costa Ricans the spirits of the dead are supposed to
-remain near their bodies for a year, and the explorer Swan relates that
-when he was with the North-Western Indians he was not allowed to attend a
-funeral, lest he offended the spirits hovering round; whilst the Indians
-of North America often destroy or abandon the dwellings of the dead, the
-object being to prevent the ghost from returning, or to leave it free so
-to do. But it is needless to multiply illustrations of a belief which has
-been persistent in the human mind from the dawn of speculation about the
-future of the soul to the present day. The barbarians who think that the
-spirits of the dead move and have their being near the living, join them
-on their journeys, and sit down, unseen visitants, at their feasts (to be
-driven off, as among the Eskimos, by blowing the breath), are one with the
-multitudes of folks in Europe and America who, sorrowing over their dead,
-think of them as ministering with unfelt hands, and as keenly interested
-in their concerns.
-
- "We meet them at the doorway, on the stair,
- Along the passages they come and go,
- Impalpable impressions on the air,
- A sense of something moving to and fro."
-
-The Ojibway, who detects their tiny voices in the insect's hum, and thinks
-of them as sheltering themselves from the rain by thousands in a flower,
-as sporting by myriads on a sunbeam, is one with the Schoolmen who
-speculated on the number of angels that could dance on a needle's point,
-and with Milton in his poetic rendering of the belief of his time, that
-
- "Millions of spiritual creatures walk the earth
- Unseen, both when we wake and when we sleep."
-
-The Hottentot who avoids a dead man's hut lest the ghost be within, is one
-with the believers in haunted houses, in banshees, wraiths, and spectres.
-Such as he should not be excluded as "corresponding members" of the
-Society for Psychical Research in the invitations[93] which its committee
-issues to folks who have seen apparitions, and slept, or tried to sleep,
-in the dreaded chamber of some moated hall of mystery.
-
-If we look in vain for any consistency of idea or logical relation in
-barbaric notions, our wonder ceases at the absence of these when we note
-the conflicting conceptions entertained among intelligent people. But the
-underlying thought is identical. The examples given in a foregoing section
-on the belief in the passage of the soul into other human bodies, into
-animals and stones, strengthened as this is by the likeness in mind and
-body between children and dead relatives, by the human expression noted on
-many a brute, by the human shape of many a stone, show how the theory of
-the soul as nigh at hand finds many-sided support. In this belief, too,
-lie the germs of theories of successive transmigrations elaborated in the
-faiths of advanced races, when the defects of body and character were
-explained as the effects of sin committed in a former existence.
-
-Next in order of conception appears to be that of the soul as living an
-independent existence, an improved edition of the present, in an under or
-upper world, into which the dead pass without distinction of caste or
-worth.
-
-The things dreamed about respecting the land of spirits and their
-occupations are woven of the materials of daily life. Whether to the
-sleeping barbarian in his wigwam, or to the seer banished in Patmos;
-whether to the Indian travelling in his dreams to the happy
-hunting-ground, or to the apostle caught up in trance into paradise;
-earth, and earth alone, supplies the materials out of which man everywhere
-has shaped his heaven. Her dinted and furrowed surface; valleys and
-mountain-tops; islands sleeping in summer seas, or fretted by winter
-storms; cities walled and battlemented; glories of sunrise and sunset;
-gave variety enough for play of the cherished hopes and imaginings of men.
-If we collect any group of barbaric fancies, we find, speaking broadly,
-that a large proportion have pictured the home of souls as in the west,
-towards the land of the setting sun. Seen from many a standpoint to sink
-beneath river, lake, or ocean, which for untutored man enclosed his world,
-it led to the myth of waters of death dividing earth from heaven, which
-the soul, often at perilous risk, must cross. Such was the Ginnunga-gap of
-the Vikings; the nine seas and a half across which travellers to Manala,
-the under-world of the Finns, must voyage; the great water of the Red
-Indians; the Vaitarani of the Brahmans; the Stygian stream of the Greeks;
-and the Jordan of the Christians, that flows between us and the Celestial
-City, "where the surges cease to roll." The sinking of the sun below the
-horizon obviously led to belief in an under-world, whither the ghosts
-went. Barbaric notions are full of this, and the lower culture out of
-which their beliefs arose is evidenced in the Orcus of the Romans, the
-Hades of the Greeks, the Helheim of the Norsemen, the Sheol of the
-Hebrews, and the Amenti of the Egyptians, the solar features of which last
-are clearly traceable in their doctrine. Among the Hebrews, Sheol
-(translated, curiously enough, thirty-one times as "grave," and thirty-one
-times as "hell," in our Authorised Version) was a vast cavernous space in
-which the shades of good and bad alike wandered--"the small and great are
-there, and the servant is free from his master." It is akin in character
-to the Greek Hades, where they "wander mid shadows and shade, and wail by
-impassable streams." As ideas of a Divine rule of the world grew, its
-manifestations in justice were looked for, and the mystery of iniquity,
-the wicked "flourishing like a green bay tree," led to the conception of a
-future state, in which Lazarus and Dives would change places. Sheol thus
-became, on the one hand, a land of delight and repose for the faithful,
-and, on the other hand, one of punishment for the wicked.
-
-Persian, and still older, influences had largely leavened Hebrew
-conceptions, and local conditions in Judea added pungent elements. The
-Valley of Hinnom, or Gehenna, "the place where lie the corpses of those
-who have sinned against Jehovah, where their worm shall not die, neither
-their fire be quenched;" the dreary volcanic region around the Dead Sea,
-with its legend of doomed cities, supplied their imagery of hell with its
-lake of fire and brimstone. And, as the belief travelled westward, it fell
-into congenial soil. The sulphurous stench around Lacus Avernus, the smoke
-of Vesuvius, Stromboli, and Etna, wreathed themselves round the hell of
-Christianity and the under-world of barbaric myth; and from Talmudic
-writer to classic poet, to Dante and to Milton, the imagination exhausted
-the material of the horrible to describe the several tortures of the
-damned. The hell of our northern forefathers remained below the flat
-earth, but the cold, misty Niflheim melted away before the fiery perdition
-of Christian dogma. And, in the region bordering thereon, the _limbus
-patrum_, the _limbus infantum_, etc., we have the survival of belief in
-separate hells characteristic of the Oriental religions, and of the
-sub-divisions of the lower world in more rudimentary religions.
-
-Beyond the narrow horizon which bounded the world of the ancients, lay the
-imaginary land of the immortals, the Blessed, the Happy, the Fortunate
-Isles. But as that horizon enlarged, the Elysian Fields and Banquet Halls
-were transferred to an upper sphere. In the wonder aroused by the
-firmament above, with its solid-looking vault across which sun, stars,
-and clouds traversed; in the place it plays in dreams of barbarian and
-patriarch, when the sleeper is carried thither; in its brightness of
-noonday glory as contrasted with the dark sun-set under-world, we may find
-some of the materials of which the theory of an upper world, a heaven
-("the heaved") is made up. There the barbarian places his paradise to
-which the rainbow and the Milky Way are roads; there he meets his kindred,
-and lives where cold, disease, and age are not, but everlasting summer and
-summer fruits. There, too, for the conceptions of advanced races are drawn
-from the same sources, the civilised peoples of Europe and America have
-placed their heaven. And, save in refinement of detail incident to
-intellectual growth, there is nothing to choose between the earlier and
-the later; the same gross delights, the same earth-born ideas are there,
-whether we enter the Norseman's Valhalla, the Moslem's Paradise, or the
-Christian's New Jerusalem.
-
-
-§ XII.
-
-CONCLUSIONS FROM THE FOREGOING.
-
-It would exceed the limits and purport of this book to follow the
-extension of the belief in spirits to its extreme range; in other words,
-to belief in controlling spirits in inanimate objects, which were advanced
-_pari passu_ with man's advancing conceptions to place and rank as the
-higher gods of polytheism. Such belief, as already indicated, is the
-outcome of that primitive philosophy which invests the elements above and
-the earth beneath with departmental deities, until, through successive
-stages of dualism, the idea of a Supreme Deity is reached, and the
-approach is thus made towards a conception of the unity and unvarying
-order of nature. Deferring reference to the part played by dreams as media
-of communication between heaven and earth, and as warnings of coming
-events, let us summarise the evidence which has been gathered, and ask
-whether it warrants the conclusions drawn from it in the present work.
-
-It has been shown that races have existed, and exist still, at so low a
-level that their scanty stock of words has to be supplemented by gestures,
-rendering converse in the dark next to impossible. Such people are
-bewildered by any effort to count beyond their fingers; they have no idea
-of the relation of things, or of their differences; they have no power of
-generalisation by which to merge the accidental in the essential. They
-believe that their names and likenesses are integral parts of themselves,
-and that they can be bewitched or harmed through them at the hands of any
-one who knows the one or has obtained the other. As an important result of
-their confusion between the objective and the subjective, we find a vivid
-and remarkable belief in the reality of their dreams. The events which
-make up these are explained only on the theory that if the body did not
-move from its sleeping place, something related to it did, and that the
-people, both living and dead, who appeared in dream and vision, did in
-very presence come. The puzzle is solved by the theory of a second self
-which can leave the body and return to it. For the savage knows nothing of
-_mind_. The belief in this other self is strengthened (possibly more or
-less created) by its appearance in shadow or reflection, in mocking echo,
-in various diseases, especially fits, when the sufferer is torn by an
-indwelling foe, and writhes as if in his merciless grasp. The belief in
-such a ghost-soul, as to the form and ethereal nature of which all kinds
-of theories are started, is extended to animals and lifeless things, since
-like evidence of its existence is supplied by them. The fire that destroys
-his hut, the wind that blows it down, the lightning that darts from the
-clouds and strikes his fellow-man dead beside him, the rain-storm that
-floods his fields, the swollen river that sweeps away his store of
-food--these and every other force manifest in nature add their weight to
-the inferences which rude man has drawn. The phenomena which have
-accounted for the vigour of life and the prostration of disease account
-for the motion of things in heaven above and the earth beneath, and the
-barbaric mind thus enlarges its belief in a twofold existence in man to a
-far-reaching doctrine of spirits everywhere. Step by step, from ghost-soul
-flitting round the wigwam to the great spirits indwelling in the powers of
-nature, the belief in supernatural beings with physical qualities arises,
-until the moral element comes in, and they appear as good and evil gods
-contending for the mastery of the universe. Passing by details as to the
-whereabouts of the other self and its doings and destiny in the other
-world which the dream involves, and following the order of ideas on
-scientific lines, two queries arise:--
-
-1. Does the evidence before us suffice to warrant the conclusions drawn
-from it as to the serious and permanent part which dreams have played in
-the origin and growth of primitive belief in spirits; in short, of belief
-in supernatural agencies from past to present times? In this place the
-answer is brief. Of course the antecedent conditions of man's developed
-emotional nature, and of the universe of great and small, which is the
-field of its exercise, are taken for granted.
-
-The general animistic interpretation which man gives to phenomena at the
-outset expressed itself in the particular conceptions of souls everywhere,
-of which dreams and such-like things supplied the raw material. If they
-did not, what did? Denying this, we must fall back on a theory of
-intuition or on revelation. As to the former, it begs the whole question;
-as to the latter, can that which is itself the subject of periodical
-revision be an infallible authority on anything?
-
-If dreams, apparitions, shadows, and the like, are sufficing causes, then,
-in obedience to the Law of Parsimony (as it is termed in logic), we need
-not invoke the play of higher causes when lower ones are found competent
-to account for the effects. If it seems to some that the base is too
-narrow, the foundation too weak for the superstructure, and that our
-metaphysics and our beliefs regarding the invisible rest upon something
-wider and stronger than the illusions of a remote savage ancestry, the
-facts of man's history may be adduced as witness to his continuous passage
-into truth through illusions; to the vast revolutions and readjustments
-made in his correction of the first impressions of the senses. There is
-not a belief of the past, from the notions of savages about their dreams
-and ghost-world to those of more advanced races about their spirit-realms
-and its occupants, to which this does not apply. In the more delicate
-observations of the astronomer he must, when estimating the position of
-any celestial body, take into account its apparent displacement through
-the refractive properties of the atmosphere, and must also allow for
-defects of perception in himself due to what is called "personal
-equation." And in ascertaining our place in the scale of being, as well as
-in seeking for the grounds of belief concerning our own nature, we have to
-take into account the refracting media of dense ignorance and prejudice
-through which these beliefs have come, and to allow for the confirming
-error due to personal equation--fond desire. The result will be the
-vanishing of illusions involving momentous changes in psychology, ethics,
-and theology. Instead of groping among mental phenomena for explanations
-of themselves, they will be analysed by the methods already indicated.
-Instead of resting the authority for moral injunctions on innate ideas of
-right and wrong, and on inspired statutes and standards, it will rest on
-the accredited, because verifiable, experience of man. Instead of finding
-incentives to, or restraints on, conduct by operating on men's hope of
-future reward, or fear of hell as "hangman's whip to keep the wretch in
-order," they will be supplied by an ever-widening sense of duty, quickened
-by love and loyalty to a supreme order, in obedience to which the ultimate
-happiness of humanity in the life that is will be secured.
-
-In this, and not in theories of an hereafter whose origin and persistence
-are explained, will man find his satisfaction, and the springs of motive
-to whatever is ennobling, lovely, and of good report. With the poet, who,
-laying bare the sources of the unrest of his time, has led us to the
-secret of its peace, he will ask--
-
- "Is it so small a thing
- To have enjoyed the sun,
- To have lived light in the spring,
- To have loved, to have thought, to have done,
- To have advanced true friends, and beat down baffling foes--
- That we should feign a bliss
- Of doubtful future date,
- And while we dream on this,
- Lose all our present state,
- And relegate to worlds yet distant our repose?"[94]
-
-2. Does the theory of evolution in its application to the development of
-the spiritual nature of man, and to the origin and growth of ideas, find
-any breach of continuity? In its inclusion of him as a part of nature, in
-accounting for his derivation from pre-human ancestry by a process of
-natural selection, and in its proofs of his unbroken development from the
-embryo to adult life, it embraces the growth and development of mind and
-all that mind connotes. In the words of Professor Huxley, "As there is an
-anatomy of the body, so there is an anatomy of the mind; the psychologist
-dissects mental phenomena into elementary states of consciousness, as the
-anatomist resolves limbs into tissues, and tissues into cells. The one
-traces the development of complex organs from simple rudiments; the other
-follows the building up of complex conceptions out of simpler constituents
-of thought. As the physiologist inquires into the way in which the
-so-called 'functions' of the body are performed, so the psychologist
-studies the so-called 'faculties' of the mind. Even a cursory attention to
-the ways and works of the lower animals suggests a comparative anatomy and
-physiology of the mind; and the doctrine of evolution presses for
-application as much in the one field as in the other."[95]
-
-Any coherent explanation of the operations of nature was impossible while
-man had no conception or knowledge of the interplay of its several parts.
-Now, by the doctrine of continuity, not only are present changes referred
-to unvarying causes, but the past is interpreted by the processes going on
-under our eyes. We can as easily calculate eclipses backward as forward;
-we can learn in present formations of the earth's crust the history of the
-deposition of the most ancient strata; we read in a rounded granite pebble
-the story of epochs, the fire that fused its organic or inorganic
-particles, the water that rubbed and rolled it; we reconstruct from a few
-bones the ancestry of obscure forms, and find in the fragments the missing
-links that connect species now so varied. And the like method is applied
-to man in his _tout ensemble_. His development is not arbitrary; what he
-is is the expansion of germs of what he was.
-
-Till these latter days he has, on the warrant of legends now of worth only
-as witnesses to his crude ideas, presumed on an isolated place in
-creation, and excepted his race from an inquiry made concerning every
-creature beneath him. The pride of birth has hindered his admission of
-lineal connection between the beliefs of cultured races and the beliefs of
-savages, and pseudo-scientific writers still confuse issues by assuming
-distinctions between races to whom spiritual truths have been revealed and
-races from whom these truths have been withheld. But the only tenable
-distinction to be drawn nowadays is between the scientific and
-pre-scientific age in the history of any given race.
-
-In these times, when many run to and fro, and knowledge is increased, we
-forget how recent are the tremendous changes wrought by the science that--
-
- "Reaches forth her arms
- To feel from world to world, and charms
- Her secret from the latest moon."
-
-Dulled by familiarity, we forget how operative these changes are upon
-opinions which have been--save now and again by voices speedily
-silenced--unquestioned during centuries. It is, in truth, another world to
-that in which our forefathers lived. Even in science itself the revolution
-wrought by discoveries within the last fifty years is enormous. Our old
-standard authorities, especially in astronomy and geology, are now of
-value only as historical indices to the progress of those sciences, while
-in the domain of life itself the distinctions between plant and animal,
-assumed under the terms Botany and Zoology, are effaced and made one under
-the term Biology. Sir James Paget, in a profoundly interesting address on
-_Science and Theology_, has pointed out that it was once thought profane
-to speak of life as in any kind of relation or alliance with chemical
-affinities manifest in lifeless matter; now, the correlation of all the
-forces of matter is a doctrine which investigation more and more confirms.
-It was believed--many believe it still--that an impassable chasm separates
-the inorganic from the organic, the latter being attained only through
-operations of a "vital force" external to matter. That chasm is imaginary.
-Even the supposed difference between plants and animals in the existence
-in the latter of a stomach by which to digest and change nutritive
-substances, vanishes before the experiments on carnivorous plants. And not
-only do the observations of Mr. Darwin go far to show the existence of a
-nervous system in plants, but examination of crystals shows that a "truly
-elemental pathology must be studied in them after mechanical injuries or
-other disturbing forces." And is man, "the roof and crown of things," to
-witness to diversity amidst this unity?
-
-If we hesitate to believe that our metaphysics have been evolved from
-savage philosophy, that our accepted opinions concerning man's nature and
-destiny are but the improved and purified speculations of the past, we
-must remember what long years had elapsed before the spirit of science
-arose and breathed its air of freedom on the human mind. The Christian
-religion wrought no change in the attitude of man towards the natural
-world; it remained as full of mystery and miracle to the pagan after his
-conversion as before it. When that religion was planted in foreign soil it
-had, as the condition of its thriving, to be nourished by the alien
-juices. It had to take into itself what it found there, and it found very
-much in common. Although it displaced and degraded the _Dii majores_ of
-other faiths, it had its own elaborated order of principalities and
-powers; it had as real a belief in demons and goblins as any pagan; and it
-was, therefore, simply a question of baptizing and rechristening the
-ghost-world of heathendom, substituting angels for swan-maidens and elves,
-devils for demons, and retaining unchanged the army of evil agencies, who
-as witches and wraiths swarmed in the night and wrought havoc on soul and
-body.
-
-The doctrine of continuity admits no exceptions; it has no "favoured
-nation" clause for man. Its teaching is of order, not confusion; of
-gradual development, not spasmodic advance; of banishment of all
-catastrophic theories in the interpretation of the history of man as of
-nature. In its exposition nothing is "common or unclean;" nothing too
-trivial for notice in study of the growth of language, of law, of social
-customs and institutions, of religion, or of aught else comprised in the
-story of our race. The nursery rhyme and the "wise saw" embody the serious
-belief of past times; ceremonial rites and priestly vestments preserve the
-significance and sacredness gathering round the common when it becomes
-specialised. And in this belief in spiritual powers and agencies within
-and without, the line uniting the lower and the higher culture is
-unbroken. Nor can it be otherwise, if it be conceded that the sources of
-man's knowledge do not transcend his experience, and that within the
-limits of this we have to look for the origin of all beliefs, from the
-crudest animism to the most ennobling conceptions of the Eternal.
-
- "This world is the nurse of all we know,
- This world is the mother of all we feel."
-
-And yet we find this denied by professed scientists, whose minds are
-built, as it were, in water-tight compartments. The theistic philosopher,
-trembling at the bogey of human automatism, creates an Ego, "an entity
-wherein man's nobility essentially consists, which does not depend for its
-existence on any play of physical or vital forces, but which makes these
-forces subservient to its determinations."[96] The biologist, shrinking
-from the application of the theory of evolution to the descent of man,
-argues that "his animality is distinct in nature from his rationality,
-though inseparably joined during life in one common personality." His body
-"was derived from pre-existing materials, and therefore, only derivatively
-created; that is, by the operation of secondary laws." His soul, on the
-other hand, was created in quite a different way, not by any pre-existing
-means external to God Himself, but by the direct action of the Almighty
-symbolised by the term "breathing."[97] As this compound nature of man is
-defended in a scientific treatise, the question that leaps to the lips is,
-When did the inoculating action take place?--in the embryonic stage, or at
-birth, or at the first awakenings of the moral sense?
-
-Readers of that eccentric book, _The Unseen Universe_, published some
-eight years ago, may remember that the authors built up a spiritual body
-whose home lay beyond the visible cosmos.[98] Their argument was to the
-following effect:--Just as light is held to result from vibrations of the
-ether set in motion by self-luminous or light-reflecting bodies, so every
-thought occasions molecular action in the brain, which gives rise to
-vibrations of the ether. While the effect of a portion of our mental
-activity is to leave a permanent record on the matter of the brain, and
-thus constitute an organ of memory, the effect of the remaining portion is
-to set up thought-waves across the ether, and to construct by these means,
-in some part of the unseen universe, what may be called our "spiritual
-body." By this process there is being gradually built up, as the resultant
-of our present activities, our future selves; and when we die our
-consciousness is in some mysterious way transferred to the spiritual body,
-and thus the continuity of identity is secured.
-
- "Eternal form shall still divide
- Th' eternal soul from all beside."
-
-We may well quote the ancient words: "If they do these things in a green
-tree, what shall be done in the dry?" The physicists, who thus locate the
-soul in limitless space, and call it vibrations; the mathematician, who
-said it must be extension; and the musician, who said, like Aristoxenus,
-that it was harmony; the Cartesian philosopher, who locates it in the
-pineal gland; the Costa Rican, who places it in the liver; the Tongans,
-who make it co-extensive with the body; and the Swedenborgians, who assume
-an underlying, inner self pervading the whole frame--these have met
-together, the lower and the higher culture have kissed each other.
-
-The tripartite division of man by the Rabbis, the Platonists, the
-Paulinists, the Chinese, the mediæval theories of vegetal, sensitive, and
-rational souls; what are these but the "other self" of savage philosophy
-writ large? Plato's number is found among the Sioux: of their three souls
-one goes to a cold place, another to a warm place, and the third stays to
-guard the body. Washington Matthews, in his _Ethnology and Philology of
-the Hidatsa Indians_, says:--"It is believed by some of the Hidatsa that
-every human being has four souls in one. They account for the phenomena of
-gradual death, when the extremities are apparently dead while
-consciousness remains, by supposing the four souls to depart, one after
-another, at different times. When dissolution is complete, they say that
-all the souls are gone, and have joined together again outside the body. I
-have heard a Minsutaree quietly discussing this doctrine with an
-Assinneboine, who believed in only one soul to each body."
-
-Let it not be thought that because science explains the earth-born origin
-of some of man's loftiest hopes, she makes claim to have spoken the last
-word, and forbids utterance from any other quarter. The theologian is not
-less free to assume such miraculous intervention in man's development as
-marks him nearer to the angel than to the ape, only his assumptions lie
-beyond the scope of scientific inquiry. And it should be noted that whilst
-science takes away, she gives with no niggard hand, so that the loss is
-more seeming than real.
-
-When belief in the earth's central and supreme place in the universe was
-surrendered at the bidding of astronomy, there was compensation in the
-revelation of a universe to which thought can fix no limits. And if man
-is bidden to surrender belief in his difference in kind from other living
-creatures, he will be given the conception of a collective humanity whose
-duties and destiny he shares. That conception will not be the destruction,
-but the enlargement, of the field of the emotions, and, in contrasting the
-evanescence of the individual with the permanence of the race, he may find
-a profounder meaning in the familiar words--
-
- "We are such stuff as dreams are made on,
- And our little life is rounded with a sleep."
-
-
-§ XIII.
-
-DREAMS AS OMENS AND MEDIA OF COMMUNICATION BETWEEN GODS AND MEN.
-
-Reference has now to be made to the part played by dreams as supposed
-channels of communication between heaven and earth; as portents, omens,
-etc. The common belief among the nations of antiquity that they were sent
-by the gods, and the like belief lurking in the minds of the superstitious
-to this day, are the scarcely-altered survivals of barbaric confusion
-respecting them.
-
-When man had advanced from the earlier stages of undefined wonder and
-bewilderment concerning the powers around and above him to anthropomorphic
-conceptions of them, _i.e._ to making them in his own image, the events of
-his dreams were striking confirmation of his notions about the constant
-intervention of spiritual beings, gods, chiefs, and ancestors, in the
-affairs of life. That personal life and will with which the rude
-intelligence invests the objects of its awe; waving trees, swirling
-waters, drifting clouds, whirling winds, stately march of sun and star,
-seemed especially manifest in dreams and visions. In their unrelated and
-bewildering, or, on the other hand, their surpassingly clear, incidents,
-the powers indwelling in all things seemed to come nearer than in the less
-sensational occurrences of the day, uttering their monitions, or making
-known their will. They were the media by which this and that thing was
-commanded or forbidden, or by which guidance and counsel and knowledge of
-the future were given. To induce them, therefore, became a constant
-effort. The discovery that fasting is a certain method of procuring them
-is one reason of its prevalence in the lower culture. Amongst all the
-indigenous races of North America abstinence has been practised as a chief
-means of securing supernatural inspiration. The Redskin, to become a
-sorcerer or to secure a revelation from his _totem_, or the Eskimo, to
-become _Angekok_, will endure the most severe privations.
-
-It is believed that whatever is seen in the first dream thus produced by
-fasting becomes the manitou, or guardian spirit of life, corresponding to
-the "daimon" of Socrates. And whoever by much fasting is favoured with
-dreams, and cultivates the art of explaining them as bearing on the
-future, becomes the feared and consulted "medicine man" of his tribe. His
-_kee-keé-wins_, or records, are finally shown to the old people, who meet
-together and consult upon them. They in the end give their approval, and
-declare that he is gifted as a prophet, is inspired with wisdom, and is
-fit to lead in the councils of the people.[99]
-
-Very slender data were needed for the conclusions first drawn from dreams;
-let the death of a friend or foe be the incident, and the event happen;
-let a hunting-path fill the half-torpid fancy, and a day's fasting follow;
-let the mother of a young sportsman dream that she saw a bear in a certain
-place, and the son, guided by her account, find the bear where indicated,
-and kill it; the arbitrary relation is set up forthwith. As Lord Bacon
-says, "Men mark the hits, but not the misses," and a thousand dreams
-unfulfilled count as nothing against one dream fulfilled. Out of that is
-shaped, as dream-lore shows, a canon of interpretation by which whole
-races will explain their dreams, never staying, when experience happens to
-confirm it, to wonder that the correspondences are not more frequent than
-they are. Where the arbitrary act was wrought, the isolated or conflicting
-influences manifest, there deity or demon was working. So the passage from
-the crude interpretation of his dreams by the barbarian to the formal
-elaboration of the dream-oracle is obvious. It was only one of many modes
-by which the gods were thought to hold converse with man, and by which
-their will was divined. It was one phase of that many-sided belief in
-power for good or evil inhering in everything, and which led man to see
-omens in the common events of life, in births, in the objects any one met
-in a journey or saw in the sky; to divine the future by numbers, by the
-lines in the hand, by the song and flight of birds (lurking in the word
-_augury_), by the entrails of sacrificed men and animals.[100] Sometimes
-the god sends the message through a spiritual being, an angel (literally
-"messenger"); sometimes he, himself, speaks in vision, but more often
-through the symbolism of both familiar and unfamiliar things. To interpret
-this is a serious science, and skill and shrewdness applied therein with
-success were passports to high place and royal favour. In this we have the
-familiar illustrations of Joseph and Daniel, and, indeed, we need not
-travel beyond the books of the Old Testament for abundant and varied
-examples of the importance attached to dreams and visions, and of the
-place accorded to dreams,[101] an importance undiminished until we come to
-the literature of the centuries just before Christ. For example, in the
-Book of Jesus the Son of Sirac, we read--
-
- "Vain and deceitful hopes befit the senseless man,
- And dreams make fools rejoice,
- Like one who grasps at a shadow and chases the wind,
- Is he who puts trust in dreams."[102]
-
-In the belief that through dreams and oracles Yahweh made known his will,
-the influence of older beliefs and their literature is apparent. Among the
-Accadians, a pre-Semitic race in Babylonia, there existed a mass of
-treatises on magic and divination by dreams and visions, and both from
-this and from Egyptian sources, blended with survivals from their barbaric
-past, the Hebrews largely drew.
-
-In this, too, "there is nothing new under the sun." Homer, painting the
-vividness and agonising incompleteness of the passing visions, affirms
-that dreams from Jove proceed, although sometimes to deceive men; Plato
-assigns prophetic character to the images seen in them; Aristotle sees a
-divination concerning some things in dreams which is not incredible; the
-answer to oracles was sought in them, as when the worshipper slept in a
-temple on the skin of a sacrificed ram, and learned his destiny through
-the dream that came. The Stoics argued that if the gods love and care for
-men and are all-knowing, they will tell their purposes to men in sleep.
-Cicero attaches high importance to the faculty of interpreting them; their
-phenomena, like those of oracles and predictions, should, he contends, be
-explained just as the grammarians and the commentators explain the
-poets.[103]
-
-With the influence of these beliefs in the air, and with the
-legend-visions of Scripture as authority, the divine origin of dreams
-became a doctrine of the Christian Church. Tertullian says that "we
-receive dreams from God, there being no man so foolish as never to have
-known any dreams come true," and in his _De Anima_ reference is made to a
-host of writers of dream treatises. For the most part they are but names;
-their treatises have perished, but enough remains for the perusal of the
-curious regarding ancient rules of interpretation and the particular
-significance of certain dreams. The current views of dreams in classic
-antiquity are believed to be partly embodied in the [Greek: Oneirokritika]
-of Artemidorus of Ephesus, who flourished about the middle of the second
-century, and who reduces dream interpretation to a body of elaborate
-rules, while amongst Christian writers Synesius of Cyrene, who lived two
-centuries later, holds a corresponding place.
-
-Both classic and patristic writers supply copious details concerning the
-classes into which dreams were divided, and which have some curious
-correspondences among the Oriental nations, as well as in our dream-lore,
-_e.g._, when Artemidorus says that he who dreams he hath lost a tooth
-shall lose a friend, we may compare with this a quotation which Brand
-gives from the _Sapho and Phao_ of Lily, a playwright of the time of
-Elizabeth. "Dreams have their trueth. Dreams are but dotings, which come
-either by things we see in the day or meates that we eat, and so the
-common-sense preferring it to be the imaginative. 'I dreamed,' says
-Ismena, 'mine eyetooth was loose, and that I thrust it out with my
-tongue.' 'It foretelleth,' replies Mileta, 'the loss of a friend; and I
-ever thought thee so full of prattle that thou wouldst thrust out the best
-friend with thy tatling.'"
-
-It is, however, needless to quote from Artemidorus and others of their
-kin. They do but furnish samples of the ingenuity applied to profitless
-speculations on matters which were fundamental then, and around which the
-mind played unchecked and unchallenged. Moreover, the subtle distinctions
-made between dreams in former times were slowly effaced, or sank to their
-proper level in the gossip of chap books--our European _kee-keé-wins_. But
-the belief in the dream as having a serious meaning, and in the spectral
-appearances in visions as real existences, remained as strong as in any
-barbarian or pagan. In an atmosphere charged with the supernatural,
-apparitions and the like were matters of course, the particular form of
-the illusion to which the senses testified being in harmony with the ideas
-of the age. The devil does not appear to Greek or Roman, but he sorely
-troubled the saints, unless their nerves were, like Luther's, strong
-enough to overmaster him. Luther speaks of him as coming into his cell,
-and making a great noise behind the stove, and of his walking in the
-cloister above his cell at night; "but as I knew it was the devil," he
-says, "I paid no attention to him, and went to sleep." Sceptics now and
-again arose protesting against the current belief, but they were as a
-voice crying in the desert. One Henry Cornelius Agrippa, in the fifteenth
-century, a man born out of due time, says, "To this delusion not a few
-great philosophers have given not a little credit, especially Democritus,
-Aristotle, Sincsius, etc., so far building on examples of dreams, which
-some accident hath made to be true, that thence they endeavour to persuade
-men that there are no dreams but what are real."
-
-His words have not yet lost their purport. For the credulity of man, the
-persistence with which he clings to the shadow of the supernatural after
-having surrendered the substance, seem almost a constant quantity, varying
-only in form. Unteachable by experience, fools still pay their guineas to
-mediums to rap out inane messages from the departed, and send postage
-stamps to the Astronomer Royal, asking him to "work the planets" for them,
-and secure them luck in love and law-suits. Nor is there any cure for this
-but in wise culture of the mind, wise correction, and wholesome control of
-the emotions. "By faithfully intending the mind to the realities of
-nature," as Bacon has it, and by living and working among men in a
-healthy, sympathetic way, exaggeration of a particular line of thought or
-feeling is prevented, and the balance of the faculties best preserved.
-For, adds Dr. Maudsley, in pregnant and well-chosen words, "there are not
-two worlds--a world of nature and a world of human nature--standing over
-against one another in a sort of antagonism, but one world of nature, in
-the orderly evolution of which human nature has its subordinate part.
-Delusions and hallucinations may be described as discordant notes in the
-grand harmony. It should, then, be every man's steadfast aim, as a part of
-nature--his patient work--to cultivate such entire sincerity of relations
-with it; so to think, feel, and act always in intimate unison with it; to
-be so completely one with it in life, that when the summons comes to
-surrender his mortal part to absorption into it, he does so, not
-fearfully, as to an enemy who has vanquished him, but trustfully, as to a
-mother who, when the day's task is done, bids him lie down to sleep."
-
-
-
-
-INDEX.
-
-
- Abipone, 15, 151, 156.
-
- Abraham, 135.
-
- Accadians, 134, 240.
-
- Æsop, 96.
-
- Agassiz, 208.
-
- Agni, 74.
-
- Agrippa, Cornelius, 243.
-
- Ahriman, 54.
-
- Alger, 208.
-
- Algonquins, 40, 43, 46, 91, 99, 110, 125, 167, 184, 203, 211, 216.
-
- Allah, 159.
-
- Ancestors, sun and moon as, 19.
- worship of, 110, 112, 214.
-
- Ancient Stone Age, 8.
-
- Animal, descent from, 99.
- worship, 110.
-
- Animals, transformation into, 81.
- virtue in flesh of, 164.
- souls in, 207.
-
- Apollo, 52.
-
- Arabian folk-tales, 196.
- notion of soul, 202.
-
- Araucanians, 43, 163.
-
- Arnobius, 167.
-
- Arnold, Matthew, 14, 227.
-
- Art, primitive, 147.
-
- Artemidorus, 241.
-
- Arthur, King, 123.
-
- Aryan epics, 71.
-
- Aryan folk-tales, 70, 95.
- languages, 67.
- myths, 51, 76.
-
- Aryans, primitive home of, 69.
-
- Astrology, 33.
-
- Australians, 20, 26, 30, 99, 103, 150, 153, 157, 165, 179, 198, 205.
-
- Aztecs, 44, 199, 210.
-
-
- Barbaric belief in dreams, 168-174.
- belief in souls in brutes, etc., 207-213.
- belief in virtue in lifeless things, 12, 160-168, 181.
- confusion about names, 154-159.
- cures for disease, 179.
- dread of portrait-taking, 162.
- language, 150.
- notions of soul's abode, 215-222.
- theory of disease, 174, 182.
- theory of a soul, 182-187.
- theory of soul's nature, 198-206.
-
- Baring Gould, 28, 84.
-
- Basutos, 184.
-
- Beast-fables, 94, 98.
-
- Beowulf, 52.
-
- Berserkr, 87.
-
- Bifröst, 33.
-
- Bird, soul as, 210.
- wind as, 43-45.
-
- Body, soul apart from, 188.
- soul as replica of, 205.
-
- Bohemian folk-tale, 195.
-
- Bonaparte, 64.
-
- Brain of man and ape, 144.
-
- Brand, 17, 166, 241.
-
- Brazilian Indians, 153, 156, 175.
-
- Breath, soul as, 187, 198 ff.
-
- Brébeuf, 165.
-
- Brinton, 45, 92, 101, 210.
-
- Brutes, souls in, 207.
-
- Bryant, 7.
-
- Buckle, 3.
-
- Buddha, 64.
-
- Buddhist fables (_see_ Jâtakas).
-
- Bunsen, 132.
-
- Bushmen, 13, 20, 26.
-
-
- Cæsar, 106.
-
- Callaway, Bishop, 170.
-
- Campbell, J. F., 193.
-
- Cannibalism, 165.
-
- Cardinal points, symbol of, 44.
-
- Caribs, 167.
-
- Carpenter, Dr., 88, 232.
-
- Catlin, 162.
-
- Charlemagne, 125.
-
- Charles's Wain, 30.
-
- Charms, philosophy of, 164.
-
- Chasuble, 167.
-
- Chaucer, 28, 32.
-
- Child and savage, 14.
-
- Chimpanzee, brain of, 145.
-
- Chinese myth, 16, 36.
-
- Choctaws, 42, 184.
-
- Christian heaven, 220.
- religion, 231.
-
- Cicero, 240.
-
- Civilised theories of soul's nature, 198, 203.
-
- Clan-totems, 107, 109.
-
- Cloud-serpent, 46.
-
- Clouds as cows, 51.
-
- Confession, 181.
-
- Congo Negroes, 202.
-
- Continuity, doctrine of, 228, 231.
-
- Coral, 166.
-
- Costa Ricans, 216, 234.
-
- Counting, savage, 153.
-
- Cox, Sir G. W., 37, 62, 75, 198.
-
- Crest, totem as, 108.
-
- Cronus, 35, 37.
-
- Cross as wind symbol, 44.
-
- _Custom and Myth_, 38.
-
-
- Dakotas, 31, 46, 106, 175, 199, 213.
-
- Dammaras, 151.
-
- Darwin, 3, 230.
-
- Dasent, 91, 121.
-
- Dead, burial of food with, 212.
- road of the, 32.
-
- Death, savage notion of, 186.
-
- Demons, 58, 178.
-
- Dennys, 15.
-
- Deodand, 15.
-
- Devil, 53, 56, 60.
- as disease-bringer, 176.
-
- Disease, savage theory of, 89, 174 ff.
- savage remedies for, 179.
-
- Doctrine of signatures, 166.
-
- Dorman, 42, 157, 209.
-
- Dragons, battles with, 52.
-
- Dreams as source of belief in soul, 183, 225.
-
- Dreams, duality in, 183.
- savage belief in reality of, 168-174.
- omens from, 236-242.
-
- Dyaks, 17, 25, 159, 171.
-
- Dyaus, 36, 74.
-
-
- Earth as source of heaven-theories, 219.
-
- Earth-bearers, 40.
-
- Echo, soul as, 185.
-
- _Edda_, 15, 29, 33, 43, 52.
-
- Effigy, burning in, 16.
-
- Egg, world as, 38.
-
- Ego, the, 232.
-
- Egyptian folk-tale, 197.
-
- Epics, Aryan, 71.
-
- Epidemic delusions, 88.
-
- Eskimos, 30, 91, 153, 163, 179, 199, 217, 237.
-
- Esthonian myth, 39.
-
- Euhêmeros, 66.
-
- Eumenidês, 159.
-
- Evolution, 144.
- of mind, 5, 228.
-
- Exile, Jewish, 134.
-
- Exogamy, 104.
-
- Eye-bright, 15, 166.
-
-
- Fasting, 237.
-
- Fijians, 171, 177, 184, 211.
-
- Fingers in counting, 153.
-
- Finnish myth, 16, 32, 38, 43, 45, 121, 176, 196, 219.
-
- Finns, 159, 173.
-
- Fire myths, 47.
-
- Food, forbidden, 105.
-
- Foster, Thomas, 63.
-
- Frisian moon myth, 28.
-
-
- Gaea, 35.
-
- Galton, 151.
-
- Gellert myth, 128.
-
- Gender, origin of, 22.
-
- _Gesta Romanorum_, 128.
-
- Giant with no heart in his body, 192.
-
- Gill, W. W., 20, 47, 177.
-
- Gladstone, W. E., 7.
-
- Gods, revelation from, through dreams, 239.
-
- Goldziher, 62, 64, 135.
-
- Greek myth, 33, 77.
- notion of soul, 202.
-
- Greenlanders, 27, 164, 171, 201, 212.
-
- Grimm, 27, 30, 32, 55, 97, 178, 181, 201, 209, 210.
-
- Grimm's Law, 73.
-
- Grote, 14.
-
-
- Hades, 220.
-
- Hall, Bishop, 18.
-
- Heaven, 19.
- imagery of, 221.
- and earth, myths of, 34.
-
- Hebrew myth, 33, 39, 64, 131-136.
- notion of soul, 206.
-
- Hell, 220.
-
- Heraklês, 22, 31, 51, 63, 136.
-
- Hêrê, 31.
-
- Hiawatha, 158.
-
- Hidatsa Indians, 235.
-
- History, myth in, 114.
-
- _Hitopadesa_, 129.
-
- Holmes, 183.
-
- Homer, 240.
-
- Hottentot, 217.
-
- Huc, Father, 181.
-
- Hurricane, 199.
-
- Huxley, 145, 228.
-
-
- Icelandic moon myth, 28.
-
- Iliad, 55, 64, 205.
-
- Ilmarine, 39.
-
- Im Thurn, 156, 171, 207.
-
- Inanimate things, criminality of, 15.
- sex in, 24.
- souls in, 211.
-
- Incas, 45.
-
- _Indian Fairy Tales_, 191.
-
- Indians, Columbian, 155.
- Housatonic, 31.
- North American, 13, 17, 21, 26, 30, 151, 156, 162, 164, 175, 199, 207,
- 212, 216, 219, 235, 237.
- of Guiana, 156, 171.
- Selish, 27.
- Western, 46, 107.
-
- Indra, 49, 53.
-
- Iroquois, 156, 165, 167.
-
- Isaac, 135.
-
- Islam, 33.
-
-
- Jack and Jill, 28.
-
- Japanese myth, 40.
-
- Jâtakas, 27, 96, 129, 192.
-
- Jehovah, 159.
-
- Johnson, Dr., 183.
-
- Jonah, 136.
-
-
- Kaffirs, 13, 164.
-
- _Kalevala_, 38.
-
- _Kalevipöeg_, 39.
-
- Kane, Dr., 155.
-
- Kasirs, 30.
-
- Kenaima, 175.
-
- Khasias moon myth, 27.
-
- Kinship, primitive, 102.
-
- Kirby, 196.
-
- Kuhn, 41.
-
-
- Lancashire folk-lore, 177, 204.
-
- Lang, Andrew, 37, 166, 205.
-
- Lang, Dr., 157.
-
- Language, personification of, 24.
- physical base of, 150.
- primitive, 149.
-
- Languages, savage, 23.
- limitations of, 150.
-
- Lapps, 156, 159, 201.
-
- Leland, 44.
-
- Lightning myths, 47.
-
- Lithuanian, 32.
-
- Living and not living, savage confusion between, 12, 160-168, 181.
-
- Llewellyn myth, 128.
-
- Lucretius, 169.
-
- Luther, 242.
-
- Lycanthropy, 83.
-
- Lyell, 145.
-
-
- Malays, 150.
-
- Man, mental development of, 147, 228.
- primitive interpretation of nature by, 10.
- relation of, to nature, 4, 228.
- savage and civilised, 144.
-
- Manacicas, 20.
-
- _Manes_, 212.
-
- Maoris, 34.
-
- Mapuches, 180.
-
- Marriage, primitive, 103.
-
- Maruts, 44, 53.
-
- Matthews, Washington, 235.
-
- Maudsley, Dr., 243.
-
- Maui, sun-catcher, 21.
- fire-bringer, 47.
-
- M'Lennan, 102, 104.
-
- Medicine-men, 92, 99, 237.
-
- Melanesian, 166.
-
- Men-beasts, 86.
-
- Metamorphosis, 81.
-
- Metempsychosis, 82.
-
- Mexicans, 212.
-
- Milky Way, 31, 222.
-
- Mind, evolution of, 5, 228.
-
- Mivart, 233.
-
- Mohawk, 199.
-
- Mohicans, 150.
-
- Mongolian moon myth, 27.
-
- Mongols, 150.
-
- Moon, as mother, 25.
- as sun's sister, 26.
- man in the, 28.
- myths, 10, 19, 20.
- patches, 27.
-
- Moquis, 99, 102, 110.
-
- Müller, Max, 37, 49, 56, 62, 66, 68, 111, 158.
-
- Multiple souls, 234.
-
- Myth in history, 114.
- origin of, 17.
- primitive meaning of, 3, 10.
- serious meaning in, 7.
- solar theory of, 61-81.
- value of study of, 138.
-
- Myths of Creation, 38.
- earth-bearers, 40.
- fire-stealers, 47.
- heaven and earth, 34.
- lightning, 47.
- Milky Way, 31.
- moon, 20, 27.
- Northern Lights, 31.
- rainbow, 32, 33.
- stars, 30.
- sun, 19, 21.
- swallowing, 36.
- wind, 42-45.
-
-
- Names, savage dread of, 104.
- savage confusion about, 154-159.
-
- Napoleon III., will of, 113.
-
- New Zealanders, 13, 15, 30, 158, 164.
-
- Niebuhr, 65.
-
- Nightmare, 171.
-
- Non-Aryan, brain of, 144.
- races, languages of, 201.
-
- _Norse, Tales from the_, 192.
-
- Northern Lights, 31.
-
-
- Odin, 30, 44, 202.
-
- Ogres, 44.
-
- Ojibways, 42, 110, 155, 209, 212, 217.
-
- _Old Deccan Days_, 188.
-
- Omens, dreams as, 236-242.
-
- Oracles, 240.
-
- Origin of gender, 22.
- moon, 20.
- myth, 7.
- religion, 111.
- sun, 19.
-
- Orion, 30.
-
- Ormuzd, 54.
-
- Other self, barbaric theory of, 183.
- conceived as breath, 187, 199.
- passage from within to without, 185.
-
- Ottawas, 31.
-
- Ouranos, 74.
-
- Ovid, 85.
-
-
- Paget, Sir J., 230.
-
- _Panchatantra_, 129.
-
- Papa, 19, 34.
-
- Papuan, brain of, 145.
-
- Patagonians, 31.
-
- Persians, 25, 33, 57.
-
- Picture-writing, 107.
-
- Plant, descent from, 99.
-
- Plants, souls in, 208.
-
- Pleiades, 30.
-
- Pocahontas, 158.
-
- Polynesians, 38, 163.
-
- Prithivî, 36.
-
- Prytaneum, 15.
-
- Psychical Research, Society of, 217.
-
- Punchkin, 188 ff.
-
-
- Quiches, 42, 199.
-
-
- Ra, 21.
-
- Rae, Dr., 153.
-
- Rain, gender in, 25.
-
- Rainbow, 32.
-
- Ralston, 194.
-
- Rangi, 34.
-
- Religion, origin of, 111.
-
- Rénan, 132.
-
- Réville, 214.
-
- Reynard the fox, 97, 181.
-
- _Rig-Veda_, 44, 49, 72, 74, 76, 78, 80.
-
- Rink, Dr., 165.
-
- Road of the dead, 32.
-
- Roman notion of soul, 202.
-
- Rossetti, 17, 202.
-
- _Russian Folk-Tales_, 194.
-
-
- St. George, 53.
-
- Saliva, virtue in, 16, 163.
-
- Samoan moon myth, 27.
-
- Samoyed folk-tale, 196.
-
- Samson, myth of, 137.
-
- San Graal, 126.
-
- Sanskrit, 72.
-
- Satan, 57.
-
- Savage and civilised man, 144.
- belief in dreams, 168-174.
- confusion between living and not living, 13, 160-168.
- confusion between names and things, 105, 155.
- cures for disease, 179.
- interpretation of nature, 10.
- languages, 23, 150.
- mode of counting, 152.
- theory of disease, 89, 174-182.
- theory of soul, 182-187.
- theory of soul's abode, 215-222.
- theory of soul's nature, 198-207.
-
- Science, progress of, 230.
-
- Seminoles, 203.
-
- Semitic languages, 159.
- myth, 132.
-
- Senses, illusions of the, 39, 226.
-
- Servian folk-tale, 195.
-
- Shadow, soul as, 184.
-
- Shawnee name myth, 157.
-
- Sheol, 206, 220.
-
- Sioux, 47, 162.
-
- Skulls, capacity of, 145.
-
- Slavonic sun myth, 26.
-
- Sleeping heroes, 124.
-
- Smith, Adam, 151.
-
- Sneezing, 177.
-
- Society Islanders, 150.
-
- Solar theory of myth, 61-81.
-
- Sonora Indians, 185.
-
- Sorcerers, 163.
-
- Soul, absence in disease, 178.
- absence in dreams, 171.
- as breath, 187, 199 ff.
- as shadow, etc., 184.
- barbaric theory of, 182-187, 225, 234.
- dwelling-place of, 215-222.
- in brutes, plants, etc., 207.
- occupation of, 216.
- tales of, apart from body, 188 ff.
- theories of nature of, 198-207, 234.
- transfer of, 203.
- weight of, 207.
-
- South Sea Islanders, 158, 163, 185.
-
- Spencer, Herbert, 110, 149, 183, 214.
-
- Spirit as breath, 200.
-
- Spirits, offerings to, 213 (see also Soul).
-
- Star myths, 30.
-
- Stars as persons, 20, 25.
-
- Storm-gods, 44.
-
- Sun as ancestor, 19, 20.
- as father, 25.
- capture of, 21.
- myths, 10, 19, 51.
-
- Swedenborgians, 234.
-
- Swift, Dean, 73, 166.
-
-
- Taboo of names, 158.
-
- Tacitus, 16, 106.
-
- Tahitians, 158.
-
- Tákahlis, 203.
-
- _Talmud_, 178.
-
- Tasmanians, 150.
-
- Tatar folk-tale, 196.
-
- Tell myth, 116 ff.
-
- Tertullian, 241.
-
- Thor, 46, 52, 60.
-
- Thunder-bird, 46.
-
- To be, the verb, 151.
-
- Tools, primitive, 147.
-
- Toothache, 175, 179.
-
- Totemism, 99, 102, 237.
-
- Totems as badge, 107.
- as crest, 108.
- Red Indian, 100.
- worship of, 110.
-
- Tongans, 19, 201, 234.
-
- Tonkanays, 92.
-
- Transformation, 85, 91.
-
- Treacle, 16.
-
- Tree, criminality of, 15.
-
- Trees, soul in, 209.
-
- Trench, Archbishop, 137.
-
- Troyes, Courts of, 15.
-
- Tylor, 14, 25, 65, 165, 199, 202, 205, 207.
-
- Tyrolese, 164.
-
-
- Underworld, 220.
-
- _Unseen Universe_, 233.
-
- Uranus, 35.
-
-
- Varuna, 74.
-
- Vatea, 19.
-
- _Vatnsdæla Saga_, 173.
-
- _Veda_ (see _Rig-Veda_).
-
- _Vinaya Pitaka_, 129.
-
- Vritra, 49, 53, 60.
-
-
- Waitz, 205.
-
- Wandering Jew, 31.
-
- Water between earth and heaven, 219.
-
- Watling Street, 32.
-
- Werewolves, 84, 86, 91.
-
- West, soul abode in, 219.
-
- Whitney, 151.
-
- Wind, myths of, 42-45.
- soul as, 199.
-
- Witchcraft, 58.
-
- Witches, 83, 91.
-
- World as egg, 38.
-
- Worship of ancestors, 110, 214.
-
-
- Xomanes, 167.
-
-
- Yahweh, 55, 57, 159.
-
-
- _Zend-Avesta_, 54.
-
- Zeus, 33, 36, 55, 74, 85.
-
- Zoroaster, 56.
-
- Zulu, 170, 184.
-
-
-THE END.
-
-
-_Printed by_ R. & R. CLARK, _Edinburgh_.
-
-
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[1] Buckle's work appeared in 1857, Darwin's in 1859.
-
-[2] Matthew Arnold, _Empedocles on Etna_.
-
-[3] Countess Cesaresco's _Essays in the Study of Folk-Songs_, p. 183.
-
-[4] _The Folk-Lore of China_, p. 52.
-
-[5] Mark vii. 33, John ix. 6. Cf. Tacitus, _Hist._ iv. 81--"A certain man
-of the Alexandrian populace afflicted with wasted eyes kept imploring the
-prince to deign to spatter saliva on his cheek and eyeballs." In Finnish
-myth the demon Hiisi forms a huge snake from the spittle of a
-fellow-demon. Cf. also Thomson's _Masai Land_, pp. 288-290.
-
-[6] Henderson's _Folk-Lore of the Northern Counties_, p. 229; cf. Horace,
-_Sat._ i. 8, 30; Frazer's _Golden Bough_, i. 9; Scot's _Discoverie of
-Witchcraft_, p. 208.
-
-[7] Grimm, _T. M._, 356, 357.
-
-[8] II. 427.
-
-[9] Page xvi.
-
-[10] _Custom and Myth_, pp. 49, 50. While these sheets are passing through
-the press I am glad to take occasion to commend Mr. Lang's scholarly and
-fascinating book to the reader. As an explanation of the survival of crude
-and irrational elements in the myths of civilised races, it is a book to
-be reckoned with by the advocates of the solar theory.
-
-[11] "And said the gods, let there be a hammered plate in the midst of the
-waters, and let it be dividing between waters and waters." Gen. i. 6. The
-verb from which the substantive is derived signifies, among other
-meanings, "to beat out into thin plates."
-
-[12] Gen. viii. 2.
-
-[13] Gen. xxviii. 17.
-
-[14] Ezek. i. 1.
-
-[15] _Modern Painters_, iii. 154.
-
-[16] Dorman's _Primitive Superstitions_, p. 350.
-
-[17] Leland's _Algonquin Legends_, pp. 111, 204.
-
-[18] From Sans. _mar_, to "grind." Ares and Mars come from the same root.
-
-[19] _Merry Wives of Windsor_, act iv. sc. 4.
-
-[20] In Finnish myth the dwarfs punish with pimples and ringworm those who
-enter new houses without bowing to the four corners.
-
-[21] Both "pecuniary" and "fee" are, as established by Grimm's law, from
-_pecu_. Latin _pecu-a_, pl. _pecus_, "cattle"; Sanskrit _paçu_, "cattle,"
-from _pac_, to fasten (that which is tied up, _i.e._ domestic cattle). Cf.
-Skeats' _Etymol. Dict._ _in loc._ A.S. _feoh_ is cognate with German
-_vich_, and the ideas these express occur in _ktema_, the Greek word for
-"property," which Grimm derives from the verb _keto_, "to feed cattle."
-
-[22] Not the same as the Greek Heraklês. The similarity of name led the
-Romans to identify their Hercules, who was a god of boundaries, like
-Jupiter Terminus, with the Greek hero. _Cacus_ is not cognate with Greek
-_kakos_, bad, but was originally _Cæcius_, the "blinder" or "darkener."
-
-[23] _Decline and Fall_, iii. 171; Emerson's _English Traits_, p. 123.
-
-[24] See Ralston's _Russian Folk-Tales_, p. 347, for similar Bulgarian
-legend about St. George.
-
-[25] Haug's _Essays on the Parsis_, tr. Vendidâd, pp. 225 ff.
-
-[26] Cf. Isaiah xlv. 7, 1 Kings xxii. 21-23, Amos iii. 6.
-
-[27] _Iliad_, Book xxiv. 663 ff., and cf. Lang's tr., p. 494.
-
-[28] _Vide_ my _Jesus of Nazareth_, p. 144.
-
-[29] Notably _Tobit_ and _Baruch_, and cf. _Book of Wisdom_, ii. 24, for
-earliest indications of the belief. The Asmodeus of _Tobit_, iii. 8 and
-17, appears to be the Aeshmô dâevô of the Zend-Avesta.
-
-[30] Exodus xxii. 18.
-
-[31] For details of witch trials in this island cf. Mrs. Lynn Linton's
-_Witch Stories_, passim.
-
-[32] _Knowledge Library._
-
-[33] Vide _Chips_, ii. 1-146.
-
-[34] Cf. Professor Keane's Appendix to Sir A. C. Ramsay's _Europe_, p. 557
-
-[35] Cf. "Little Saddlehurst" in Mr. Geldart's _Folk-Lore of Modern
-Greece_, p. 27.
-
-[36] Cf. on this matter Whitney's _Oriental and Linguistic Studies_, p.
-203.
-
-[37] _Mythology of the Aryan Nations_, i. 108.
-
-[38] _Mental Physiology_, p. 315.
-
-[39] Spenser says--
-
- "Such, men do _changelings_ call, so changed by fairies' theft."
-
-[40] An Algonquin legend begins: "In old times, in the beginning of
-things, men were as animals and animals as men; how this was, no one
-knows."--Leland's _Algonquin Legends_, p. 31.
-
-[41] And cf. Bourke's _Snake Dance of the Moquis_, passim.
-
-[42] Cf. Mahaffy's _Prolegomena to Ancient History_, p. 392.
-
-[43] Vol. i., Trübner and Co. See for some valuable illustrations from
-early English and other sources an article by Rev. Dr. Morris, in
-_Contemp. Rev._, May 1881, and the _Folk-Lore Journal_, 1884-85, for
-translations of Jâtakas, also by Dr. Morris.
-
-[44] _Travels in N.W. and W. Australia_, ii. 229.
-
-[45] Bourke's _Snake Dance of the Moquis_, p. 136.
-
-[46] Cf. Art. "Family," _Encyclopædia Britannica_.
-
-[47] _De Bell. Gall._, v. c. 12.
-
-[48] _Elton's Origins of English History_, p. 297.
-
-[49] _Germania_, ix. 10.
-
-[50] _Principles of Sociology_, p. 413.
-
-[51] _Edinburgh Review_, Jan. 1869, p. 134. Article on Rilliet's "Origines
-de la Confédération Suisse: Histoire et Légende."
-
-[52] _Times'_ telegram from Geneva, June 25, 1883.
-
-[53] Book x. p. 166. Cf. Baring Gould's _Curious Myths_, p. 117, and
-Fiske's _Myths and Myth-makers_, p. 4.
-
-[54] Baring Gould, p. 119.
-
-[55] Cf. Prof. Rhys's _Arthurian Legend_, _passim_.
-
-[56] _Academy_, Nov. 17, 1877, p. 472.
-
-[57] _Mythology among the Hebrews, and its Historical Development_
-(London: Longmans), 1877.
-
-[58] _Goldziher_, p. 392 ff.
-
-[59] _Ibid._, p. 103.
-
-[60] The following paragraph from Professor Huxley's _Observations on the
-Human Skulls of Engis and Neanderthal_ is extracted from Lyell's
-_Antiquity of Man_, p. 89 (4th edition).
-
-"The most capacious healthy European skull yet measured had a capacity of
-114 cubic inches, the smallest (as estimated by weight of brain) about 55
-cubic inches, while, according to Professor Schaaffhausen, some Hindu
-skulls have as small a capacity as about 46 cubic inches (27 oz. of
-water). The largest cranium of any gorilla yet measured contained 34.5
-cubic inches."
-
-Commenting on this paper Sir Charles Lyell remarks that "it is admitted
-that the differences in character between the brain of the highest races
-of man and that of the lowest, though less in degree, are of the same
-order as those which separate the human from the Simian brain," and that
-the statements of both Professor Huxley and Dr. Morton show "that the
-range of size or capacity between the highest and lowest human brain is
-greater than that between the highest Simian and the lowest human brain."
-
-[61] Spencer's _Principles of Sociology_, p. 147.
-
-[62] The peculiar feature of the Semitic languages is that the consonants
-are everything and the vowels nothing, every word consisting, in the first
-instance, merely of three consonants, which form, so to speak, the soul of
-the idea to be expressed by that word. And as in ancient times the
-consonants only were written, the name Jehovah appeared as JHVH. Its exact
-pronunciation is utterly lost, and such veneration gathered round it, that
-when the Jews came to it they substituted some other name--usually Adonai.
-Afterwards, when vowels were added to the Hebrew text, those in Adonai, or
-its phonetic form Edona, were inserted between the letters of the sacred
-name, and thus JHVH was written Jehovah.
-
-[63] Rink's _Tales and Traditions of the Eskimo_, p. 45.
-
-[64] Vide _Custom and Myth_; Art. "Moly and Mandragora," p. 146.
-
-[65] _Popular Antiquities_, ii. 85.
-
-[66] Dyers _Folk-Lore_, p. 179.
-
-[67] Arnobius _adv. Gentes._, v. 19.
-
-[68] _De rerum Natura_, Book iv. 453-468.
-
-[69] According to Professor Skeat, from A.S. _niht_, night; _mara_, lit.
-"a crusher," from Aryan root, MAR, to crush. Cf. _Etymol. Dict._
-
-[70] _Among the Indians of Guiana_, pp. 344-346.
-
-[71] W. G. Black: _Folk-Medicine_, p. 13.
-
-[72] _Teut. Mythol._, 1165.
-
-[73] Cf. Grimm, _Teut. Mythol._ 1177.
-
-[74] "Voilà autant de rapports que les Bouddhistes ont avec nous," adds
-the traveller, for hinting at which analogies between Buddhists and
-Catholics the Pope put his book on the Index.
-
-[75] In a Finnish legend, which is the subject of Southey's "Donica," a
-maiden of that name moves about seemingly alive after her death in virtue
-of a parchment as magic spell, which is fastened to her wrist, until a
-sorcerer finds out the secret of the connection and unfastens the
-parchment, when the counterfeit life departs.
-
-[76] _Mythology of the Aryan Nations_, i. 140.
-
-[77] Brinton's _Myths of the New World_, p. 51 (second edition).
-
-[78] I am indebted to the Rev. Richard Morris for this reference.
-
-[79] Jacob Grimm remarks that whilst the more palpable breath, as spirit,
-is masculine, the living, life-giving soul is treated as a delicate
-feminine essence. _Soul_ is the Icelandic _sála_, German _seele_, Gothic
-_saiwala_, akin to _saivs_, which means "the sea." _Saivs_ is from a root,
-_si_, or _siv_, the Greek _seio_, to shake, and this choice of the word
-_saivala_ may indicate that the ancient Teutons conceived of the soul "as
-a sea within, heaving up and down with every breath, and reflecting heaven
-and earth on the mirror of the deep."--_T. M._ p. 826.
-
-[80] _Prim. Culture_, i. 412.
-
-[81] _Brinton_, p. 271.
-
-[82] _Iliad_, xxiii. 103 (trans. Lang and others).
-
-[83] Cf. Lecky's _History of Rationalism_, i. 340.
-
-[84] _Prim. Culture_, i. 411. See _Soul Shapes_ (Fisher Unwin, 1890).
-
-[85] "To the ear of the savage, animals certainly seem even to talk. This
-fact is universally evident, and ought to be fully realised."--Im Thurn's
-_Guiana_, p. 351.
-
-[86] _Dorman_, pp. 287, 288.
-
-[87] Grimm's _Teutonic Mythology_, p. 827.
-
-[88] Cox and Jones, _Popular Romances_, p. 139.
-
-[89] _Brinton_, p. 107.
-
-[90] Cf. _Ante_, pp. 110-114.
-
-[91] More correctly, "that engenders it."
-
-[92] _Hibbert Lectures_, 1884, pp. 39, 40.
-
-[93] The Society's advertisement is as follows:--
-
-"THOUGHT-TRANSFERENCE, APPARITIONS, etc.--The Society for Psychical
-Research will be grateful for any good evidence bearing on such phenomena
-as thought-reading, clairvoyance, presentiments, and dreams, noted at the
-time of occurrence and afterwards confirmed; unexplained disturbances in
-places supposed to be haunted; apparitions at the moment of death or
-otherwise; and of such other abnormal events as may seem to fall under
-somewhat the same categories. Communications to be addressed to E. Gurney,
-14 Dean's Yard, S.W.; or to F. W. H. Myers, Leckhampton House, Cambridge.
-Applications for information or for membership to be addressed to the
-Secretary, at the Society's Offices, 14 Dean's Yard, S.W."
-
-[94] Matthew Arnold, _Empedocles on Etna_.
-
-[95] _Hume_, p. 50.
-
-[96] Dr. Carpenter's _Mental Physiology_, p. 27.
-
-[97] St. Geo. Mivart's _Genesis of Species_, p. 325. In the second edition
-of this work Professor Mivart cites with satisfaction the authority of S.
-Thomas Aquinas and of Cardinal Newman on the matter!
-
-[98] For criticism of this pseudo-scientific theory see Professor
-Clifford's brilliant paper in _Lectures and Essays_, i. 228, ff.; and a
-review of "The Unseen Universe" by the present writer, _Fraser's Mag._,
-Jan. 1876.
-
-[99] The following Mohammadan recipe for summoning spirits is given in
-Klunzinger's _Upper Egypt_. "Fast seven days in a lonely place, and take
-incense with you, such as benzoin, aloeswood, mastic, and odoriferous wood
-from Soudan, and read the chapter 1001 times (from the Koran) in the seven
-days--a certain number of readings, namely, for every day one of the five
-daily prayers. That is the secret, and you will see indescribable wonders;
-drums will be beaten beside you, and flags hoisted over your head, and you
-will see spirits full of light and of beautiful and benign aspect."--(P.
-386).
-
-[100] In Roget's _Thesaurus_, sect. 511, a curious and instructive list of
-terms expressive of the different forms of divination is given.
-
-[101] Numb. xii. 6; 1 Sam. xxviii. 6, 15, etc.
-
-[102] Chap. xxxiv.
-
-[103] Cf. _Ency. Brit._, Art. "Dreams."
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber's Notes:
-
-Passages in italics are indicated by _italics_.
-
-The original text contains letters with diacritical marks that are not
-represented in this text version.
-
-The original text includes Greek characters that have been replaced with
-transliterations in this text version.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Myths and Dreams, by Edward Clodd
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MYTHS AND DREAMS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 43813-8.txt or 43813-8.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/4/3/8/1/43813/
-
-Produced by The Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive.)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
- www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
-contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
-Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/43813-8.zip b/43813-8.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 6ed2314..0000000
--- a/43813-8.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/43813-h.zip b/43813-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 53df6cf..0000000
--- a/43813-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/43813-h/43813-h.htm b/43813-h/43813-h.htm
index 02be0c9..3e101ed 100644
--- a/43813-h/43813-h.htm
+++ b/43813-h/43813-h.htm
@@ -3,7 +3,7 @@
<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
<head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
+ <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
<meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
<title>
Myths and Dreams, by Edward Clodd&mdash;A Project Gutenberg eBook
@@ -47,46 +47,7 @@
</style>
</head>
<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Myths and Dreams, by Edward Clodd
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Title: Myths and Dreams
-
-Author: Edward Clodd
-
-Release Date: September 26, 2013 [EBook #43813]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MYTHS AND DREAMS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by The Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive.)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-
+<div>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 43813 ***</div>
<p class="figcenter"><img src="images/cover.jpg" alt="" /></p>
@@ -7182,385 +7143,7 @@ terms expressive of the different forms of divination is given.</p>
<p><a name='f_103' id='f_103' href='#fna_103'>[103]</a> Cf. <i>Ency. Brit.</i>, Art. “Dreams.â€</p>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Myths and Dreams, by Edward Clodd
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MYTHS AND DREAMS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 43813-h.htm or 43813-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/4/3/8/1/43813/
-
-Produced by The Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive.)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
- www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
-contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
-Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-</pre>
-
+<div>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 43813 ***</div>
</body>
</html>
diff --git a/43813.txt b/43813.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 82cdf56..0000000
--- a/43813.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,7418 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Myths and Dreams, by Edward Clodd
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Title: Myths and Dreams
-
-Author: Edward Clodd
-
-Release Date: September 26, 2013 [EBook #43813]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ASCII
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MYTHS AND DREAMS ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by The Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive.)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-MYTHS AND DREAMS
-
-
-
-
- MYTHS AND DREAMS
-
-
- BY EDWARD CLODD
-
- AUTHOR OF
- 'THE CHILDHOOD OF THE WORLD,'
- 'THE STORY OF CREATION,' ETC.
-
-
- _SECOND EDITION, REVISED_
-
-
- London
- CHATTO & WINDUS, PICCADILLY
- 1891
-
-
-
-
-TO RICHARD A. PROCTOR, B.A.,
-
-AUTHOR OF 'THE SUN,' 'OTHER WORLDS,' ETC., EDITOR OF 'KNOWLEDGE.'
-
-MY DEAR PROCTOR--The best gifts of life are its friendships, and to you,
-with whom friendship has ripened into fellowship, and under whose
-editorial wing some of the chapters of this book had temporary shelter, I
-inscribe them in their enlarged and independent form.
-
- Yours sincerely,
- EDWARD CLODD.
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE.
-
-
-The object of this book is to present in compendious form the evidence
-which myths and dreams supply as to primitive man's interpretation of his
-own nature and of the external world, and more especially to indicate how
-such evidence carries within itself the history of the origin and growth
-of beliefs in the supernatural.
-
-The examples are selected chiefly from barbaric races, as furnishing the
-nearest correspondences to the working of the mind in what may be called
-its "eocene" stage, but examples are also cited from civilised races, as
-witnessing to that continuity of ideas which is obscured by familiarity or
-ignored by prejudice.
-
-Had more illustrations been drawn from sources alike prolific, the
-evidence would have been swollen to undue dimensions without increasing
-its significance; as it is, repetition has been found needful here and
-there, under the difficulty of entirely detaching the arguments advanced
-in the two parts of this work.
-
-Man's development, physical and psychical, has been fully treated by Mr.
-Herbert Spencer, Dr. Tylor, and other authorities, to whom students of the
-subject are permanent debtors, but that subject is so many-sided, so
-far-reaching, whether in retrospect or prospect, that its subdivision is
-of advantage so long as we do not permit our sense of inter-relation to be
-dulled thereby.
-
-My own line of argument will be found to run for the most part parallel
-with that of the above-named writers; there are divergences along the
-route, but we reach a common terminus.
-
-The footnotes indicate the principal works which have been consulted in
-preparing this book, but I desire to express my special thanks to Mr.
-Andrew Lang for his kindness in reading the proofs, and for suggestions
-which, in the main, I have been glad to adopt.
-
-E. C.
-
- ROSEMONT, TUFNELL PARK,
- LONDON, _March 1885_.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS.
-
-
- PART I.
-
- MYTH: ITS BIRTH AND GROWTH.
-
- SECTION PAGE
-
- I. ITS PRIMITIVE MEANING 3
-
- II. CONFUSION OF EARLY THOUGHT BETWEEN THE LIVING AND THE
- NOT LIVING 12
-
- III. PERSONIFICATION OF THE POWERS OF NATURE 19
- (_a._) The Sun and Moon 19
- (_b._) The Stars 29
- (_c._) The Earth and Sky 34
- (_d._) Storm and Lightning, etc. 41
- (_e._) Light and Darkness 48
- (_f._) The Devil 53
-
- IV. THE SOLAR THEORY OF MYTH 61
-
- V. BELIEF IN METAMORPHOSIS INTO ANIMALS 81
-
- VI. TOTEMISM: BELIEF IN DESCENT FROM ANIMAL OR PLANT 99
-
- VII. SURVIVAL OF MYTH IN HISTORY 114
-
- VIII. MYTH AMONG THE HEBREWS 131
-
- IX. CONCLUSION 137
-
-
- PART II.
-
- DREAMS: THEIR PLACE IN THE GROWTH OF BELIEFS IN THE SUPERNATURAL.
-
- SECTION PAGE
-
- I. DIFFERENCE BETWEEN SAVAGE AND CIVILISED MAN 143
-
- II. LIMITATIONS OF BARBARIC LANGUAGE 148
-
- III. BARBARIC CONFUSION BETWEEN NAMES AND THINGS 154
-
- IV. BARBARIC BELIEF IN VIRTUE IN INANIMATE THINGS 160
-
- V. BARBARIC BELIEF IN THE REALITY OF DREAMS 168
-
- VI. BARBARIC THEORY OF DISEASE 174
-
- VII. BARBARIC THEORY OF A SECOND SELF OR SOUL 182
-
- VIII. BARBARIC PHILOSOPHY IN "PUNCHKIN" AND ALLIED STORIES 188
-
- IX. BARBARIC AND CIVILISED NOTIONS OF THE SOUL'S NATURE 198
-
- X. BARBARIC BELIEF IN SOULS IN BRUTES AND PLANTS AND
- LIFELESS THINGS 207
-
- XI. BARBARIC AND CIVILISED NOTIONS ABOUT THE SOUL'S DWELLING
- PLACE 215
-
- XII. CONCLUSIONS FROM THE FOREGOING 222
-
- XIII. DREAMS AS OMENS AND MEDIA OF COMMUNICATION BETWEEN GODS
- AND MEN 236
-
- INDEX 245
-
-
-
-
-I.
-
-MYTH: ITS BIRTH AND GROWTH.
-
-
-"Unchecked by external truth, the mind of man has a fatal facility for
-ensnaring, entrapping, and entangling itself. But, happily, happily for
-the human race, some fragment of physical speculation has been built into
-every false system. Here is the weak point. Its inevitable destruction
-leaves a breach in the whole fabric, and through that breach the armies of
-truth march in."
-
-Sir H. S. MAINE.
-
-
-MYTH: ITS BIRTH AND GROWTH.
-
-
-Sec. I.
-
-ITS PRIMITIVE MEANING.
-
-It is barely thirty years ago since the world was startled by the
-publication of Buckle's _History of Civilisation_, with its theory that
-human actions are the effect of causes as fixed and regular as those which
-operate in the universe; climate, soil, food, and scenery being the chief
-conditions determining progress.
-
-That book was a _tour de force_, not a lasting contribution to the
-question of man's mental development. The publication of Darwin's
-epoch-making _Origin of Species_[1] showed wherein it fell short; how the
-importance of the above-named causes was exaggerated and the existence of
-equally potent causes overlooked. Buckle probably had not read Herbert
-Spencer's _Social Statics_, and he knew nothing of the profound revolution
-in silent preparation in the quiet of Darwin's home; otherwise, his book
-must have been rewritten. This would have averted the oblivion from which
-not even its charm of style can rescue it. Its brilliant but defective
-theories are obscured in the fuller light of that doctrine of descent with
-modifications by which we learn that external circumstances do not alone
-account for the widely divergent types of men, so that a superior race, in
-supplanting an inferior one, will change the face and destiny of a
-country, "making the solitary place to be glad, and the desert to rejoice
-and blossom as the rose." Darwin has given us the clue to those subtle and
-still obscure causes which bring about, stage by stage, the unseen
-adaptations to requirements varying a type and securing its survival, and
-which have resulted in the evolution of the manifold species of living
-things. The notion of a constant relation between man and his surroundings
-is therefore untenable.
-
-But incomplete as is Buckle's theory, and all-embracing as is Darwin's, so
-far as organic life is concerned, the larger issue is raised by both, and
-for most men whose judgment is worth anything it is settled. Either man is
-a part of nature or he is not. If he is not, there is an end of the
-matter, since the materials lie beyond human grasp, and cannot be examined
-and placed in order for comparative study. Let Christian, Brahman,
-Bushman, and South Sea Islander each hold fast his "form of sound words"
-about man's origin. One is as good as another where all are irrational and
-beyond proof. But if he is, then the inquiry concerning him may not stop
-at the anatomy of his body and the assignment of his place in the
-succession of life on the globe. His relation, materially, to the
-simplest, shapeless specks of living matter; structurally, to the highest
-and more complex organisms, is demonstrated; the natural history of him is
-clear. This, however, is physical, and for us the larger question is
-psychical. The theory of evolution must embrace the genesis and
-development of mind, and therefore of ideas, beliefs, and speculations
-about things seen and unseen.
-
-In the correction of our old definitions a wider meaning must be given to
-the word _myth_ than that commonly found in the dictionaries. Opening any
-of these at random we find myth explained as fable, as something
-designedly fictitious, whether for amusement only, or to point a moral.
-The larger meaning which it holds to-day includes much more than this--to
-wit, the whole area of intellectual products which lie beyond the historic
-horizon and overlap it, effacing on nearer view the lines of separation.
-For the myth, as fable only, has no place for the crude fancies and
-grotesque imaginings of barbarous races of the present day, and of races
-at low levels of culture in the remote past. And so long as it was looked
-upon as the vagrant of fancy, with no serious meaning at the heart of it,
-and as corresponding to no yearning of man after the truth of things,
-sober treatment of it was impossible. But now that myth, with its prolific
-offspring, legend and tradition, is seen to be a necessary travailing
-through which the mind of man passed in its slow progress towards
-certitude, the study and comparison of its manifold, yet, at the centre,
-allied forms, and of the conditions out of which they arose, takes rank
-among the serious inquiries of our time.
-
-Not that the inquiry is a new one. The limits of this book forbid detailed
-references to the successive stages of that inquiry--in other words, to
-the pre-Christian, patristic, and pseudo-scientific theories of myth which
-remained unchallenged, or varied only in non-essential features, till the
-rise of comparative mythology. But apology for such omission here is the
-less needful, since the list of ancient and modern vagaries would have the
-monotony of a catalogue. However unlike on the surface, they are
-fundamentally the same, being the products of non-critical ages, and one
-and all vitiated by assumptions concerning gods and men which are to us as
-"old wives' fables."
-
-In short, between these empirical theories and the scientific method of
-inquiry into the meaning of myth there can be no relation. Because, for
-the assigning of its due place in the order of man's mental and spiritual
-development to myth, there is needed that knowledge concerning his origin,
-concerning the conditions out of which he has emerged, and concerning the
-mythologies of lower races and their survival in unsuspected forms in the
-higher races, which was not only beyond reach, but also beyond conception,
-until this century.
-
-Except, therefore, as curiosities of literature, we may dismiss the
-Lempriere of our school-days, and with him "Causabon"-Bryant and his
-symbolism of the ark and traces of the Flood in everything. Their keys,
-Arkite and Ophite, fit no lock, and with them we must, in all respect be
-it added, dismiss Mr. Gladstone, with his visions of the Messiah in
-Apollo, and of the Logos in Athene.
-
-The main design of this book is to show that in what is for convenience
-called _myth_ lie the germs of philosophy, theology, and science, the
-beginnings of all knowledge that man has attained or ever will attain, and
-therefore that in myth we have his serious endeavour to interpret the
-meaning of his surroundings and of his own actions and feelings. In its
-unbroken sequence we have the explanation of his most cherished and now,
-for the most part, discredited beliefs, the persistence of which makes it
-essential and instructive not to deal with the primitive myth apart from
-its later and more complex phases. Myth was the product of man's emotion
-and imagination, acted upon by his surroundings, and it carries the traces
-of its origin in its more developed forms, as the ancestral history of the
-higher organisms is embodied in their embryos. Man wondered before he
-reasoned. Awe and fear are quick to express themselves in rudimentary
-worship; hence the myth was at the outset a theology, and the gradations
-from personifying to deifying are too faint to be traced. Thus blended,
-the one as inevitable outcome of the other, they cannot well be treated
-separately, as if the myth were earth-born and the theology heaven-sent.
-And to treat them as one is to invade no province of religion, which is
-quite other than speculation about gods. The awe and reverence which the
-fathomless mystery of the universe awakens, which steal within us unbidden
-as the morning light, and unbroken on the prism of analysis; the
-conviction, deepening as we peer, that there is a Power beyond humanity,
-and upon which humanity depends; the feeling that life is in harmony with
-the Divine order when it moves in disinterested service of our kind--these
-theology can neither create nor destroy, neither verify nor disprove. They
-can be bound within no formula that man or church has invented, but
-undefined
-
- "Are yet the fountain life of all our day,
- Are yet a master light of all our seeing."
-
-At what epoch in man's history we are to place the development of the
-myth-making faculty must remain undetermined. It is of course coincident
-with the dawn of thought. We cannot credit the nameless savage of the
-Ancient Stone Age with it. If he had brains and leisure enough to make
-guesses about things, he has left us no witness of the fact. His relics,
-and those of his successors to a period which is but as yesterday in the
-history of our kind, are material only; and not until we possess the
-symbols of his thought, whether in language or rude picture, do we get an
-inkling of the meaning which the universe had for him, in the details of
-his pitiless daily life, in the shapes and motions of surrounding
-objects, and in the majesty of the heavens above him. Even then the
-thought is more or less crystallised, and if we would watch it in the
-fluent form we must have a keen eye for the like process going on among
-savages yet untouched by the Time-spirit, although higher in the scale
-than the Papuans and hill tribes of the Vindhya. Although we cannot so far
-lull our faculty of thought as to realise the mental vacuity of the
-savage, we may, from survivals nowadays, lead up to reasonable guesses of
-savage ways of looking at things in bygone ages, and the more so when we
-can detect relics of these among the ignorant and superstitious of modern
-times.
-
-What meaning, then, had man's surroundings to him, when eye and ear could
-be diverted from prior claims of the body, and he could repose from
-watching for his prey, and from listening to the approach of wild beast or
-enemy? He had the advantage, from greater demand for their exercise, in
-keener senses of sight, hearing, smell, and touch, than we enjoy; nor did
-he fail to take in facts in plenty. But there was this vital defect and
-difference, that in his brains every fact was pigeon-holed, charged with
-its own narrow meaning only, as in small minds among ourselves we find
-place given to inane peddling details, and no advance made to general and
-wide conception of things. In sharpest contrast to the poet's utterance:
-
- "Nothing in this world is single,
- All things by a law divine
- In one another's being mingle,"
-
-every fact is unrelated to every other fact, and therefore interpreted
-wrongly.
-
-Man, in his first outlook upon nature, was altogether ignorant of the
-character of the forces by which he was environed; ignorant of that
-unvarying relation between effect and cause which it needed the experience
-of ages and the generalisations therefrom to apprehend, and to express as
-"laws of nature." He had not even the intellectual resource of later times
-in inventing miracle to explain where the necessary relation between
-events seemed broken or absent.
-
-His first attitude was that of wonder, mingled with fear--fear as
-instinctive as the dread of the brute for him. The sole measure of things
-was himself, consequently everything that moved or that had power of
-movement did so because it was alive. A personal life and will was
-attributed to sun, moon, clouds, river, waterfall, ocean, and tree, and
-the varying phenomena of the sky at dawn or noonday, at gray eve or
-black-clouded night, were the manifestation of the controlling life that
-dwelt in all. In a thousand different forms this conception was expressed.
-The thunder was the roar of a mighty beast; the lightning a serpent
-darting at its prey, an angry eye flashing, the storm demon's outshot
-forked tongue; the rainbow a thirsty monster; the waterspout a long-tailed
-dragon. This was not a pretty or powerful conceit, not imagery, but an
-explanation. The men who thus spoke of these phenomena meant precisely
-what they said. What does the savage know about heat, light, sound,
-electricity, and the other modes of motion through which the
-Proteus-force beyond our ken is manifest? How many persons who have
-enjoyed a "liberal" education can give correct answers, if asked off-hand,
-explaining how glaciers are born of the sunshine, and why two sounds,
-travelling in opposite directions at equal velocities, interfere and cause
-silence? The percentage of young men, hailing from schools of renown, who
-give the most ludicrous replies when asked the cause of day and night, and
-the distance of the earth from the sun, is by no means small.
-
-Whilst the primary causes determining the production of myths are uniform,
-the secondary causes, due in the main to different physical surroundings,
-vary, bringing about unlikeness in subject and detail. Nevertheless, in
-grouping the several classes of myths, those are obviously to be placed
-prominently which embrace explanations of the origin of things, from sun
-and star to man and insect, involving ideas about the powers to whom all
-things are attributed. But in this book no exhaustive treatment is
-possible, only some indication of the general lines along which the
-myth-making faculty has advanced, and for this purpose a few illustrations
-of barbaric mental confusion between the living and the not living are
-chosen at the outset. They will, moreover, prepare us for the large
-element of the irrational present in barbaric myth, and supply a key to
-the survival of this in the mythologies of civilised races.
-
-
-Sec. II.
-
-CONFUSION OF EARLY THOUGHT BETWEEN THE LIVING AND THE NOT LIVING.
-
-In selecting from the literature of savage mythology the material
-overburdens us by its richness. Much of it is old, and, like refuse-heaps
-in our mining districts once cast aside as rubbish but now made to yield
-products of value, has, after long neglect, been found to contain elements
-of worth, which patience and insight have extracted from its travellers'
-tales and quaint speculations. That for which it was most prized in the
-days of our fathers is now of small account; that within it which they
-passed by we secure as of lasting worth. Much of that literature is,
-however, new, for the impetus which has in our time been given to the
-rescue and preservation of archaic forms has reached this, and a host of
-accomplished collectors have secured rich specimens of relics which, in
-the lands of their discovery, have still the authority of the past,
-unimpaired by the critical exposure of the present.
-
-The subject itself is, moreover, so wide reaching, bringing the ancient
-and the modern into hitherto unsuspected relation, showing how in customs
-and beliefs, to us unmeaning and irrational, there lurk the degraded
-representations of old philosophies, and in what seems to us burlesque,
-the survivals of man's most serious thought.
-
-One feels this difficulty of choice and this temptation to digress in
-treating of the confusion inherent in the savage mind between things
-living and not living, arising from superficial analogies and its
-attribution of life and power to lifeless things. The North American
-Indians prefer a hook that has caught a big fish to the handful of hooks
-that have never been tried, and they never lay two nets together lest they
-should be jealous of each other. The Bushmen thought that the traveller
-Chapman's big waggon was the mother of his smaller ones; and the natives
-of Tahiti sowed in the ground some iron nails given them by Captain Cook,
-expecting to obtain young ones. When that ill-fated discoverer's ship was
-sighted by the New Zealanders they thought it was a whale with wings. The
-king of the Coussa Kaffirs having broken off a piece of the anchor of a
-stranded ship soon afterwards died, upon which all the Kaffirs made a
-point of saluting the anchor very respectfully whenever they went near it,
-regarding it as a vindictive being. But perhaps one of the most striking
-and amusing illustrations is that quoted by Sir John Lubbock from the
-_Smithsonian Reports_ concerning an Indian who had been sent by a
-missionary to a colleague with four loaves of bread, accompanied by a
-letter stating their number. The Indian ate some of the bread, and his
-theft was, of course, found out. He was sent on a second errand with a
-similar batch of bread and a letter, and repeated the theft, but took the
-precaution to hide the letter under a stone while he was eating the
-loaves, so that it might not see him! As the individual is a type of the
-race, so in the child's nature we find analogy of the mental attitude of
-the savage ready to hand. To the child everything is alive. With what
-timidity and wonder he first touches a watch, with its moving hands and
-clicking works; with what genuine anger he beats the door against which he
-has knocked his head, whips the rocking-horse that has thrown him, then
-kisses and strokes it the next moment in token of forgiveness and
-affection.
-
- "As children of weak age
- Lend life to the dumb stones
- Whereon to vent their rage,
- And bend their little fists, and rate
- the senseless ground."[2]
-
-Even among civilised adults, as Mr. Grote remarks, "the force of momentary
-passion will often suffice to supersede the acquired habit, and an
-intelligent man may be impelled in a moment of agonising pain to kick or
-beat the lifeless object from which he has suffered." The mental condition
-which causes the wild native of Brazil to bite the stone he stumbled over
-may, as Dr. Tylor has pointed out in his invaluable _Primitive Culture_,
-be traced along the course of history not merely in impulsive habit, but
-in formally enacted law. If among barbarous peoples we find, for example,
-the relatives of a man killed by a fall from a tree taking their revenge
-by cutting the tree down and scattering it in chips, we find a continuity
-of idea in the action of the court of justice held at the Prytaneum in
-Athens to try any inanimate object, such as an axe, or a piece of wood or
-stone, which has caused the death of any one without proved human agency,
-and which, if condemned, was cast in solemn form beyond the border. "The
-spirit of this remarkable procedure reappears in the old English law,
-repealed only in the present reign, whereby not only a beast that kills a
-man, but a cart-wheel that runs over him, or a tree that falls on him and
-kills him, is deodand or given to God, _i.e._ forfeited and sold for the
-poor." Among ancient legal proceedings at Laon we read of animals
-condemned to the gallows for the crime of murder, and of swarms of
-caterpillars which infected certain districts being admonished by the
-Courts of Troyes in 1516 to take themselves off within a given number of
-days, on pain of being declared accursed and excommunicated.[3]
-
-Barbaric confusion in the existence of transferable qualities in things,
-as when the New Zealander swallows his dead enemy's eye that he may see
-farther, or gives his child pebbles to make it stony and pitiless of
-heart; and as when the Abipone eats tiger's flesh to increase his courage,
-has its survival in the old wives' notion that the eye-bright flower,
-which resembles the eye, is good for diseases of that organ, in the
-mediaeval remedy for curing a sword wound by nursing the weapon that caused
-it, and in the old adage, "Take a hair of the dog that bit you." As
-illustrating this, Dr. Dennys[4] tells a story of a missionary in China
-whose big dog would now and again slightly bite children as he passed
-through the villages. In such a case the mother would run after him and
-beg for a hair from the dog's tail, which would be put to the part bitten,
-or when the missionary would say jocosely, "Oh! take a hair from the dog
-yourself," the woman would decline, and ask him to spit in her hand, which
-itself witnesses to the widespread belief in the mystical properties of
-saliva.[5] Among ourselves this survives, degraded enough, in the cabmen's
-and boatmen's habit of spitting on the fare paid them. _Treacle_ (Greek
-_theriake_, from _therion_, a name given to the viper) witnesses to the
-old-world superstition that viper's flesh is an antidote to the viper's
-bite. Philips, in his _World of Words_, defines treacle as a "physical
-compound made of vipers and other ingredients," and this medicament was a
-favourite against all poisons. The word then became applied to any
-confection or sweet syrup, and finally and solely to the syrup of
-molasses.
-
-The practice of burning or hanging in effigy, by which a crowd expresses
-its feelings towards an unpopular person, is a relic of the old belief in
-a real and sympathetic connection between a man and his image; a belief
-extant among the unlettered in by-places of civilised countries. When we
-hear of North American tribes making images of their foes, whose lives
-they expect to shorten by piercing those images with their arrows, we
-remember that these barbarous folk have their representatives among us in
-the Devonshire peasant, who hangs in his chimney a pig's heart stuck all
-over with thorn-prickles, so that the heart of his enemy may likewise be
-pierced. The custom among the Dyaks of Borneo of making a wax figure of
-the foe, so that his body may waste away as the wax is melted, will remind
-the admirers of Dante Rossetti how he finds in a kindred mediaeval
-superstition the subject of his poem "Sister Helen," while they who prefer
-the authority of sober prose may turn to that storehouse of the curious,
-Brand's _Popular Antiquities_. Brand quotes from King James, who, in his
-_Daemonology_, book ii. chap. 5, tells us that "the devil teacheth how to
-make pictures of wax or clay, that by roasting thereof the persons that
-they bear the name of may be continually melted or dried away by continual
-sickness;" and also cites Andrews, the author of a _Continuation of
-Henry's Great Britain_, who, speaking of the death of Ferdinand, Earl of
-Derby, by poison, in the reign of Elizabeth, says, "The credulity of the
-age attributed his death to witchcraft. The disease was odd, and operated
-as a perpetual emetic; and a waxen image, with hair like that of the
-unfortunate earl, found in his chamber, reduced every suspicion to
-certainty." A century and half before this the Duchess of Gloucester did
-penance for conspiring with certain necromancers against the life of Henry
-VI. by melting a waxen image of him, while, as hinging the centuries
-together, "only recently a _corp cre_, or clay image, stuck full of birds'
-claws, bones, pins, and similar objects, was found in one of the
-Inverness-shire rivers. It was a fetish which, as it dissolved away by the
-action of the stream, was supposed to involve the 'wearing away' of the
-person it was intended to represent."[6] The passage from practices born
-of such beliefs to the use of charms as protectives against the
-evil-disposed and those in league with the devil, and as cures for divers
-diseases, is obvious. Upon this it is not needful to dwell; the
-superstitious man is on the same plane as the savage, but, save in rare
-instances, without such excuse for remaining, as Bishop Hall puts it, with
-"old wives and starres as his counsellors, charms as his physicians, and a
-little hallowed wax as his antidote for all evils."
-
-But we have travelled in brief space a long way from our picture of man,
-weaving out of streams and breezes and the sunshine his crude philosophy
-of personal life and will controlling all, to the peasant of to-day, his
-intellectual lineal descendant, with his belief in signs and wonders, his
-forecast of fate and future by omens, by dreams, and by such pregnant
-occurrences as the spilling of salt, the howling of dogs, and changes of
-the moon; in short, by the great mass of superstitions which yet more or
-less influence the intelligent, terrorise the ignorant, and delight the
-student of human development.
-
-
-Sec. III.
-
-PERSONIFICATION OF THE POWERS OF NATURE.
-
-(_a._) _The Sun and Moon._
-
-A good deal hinges upon the evidences in savage myth-making of the
-personification of the powers of nature. Obviously, the richest and most
-suggestive material would be supplied by the striking phenomena of the
-heavens, chiefly in sunrise and sunset, in moon, star, star-group and
-meteor, cloud and storm, and, next in importance, by the strange and
-terrible among phenomena on earth, whether in the restless waters, the
-unquiet trees, the grotesquely-shaped rocks, and the fear inspired in man
-by creatures more powerful than himself. Through the whole range of the
-lower culture, sun, moon, and constellations are spoken of as living
-creatures, often as ancestors, heroes, and benefactors who have departed
-to the country above, to heaven, the _heaved_, up-lifted land. The Tongans
-of the South Pacific say that two ancestors quarrelled respecting the
-parentage of the first-born of the woman Papa, each claiming the child as
-his own. No King Solomon appears to have been concerned in the dispute,
-although at last the infant was cut in two. Vatea, the husband of Papa,
-took the upper part as his share, and forthwith squeezed it into a ball
-and tossed it into the heavens, where it became the sun. Tonga-iti
-sullenly allowed the lower half to remain a day or two on the ground,
-but, seeing the brightness of Vatea's half, he compressed his share into a
-ball and tossed it into the dark sky, during the absence of the sun in the
-nether world. Thus originated the moon, whose paleness is owing to the
-blood having all drained out of Tonga-iti's half as it lay upon the
-ground. Mr. Gill, from whose valuable collection of southern myth this is
-quoted, says that it seems to have its origin in the allegory of an
-alternating embrace of the fair Earth by Day and Night. But despite the
-explanations, more or less strained, which some schools of comparative
-mythologists find for every myth, the savage is not a conscious weaver of
-allegories, or an embryo Cabalist, and we shall find ourselves more in
-accord with the laws of his intellectual growth if, instead of delving for
-recondite and subtle meanings in his simple-sounding explanations of
-things, we take the meaning to be that which lies on the surface. More on
-this, however, anon. Among the Red races one tribe thought that sun, moon,
-and stars were men and women who went into the sea every night and swam
-out by the east. The Bushmen say that the sun was once a man who shed
-light from his body, but only for a short distance, until some children
-threw him into the sky while he slept, and thus he shines upon the wide
-earth. The Australians say that all was darkness around them till one of
-their many ancestors, who still shine from the stars, shedding good and
-evil, threw, in pity for them, an emu's egg into space, when it became the
-sun. Among the Manacicas of Brazil, the sun was their culture-hero,
-virgin-born, and their jugglers, who claimed power to fly through the air,
-said that his luminous figure, as that of a man, could be seen by them,
-although too dazzling for common mortals.
-
-The sun has been stayed in his course in other places than Gibeon,
-although by mechanical means of which Joshua appears to have been
-independent. Among the many exploits of Maui, abounding in Polynesian
-myth, are those of his capture of the sun. He had, like Prometheus,
-snatched fire from heaven for mortals, and his next task was to cure Ra,
-the sun-god, of his trick of setting before the day's work was done. So
-Maui plaited thick ropes of cocoa-nut fibre, and taking them to the
-opening through which Ra climbed up from the nether world, he laid a
-slip-noose for him, placing the other ropes at intervals along his path.
-Lying in wait as Ra neared, he pulled the first rope, but the noose only
-caught Ra's feet. Nor could Maui stop him until he reached the sixth rope,
-when he was caught round the neck and pulled so tightly by Maui that he
-had to come to terms, and agree to slacken his pace for the future. Maui,
-however, took the precaution to keep the ropes on him, and they may still
-be seen hanging from the sun at dawn and eve. In Tahitian myth Maui is a
-priest, who, in building a house which must be finished by daylight,
-seizes the sun by its rays and binds it to a tree till the house is built.
-In North American myth a boy had snared the sun, and there was no light on
-the earth. So the beasts held council who should undertake the perilous
-task of cutting the cord, when the dormouse, then the biggest among them,
-volunteered. And it succeeded, but so scorched was it by the heat that it
-was shrivelled to the smallest of creatures. Such a group of myths is not
-easy of explanation; but when we find the sun regarded as an ancestor, and
-as one bound, mill-horse like, to a certain course, the notion of his
-control and check would arise, and the sun-catchers take their place in
-tradition among those who have deserved well of their race. It is one
-among numberless aspects under which the doings of the sun and of other
-objects in nature are depicted as the doings of mortals, and the crude
-conceptions of the Ojibwas and the Samoans find their parallel in the
-mythologies of our Aryan ancestors. Only in the former we see the mighty
-one shorn of his dignity, with noose round his neck or chains on either
-side; whilst in the latter we see him as Herakles, with majesty
-unimpaired, carrying out the twelve tasks imposed by Eurystheus, and thus
-winning for himself a place among the immortals.
-
-The names given to the sun in mythology are as manifold as his aspects and
-influences, and as the moods of the untutored minds that endowed him with
-the complex and contrary qualities which make up the nature of man. _Him_,
-we say, not _it_, thus preserving in our common speech a relic not only of
-the universal personification of things, but of their division into sex.
-
-The origin of gender is most obscure, but its investment of both animate
-and inanimate things with sexual qualities shows it to be a product of
-the mythopoeic stage of man's progress, and demands some reference in
-these pages. The languages of savages are in a constant state of flux,
-even the most abiding terms, as numerals and personal pronouns, being
-replaced by others in a few years. And the changes undergone by civilised
-speech have so rubbed away and obscured its primitive forms that, look
-where he may, the poverty of the old materials embarrasses the inquirer.
-If the similar endings to such undoubtedly early words as father, mother,
-brother, sister, in our own and other related languages, notably Sanskrit,
-afford any clue, it goes rather to show that gender was a later feature
-than one might think. But there is no uniformity in the matter. It seems
-pretty clear that in the early forms of our Indo-European speech there
-were two genders only, masculine and feminine. The assignment of certain
-things conceived of as sexless to neither gender, _neutrius generis_, is
-of later origin. Some of the languages derived from Latin, and, to name
-one of a different family, the Hebrew, have no neuter gender, whilst
-others, as the ancient Turkish and Finnish, have no grammatical gender. In
-our own, under the organic changes incident to its absorption of Norman
-and other foreign elements, gender has practically disappeared (although
-ships and nations are still spoken of as feminine), the pronouns _he_,
-_she_, _it_, being its representatives. Such a gain is apparent when we
-take up the study of the ancestral Anglo-Saxon, with its masculine,
-feminine, and neuter nouns, or of our allied German with its perplexities
-of sex, as, _e.g._, its masculine spoon, its feminine fork, and its neuter
-knife. Turning for a moment to such slight aid as barbaric speech gives,
-we find in the languages of the hill tribes of South India a curious
-distinction made; rational beings, as gods and men, being grouped in a
-"high-caste or major gender," and living animals and lifeless things in a
-"casteless or minor gender." The languages of some North American and
-South African tribes make a distinction into animate and inanimate gender;
-but as non-living things, the sun, the thunder, the lightning, are
-regarded as persons, they are classed in the animate gender.
-
-Further research into the radicals of so relatively fixed a language as
-Chinese, and into more mobile languages related to it, may, perhaps,
-enlighten the present ignorance; but one thing is certain, that language
-was "once the scene of an immense personification," and has thereby added
-vitality to myth. Analogies and conceptions apparent to barbaric man, and
-in no way occurring to us, caused him to attribute sexual qualities not
-only to dead as to living things, but to their several parts, as well as,
-in the course of time, to intellectual and abstract terms. Speaking
-broadly, things in which were manifest size and qualities, as strength,
-independence, governing or controlling power, usually attaching to the
-male, were classed as masculine; whilst those in which the gentler and
-more subordinate features were apparent were classed as feminine. Of
-course marked exceptions to this will at once occur to us, as, _e.g._, in
-certain savage and civilised languages, where the sun is feminine and the
-moon is masculine, but in the main the division holds good. The big is
-male and the small is female. The Dyaks of Borneo call a heavy downpour of
-rain a _he_ rain; and, if so strength-imparting a thing as bread is to be
-classed as either masculine or feminine, we must agree with the negro who,
-in answer to his master's question, "Sambo, where's the bread?" replied,
-"De bread, massa? him lib in de pantry." The mediaeval Persians are said to
-have distinguished between male and female even in such things as food and
-cloth, air and water, and prescribed their proper use accordingly; while,
-as Dr. Tylor, from whom the above is quoted, adds, "even we, with our
-blunted mythologic sense, cannot give an individual name to a lifeless
-object, such as a boat or a weapon, without in the very act imagining for
-it something of a personal nature."
-
-But we must not stay longer in these attractive byways of philology,
-however warranted the digression may be, and must return to the
-many-titled sun.
-
-Whilst in the more elaborate mythologies of classic peoples we find him
-addressed in exalted terms which are still the metaphors of poetry, we are
-nearer the rough material out of which all myth is shaped when among races
-who speak of sun, moon, and stars as father, mother, and children, and who
-mean exactly what they say. We may find similar relationships in the solar
-and lunar deities of Egyptian and classic myth, but profound moral
-elements have entered into these and dissolved the material. We are face
-to face with the awful and abiding questions personified in Osiris and
-Isis, in Oedipus and Jocaste, where for us the sunlight pales and the
-storm clouds are dispersed before the dazzling mysteries of human life and
-destiny.
-
-No such matters confront us when in Indian myth we read that the moon is
-the sun's sister, an aged, pale-faced woman, who in kindness led to her
-brother two of the tribe who had sprung through a chasm in the sky to the
-pleasant moonlit land. Neither do they in Australian myth, which shows
-that the dwellers on Olympus had no monopoly of conjugal faithlessness.
-For in it Mityan, the moon, is a native cat, who fell in love with
-somebody else's wife, and has been driven to wander ever since. Among the
-Bushmen, the moon has incurred the sun's anger, and is hacked smaller and
-smaller by him, till, begging for mercy, a respite is given. But as soon
-as he grows larger the sun hacks him again. In Slavonic myth the sun
-cleaves him through for loving the morning star. The Indians of the far
-west say that, when the moon is full, evil spirits begin nibbling at it,
-and eat a portion every night till it is all gone; then a great spirit
-makes a new moon, and, weary with his toil, falls asleep, when the bad
-spirits renew their attack. Another not uncommon group of myths is that
-which speaks of sun and moon as borne across the heavens on the backs of
-ancestors, as in Greek myth Atlas supports the world, or as in ceaseless
-flight, dogged by some pursuer, moon-dog, or "sun-wolf," as parhelion is
-called in Swedish. The group of kindred myths to which eclipses gave rise,
-when the cloud-dragon or serpent tries to swallow sun or moon, and for a
-time succeeds, is too well known to need other than passing reference
-here.
-
-A widespread body of myth has its source in the patches on the moon's
-face. In the Samoan Islands these are said to be a woman, a child, and a
-mallet. A woman was once hammering out paper-cloth, and seeing the moon
-rise, looking like a great bread-fruit, she asked it to come down and let
-her child eat a piece of it. But the moon was very angry at the idea of
-being eaten, and gobbled up the woman, child, and mallet, and there they
-are to this day. The Selish Indians of North-Western America say that the
-little wolf was in love with the toad, and pursued her one moonlight
-night, till, as a last chance, she made a desperate spring on to the face
-of the moon, and there she is still. People in the East see the figure of
-a hare in the patches, and both in Buddhist Jatakas and Mongolian myth
-that animal is carried by the moon. In Greenland myth the moon was in love
-with his sister, and stole in the dark to caress her. She, wishing to find
-out who her lover was, blackened her hands so that the marks might be left
-on him, which accounts for the spots. The Khasias of the Himalaya say that
-the moon falls in love every month with his mother-in-law, who, like a
-well-conducted matron, throws ashes in his face. Grimm quotes a mediaeval
-myth that the moon is Mary Magdalene, and the spots her tears of
-repentance, whilst in Chaucer's _Testament of Cressida_ the moon is Lady
-Cynthia.--
-
- "On her brest a chorl paintid ful even,
- _Bering a bush of thornis on his bake_,
- Which for his _theft_ might clime no ner the heven."
-
-Comparing these with more familiar myths, we have our own man in the moon,
-who is said to be the culprit found by Moses gathering sticks on the
-Sabbath, although his place of banishment is a popular addition to the
-Scripture narrative. According to the German legend he was a scoffer who
-did the same heinous offence on a Sunday, and was given the alternative of
-being scorched in the sun or frozen in the moon. The Frisians say that he
-stole cabbages, the load of which he bears on his back. He does not appear
-as a member of the criminal classes in China, his function being that of
-celestial matchmaker, who ties together future couples with an invisible
-silken cord which breaks not during life. In Icelandic myth the two
-children familiar to us as Jack and Jill were kidnapped by the moon, and
-there they stand to this day with bucket on pole across their shoulders,
-falling away one after the other as the moon wanes,--a phase described in
-the couplet:--
-
- "Jack fell down and broke his crown,
- And Jill came tumbling after."
-
-Mr. Baring Gould, whose essay on this subject in his _Curious Myths of the
-Middle Ages_ gives a convenient summary of current legends, contends that
-Jack and Jill are the Hjuki and Bil of the _Edda_, and signify the waxing
-and waning of the moon, their bucket indicating the dependence of rainfall
-on her phases--a superstition extant among us yet.
-
-The group of customs observed amongst both barbaric and civilised peoples
-at the changes of the moon, customs which are meaningless except as relics
-of lunar worship, belong to the passage of mythology into religion, of
-personifying into deifying.
-
-(_b._) _The Stars._
-
-In the great body of nature-myth the stars are prominent members. In their
-multitude; their sublime repose in upper calms above the turmoil of the
-elements; their varying brilliancy, "one star differing from another star
-in glory"; their tremulous light; their scattered positions, which lend
-themselves to every vagary of the constellation-maker; their slow
-procession, varied only by sweeping comet and meteor, or falling showers
-of shooting stars; they lead the imagination into gentler ways than do the
-vaster bodies of the most ancient heavens. Nor, although we may compute
-their number, weigh their volume, in a few instances reckon their
-distance, and, capturing the light that has come beating through space for
-unnumbered years, make it reveal the secret of their structure, is the
-imagination less moved by the clear heavens at night, or the feeling of
-awe and reverence blunted before that "mighty sum of things for ever
-speaking."
-
-In barbaric myth the stars are spoken of as young suns, the children of
-the sun and moon, but more often as men who have lived on the earth,
-translated without seeing death. The single stars are individual chiefs or
-heroes; the constellations are groups of men or animals. To the natives of
-Australia the brilliant Jupiter is a chief among the others; and the stars
-in Orion's belt and scabbard are young men dancing a corroboree, the
-Pleiades being girls playing to them. The Kasirs of Bengal say that the
-stars are men who climbed to the top of a tree, and were left in the
-branches by the trunk being cut away. To the Eskimos the stars in Orion
-are seal-hunters who have missed their way home. And in German folk-lore
-they are spoken of as the mowers, because, as Grimm says, "they stand in a
-row like mowers in a meadow." In North American myth two of the bright
-stars are twins who have left a home where they were harshly treated, and
-leapt into the sky, whither their parents followed them and ceaselessly
-chase them. In Greek myth the faintest star of the seven Pleiades is
-Merope, whose light was dimmed because she alone among her sisters married
-a mortal. The New Zealanders say that those stars are seven chiefs who
-fell in battle, and of whom only one eye of each is now visible. In Norse
-myth Odin having slain a giant, plucks out his eyes and flings them up to
-the sky, where they become two stars. In German star-lore the small star
-just above the middle one in the shaft of Charles's Wain, is a waggoner
-who, having given our Saviour a lift, was offered the kingdom of heaven
-for his reward, but who said he would sooner be driving from east to west
-to all eternity, and whose desire was granted--a curious contrast to the
-wandering Jew, cursed to move unresting over the earth until the day of
-judgment, because he refused to let Jesus, weary with the weight of the
-cross, rest for a moment on his doorstep. The Housatonic Indians say that
-the stars in Charles's Wain are men hunting a bear, and that the chase
-lasts from spring to autumn, when the bear is wounded and its dripping
-blood turns the leaves of the trees red. With this may be cited the myth
-that the red clouds at morn and eve are the blood of the slain in battle.
-In the Northern Lights the Greenlanders see the spirits of the departed
-dancing, the brighter the flashes of the Aurora the greater the merriment,
-whilst the Dacotas say of the meteors that they are spirits flying through
-the air.
-
-Of the Milky Way--so called because Here, indignant at the bantling
-Herakles being put to her breast, spilt her milk along the sky (the solar
-mythologers say that the "red cow of evening passes during the night
-across the sky scattering her milk")--the Ottawas say that it was caused
-by a turtle swimming along the bottom of the sky and stirring up the mud.
-According to the Patagonians it is the track along which the departed
-tribesmen hunt ostriches, the clouds being their feathers; in African myth
-it is some wood-ashes long ago thrown up into the sky by a girl, that her
-people might be able to see their way home at night; in Eastern myth it
-is chaff dropped by a thief in his hurried flight.
-
-The idea of a land beyond the sky--be it the happy hunting-ground of the
-Indian, or the Paradise of Islam, or the new Jerusalem of the
-Apocalypse--would not fail to arise, and in both the Milky Way and the
-Rainbow barbaric fancy sees the ladders and bridges whereby the departed
-pass from earth to heaven. So we find in the lower and higher culture
-alike the beautiful conceptions of the _chemin des ames_, the Red man's
-road of the dead to their home in the sun; the ancient Roman path of, or
-to, the gods; the road of the birds, in both Lithuanian and Finnish myth,
-because the winged spirits flit thither to the free and happy land. In
-prosaic contrast to all this, it is curious to find among ourselves the
-Milky Way described as Watling Street! That famous road, which ran from
-Richborough through Canterbury and London to Chester, now gives its name
-to a narrow bustling street of Manchester warehousemen in the City. But
-who the Waetlingas were--whether giants, gods, or men--and why their name
-was transferred from Britain to the sky, we do not know,[7] although the
-fact is plainly enough set down in old writers, foremost among whom is
-Chaucer. In his _House of Fame_[8] he says:--
-
- "Lo, there, quod he, cast up thine eye,
- se yondir, to, the galaxie,
- the whiche men clepe the Milky Way,
- for it is white, and some parfay
- ycallin it han Watlingestrete."
-
-To the savage the rainbow is a living monster, a serpent seeking whom it
-may devour, coming to earth to slake its unquenchable thirst, and preying
-on the unwary. But in more poetic myth, its mighty many-coloured arch
-touching, as it seems to do, the earth itself, is a road to glory. In the
-_Edda_ it is the three-coloured bridge Bifroest, "the quivering track" over
-which the gods walk, and of which the red is fire, so that the
-Frost-giants may not cross it. In Persian myth it is Chinvad, the "bridge
-of the gatherer," flung across the gloomy depths between this world and
-the home of the blessed; in Islam it is El-Sirat, the bridge thin as a
-hair and sharp as a scimitar, stretching from this world to the next;
-among the Greeks it was Iris, the messenger from Zeus to men, charged with
-tidings of war and tempest; to the Finns it was the bow of Tiernes, the
-god of thunder; whilst to the Jew it was the messenger of grace from the
-Eternal, who did set "his bow in the clouds" as the promise that never
-again should the world be destroyed by flood. Such belief in the heavens
-as the field of activities profoundly affecting the fortunes of mankind,
-and in the stars as influencing their destinies, has been persistent in
-the human mind. The delusions of the astrologer are embalmed in language,
-as when, forgetful of a belief shared not only by sober theologians, but
-by Tycho Brahe and Kepler, we speak of "disaster," and of our friends as
-"jovial," "saturnine," or "mercurial." But the illusions of the savage or
-semi-civilised abide as an animating part of many a faith, undisturbed by
-a science which has swept the skies and found no angels there, and whose
-keen analysis separates for ever the ancient belief in a connection
-between the planets and man's fate. For convenience' sake, we retain on
-our celestial maps and globes the men and monsters pictured by barbaric
-fancy in the star-positions and clusters, noting these as interesting
-examples of survival. Yet we are the willing dupes of illusions nebulous
-as these, and, charm he never so wisely, the Time-spirit fails to
-disenchant us.
-
-(_c._) _The Earth and Sky._
-
-If the sun and moon are the parents of the stars, the heavens and the
-earth are the parents of all living things. Of this widely-found myth, one
-of the most striking specimens occurs among the Maoris. From Rangi, the
-heaven, and Papa, the earth, sprang all living things; but earth and sky
-clave together, and darkness rested on them and their children, who
-debated whether they should rend them asunder or slay them. Then
-Tane-mahuta, father of forests, reasoned that it was better to rend them,
-so that the heaven might become a stranger, and the earth remain as their
-nursing-mother. One after another they strove to do this, but in vain,
-until Tane-mahuta, with giant strength and strain, pressed down the earth
-and thrust upward the heaven. But one of his brothers, father of wind and
-storm, who had not agreed to this parting of his parents, followed Rangi
-into the sky, and thence sent forth his progeny, "the mighty winds, the
-fierce squalls, the clouds dense and dark, wildly drifting, wildly
-hunting," himself rushing on his foe, snapping the huge trees that barred
-his path, and strewing their trunks and branches on the ground, while the
-sea was lashed into high-crested waves, and all the creatures therein
-affrighted. The fish darted hither and thither, but the reptiles fled into
-the forests, causing quarrel between Tangaroa, the ocean-god, and
-Tane-mahuta for giving them shelter. So the brothers fought, the ocean-god
-wrecking the canoes and sweeping houses and trees beneath the waters, and
-had not Papa hidden the gods of the tilled food and the wild within her
-bosom, they would have perished. Wars of revenge followed quickly one upon
-the other; the storm-god's anger was not soon appeased; so that the
-devastation of the earth was well-nigh complete. But, at last, light arose
-and quiet ensued, and the dry land appeared. Rangi and Papa, parted for
-ever, quarrelled no more, but helped the one the other, and "man stood
-erect and unbroken on his mother Earth."
-
-The myth of Cronus will at once occur to the reader. Heaven (Uranus) and
-Earth (Gaea) were husband and wife, and their many children all hated
-their father for concealing them between the hollows of their mother's
-breasts, so that they were shut out from light. Gaea sided with them and
-provided Cronus, the youngest, with an iron sickle wherewith he unmanned
-Uranus and separated him from Gaea. Cronus married his sister Rhea, and,
-at the advice of his parents, swallowed his children one by one as they
-were born, lest they grew up and usurped his place among the Immortals.
-But when Zeus was born, and Cronus asked for the child, Rhea deceived him
-by giving him a stone wrapped in swaddling bands. When Zeus grew up he
-gave his father an emetic, whereupon the children were all disgorged, and
-with them the stone, which became a sacred object at Delphi. There is no
-such being as Cronus in Sanskrit, but what may be called the Vedic variant
-of the myth is that in which Dyaus (Heaven) and Prithivi (Earth), were
-once joined and subsequently separated.
-
-In China we find a legend of "a person called Puangku, who is said to have
-separated the heaven and the earth, they formerly being pressed down close
-together," and, as one might expect, such a transparent nature-myth of the
-rending asunder of the world and sky is widespread.
-
-The solar mythologists were perplexed at its presence among the refined
-and cultured Greeks. "How can we imagine that a few generations before the
-time of Solon the highest notions of the Godhead among the Greeks were
-adequately expressed by the story of Uranus maimed by Cronus, of Cronus
-eating his own children, swallowing a stone, and vomiting out alive his
-own progeny. Among the lowest tribes of Africa and America we hardly find
-anything more hideous and revolting." So the moral character of the Greeks
-and the exclusive comparative method of Professor Max Mueller and his
-adherents were vindicated by the discovery that as Cronus means time, the
-apparently repulsive myth simply means that time swallows up the days
-which spring from it; "and," remarks Sir G. W. Cox in his _Manual of
-Mythology_, "the old phrase meant simply this and nothing more, although
-before the people came to Greece they had forgotten its meaning."[9]
-Cronus is a more than usually troublesome _crux_ to the etymologists.
-
-Here, as elsewhere, "the letter killeth, but the spirit giveth life;" and
-we may turn to the fundamental idea resident in the myth. The savage, in
-the presence of recurring light and darkness, of the clouds lifting and
-dispersing before the sunrise, has his legend of a time when this was not
-so, but when heaven and earth were closed-in one upon the other till some
-hero thrust them apart. And, to his rude intelligence, the conception of
-night as a devouring monster, might easily "start the notion of other
-swallowing and disgorging beings." In brief, to quote Mr. Andrew Lang,
-"just as the New Zealander had conceived of heaven and earth as at one
-time united, to the prejudice of their children, so the ancestors of the
-Greeks had believed in an ancient union of heaven and earth. Both by
-Greeks and Maoris, heaven and earth were thought of as living persons,
-with human parts and passions. Their union was prejudicial to their
-children, and so the children violently separated their parents."[10]
-
-The beliefs of the ancient Finns, as described in the _Kalevala_, in the
-world as a divided egg, of which the white is the ocean, the yolk the sun,
-the arched shell the sky, and the darker portions the clouds; and of the
-Polynesians that the universe is the hollow of a vast cocoa-nut shell, at
-the tapering bottom of which is the root of all things, are to us so
-grotesque that it is not easy to regard them as explanations seriously
-invented by the human mind. Yet these, together with the notions of the
-two halves of the shell of Brahma's egg, and of the two calabashes which
-form the heaven and the earth in African myth, find their correspondences
-in the widespread conception of the over-arching firmament as a hard and
-solid thing,[11] with holes (or windows[12]) to let the rain through, with
-gates through which angels descend,[13] or through which prophets peer
-into celestial mysteries;[14] a firmament outside which other people live,
-as instanced by the Polynesian term for strangers, "papalangi," or
-"heaven-bursters." In Esthonian myth Ilmarine hammers steel into a vault
-which he strained like a tent over the earth, nailing thereon the silver
-stars and moon, and suspending the sun from the roof of the tent with
-machinery to lift it up and let it down. The like achievement is recorded
-of Ilmarinen in the _Kalevala_, the cosmogony of which corresponds to that
-of the Esthonian _Kalevipoeeg_.
-
-These are the less refined forms of myths which have held their ground
-from pre-scientific times till now, and the rude analogies of which are
-justified by the appearances of things as presented by the senses. Man's
-intellectual history is the history of his escape from the illusions of
-the senses, it is the slow and often tardily accepted discovery that
-nature is quite other than that which it seems to be. And this variance
-between appearances and realities remained hidden until the intellect
-challenged the report about phenomena which the sense-perceptions brought.
-For in the ages when feeling was dominant, and the judgment scarce
-awakened, the simple explanations in venerable legends sung by bard or
-told by aged crone--legends to which age had given sanctity which finally
-placed them among the world's sacred literatures--were received without
-doubt or question. But, as belief in causality spread, men were not
-content to rest in the naive explanations of an uncritical age. What man
-had guessed about nature gave place to what nature had to say about
-herself, and with the classifying of experience science had its birth.
-
-Meanwhile, until this quite recent stage in man's progress was reached,
-the senses told their blundering tale of an earth flat and fixed, with
-sun, moon, and stars as its ministering servants, while gods or beasts
-upbore it, and mighty pillars supported the massive firmament In Hindu
-myth the tortoise which upholds the earth rests upon an elephant, whose
-legs _reach all the way down_! In Bogota the culture-god Bochica punishes
-a lesser and offending deity by compelling him to sustain the part of
-Atlas, and it is in shifting his burden from shoulder to shoulder that
-earthquakes are caused. The natives of Celebes say that these are due to
-the world-supporting Hog as he rubs himself against a tree; the
-Thascaltecs that they occur when the deities who hold up the world relieve
-one another; the Japanese think that they are caused by huge dragons
-wriggling underground, an idea probably confirmed by the discovery of
-monster fossil bones. In Algonquin myth the mighty man Earthquake "can
-pass along under the ground, and make all things shake and tremble by his
-power."
-
-As the myths about earth-bearers prevail in the regions of earthquakes, so
-do those about subterranean beings in the neighbourhood of volcanoes. The
-superstitions which mountainous countries especially foster are
-intensified when the mountains themselves cast forth their awful and
-devastating progeny, "red ruin" and the other children born of them. Man
-in his dread, "caring in no wise for the external world, except as it
-influenced his own destiny; honouring the lightning because it could
-strike him, the sea because it could drown him,"[15] could do naught else
-than people them with maleficent beings, and conceive of their
-sulphur-exhaling mouths as the jaws of a bottomless pit.
-
-(_d._) _Storm and Lightning, etc._
-
-If in freeing ourselves from the tyranny of the "solar" theory we shackled
-ourselves with some other, we should certainly prefer that which is known
-as the "meteorological," and which, in the person of Kuhn and other
-supporters, finds a more rational and persistent source of myth in
-phenomena which are fitful and startling, such as hurricane and tempest,
-earthquake and volcanic outburst. Sunrises and sunsets happen with a
-regularity which failed to excite any strong emotion or stimulate
-curiosity, and the remotest ancestor of the primitive Aryan soon shook off
-the habit--if, indeed, he ever acquired it--of going to bed in fear and
-trembling lest the sun should not come back again. Nature, in her softer
-aspects and her gracious bounties, in the spring-time with its promise,
-the summer with its glory, the autumn with its gifts, has moved the heart
-of man to song and festival and procession; as, by contrast, the frosts
-that nipped the early buds and the fierce heat that withered the
-approaching harvest gave occasion for plaintive ditty and sombre ceremony.
-It is in the fierce play and passionate outbursts of the elements, in the
-storm, the lightning, and the thunder, that the feelings are aroused and
-that the terror-stricken fancy sees the strife of wrathful deities, or
-depicts their dire work amongst men. Hence, all the world over, the
-storm-god and the wind-god have played a mighty part.
-
-To the savage, the wind, blowing as it listeth, its whence and whither
-unknown, itself invisible, yet the sweep and force of its power manifest
-and felt, must have ranked amongst the most striking phenomena. And, as
-will be seen hereafter, the correspondences between wind and breath, and
-the connection between breath and life, added their quota of mystery in
-man's effort to account for the impalpable element. Of this
-personification of the elements the following Ojibway folk-tale, cited by
-Dorman, gives poetic illustration:--"There were spirits from all parts of
-the country. Some came with crashing steps and roaring voice, who directed
-the whirlwinds which were in the habit of raging about the neighbouring
-country. Then glided in gently a sweet little spirit, which blew the
-summer gale. Then came in the old sand-spirit, who blew the sand-squalls
-in the sand-buttes toward the west. He was a great speech-maker, and shook
-the lodge with his deep-throated voice, as he addressed the spirits of the
-cataracts and waterfalls, and those of the islands who wore beautiful
-green blankets."
-
-In the legends of the Quiches, the mysterious creative power is Hurakan
-(whence _hurricane_), among the Choctaws the original word for Deity is
-Hushtoli, the storm-wind, and in Peru to kiss the air was the commonest
-and simplest sign of adoration of the collective divinities. The
-Guayacuans of South America, when a storm arose and there was much thunder
-or wind, all went out in troops, as it were to battle, shaking their clubs
-in the air, shooting flights of arrows in that direction whence the storm
-came.[16]
-
-The Araucanians thought that gales and thunderstorms were the battles
-fought between the spirits of the dead and their foes.
-
-Turning to the literatures of higher races, we find in the prose _Edda_,
-when Gangler asks whence comes the wind, that Ha answers him: "Thou must
-know that at the northernmost point in the heavens sits a giant,
-
- "In the guise of an eagle;
- And the winds, it is said,
- Rush down on the earth
- From his outspreading pinions."
-
-In Finnish myth the north wind Pulmri, father of the frost, is sometimes
-imaged as an eagle.
-
-"The Indians believe in a great bird called by them _Wochowsen_ or
-_Wuchowsen_, meaning Wind-Blow or the Wind-Blower, who lives far to the
-north, and sits upon a great rock at the end of the sky. And it is because
-whenever he moves his wings the wind blows they of old times called him
-that." And in another Algonquin myth: "Ga-oh is the Spirit of the Winds.
-He moves the winds, but he is chained to a rock. The winds trouble him,
-and he tries very hard to get free. When he struggles the winds are
-forced away from him, and they blow upon the earth. Sometimes he suffers
-terrible pain, and then his struggles are violent. This makes the winds
-wild, and they do damage on the earth. Then he feels better and goes to
-sleep, and the winds become quiet also."[17]
-
-In the _Veda_ the Maruts or Storm-gods, to whom many of the hymns are
-addressed, "make the rocks to tremble and tear asunder the kings of the
-forest," like Hermes in his violence and like Boreas in his rage. Whether
-or no they become in Scandinavian legend the grim and fearful Ogres
-swiftly sailing in their cloud-ships, we may see in them the "crushers"
-and "grinders,"[18] as their name imports, the types of northern deities
-like Odin, long degraded into the Wild Huntsman and his phantom crew,
-whose uncouth yells the peasant hears in the midnight air.[19] Among the
-Aztecs Cuculkan, the bird-serpent, was a personification of the wind,
-especially of the east wind, as bringer of the rain. It was at one of his
-shrines, to which pilgrimages were made from great distances, that the
-Spaniards first saw to their surprise a cross surmounting the temple of
-this god of the wind, whence arose a legend that the Apostle Thomas had
-evangelised America. But, in fact, the pagan cross of Central America and
-Mexico was the symbol of the four cardinal points.
-
-In his valuable book on the _Myths of the Red Race_ Dr. Brinton has
-brought together a mass of evidence in support of a theory that the
-sanctity in which the number four is held by the American races is due to
-the adoration of the cardinal points, which are identified with the four
-winds, who in hero-myths are the four ancestors of the human race. The
-illustrations with which the argument is supported are numerous and
-valuable, but the argument itself is made to rest too strongly on an
-assumed primitive symbolism, whereas it suffices to show how the early
-notion of the flat world, as also square, would lead to the myth of the
-four winds blowing from the four corners, a myth often illustrated in
-ancient maps with an angel at each corner from whose mouth the wind
-issues. The official title of the Incas was "Lord of the four quarters of
-the earth," and the number appears in all sorts of combinations, but the
-theory may be pushed to extremes in compelling every fact to square with
-it.[20] As the illustrations given above show, we are some steps nearer to
-the primitive myth when we find the wind conceived of as a mighty bird,
-which indeed is in both old and new world mythology a common symbol of
-thunder and lightning also. On this matter Dr. Brinton's remarks bear
-quoting.
-
- Like the wind the bird sweeps through the aerial spaces, sings in the
- forests, and rustles on its course; like the cloud it floats in
- mid-air, and casts its shadow on the earth; like the lightning it
- darts from heaven to earth to strike its unsuspecting prey. These
- tropes were truths to savage nations, and led on by that law of
- language which forced them to conceive everything as animate or
- inanimate, itself the product of a deeper law of thought which urges
- us to ascribe life to whatever has motion, they found no animal so
- appropriate for their purpose here as the bird. Therefore the
- Algonquins say that birds always make the winds, that they create the
- waterspouts, and that the clouds are the spreading and agitation of
- their wings; the Navajos that at each cardinal point stands a white
- swan, who is the spirit of the blasts; so also the Dakotas frequently
- explain the thunder as the sound of the cloud-bird flapping his wings;
- the lightning as the fire that flashes from his tracks, like the
- sparks which the buffalo scatters when he scours over a stony plain.
-
-Estimates differ much as to the size of the Thunder-Bird. In one tradition
-an Indian found its nest, and secured a feather which was above two
-hundred feet long, while in another tradition the bird is said to be no
-bigger than one's little finger. But among the Western Indians he is an
-immense eagle. "When this aerial monster flaps his wings loud peals of
-thunder roll over the prairie; when he winks his eye it lightens; when he
-wags his tail the waters of the lake which he carries on his back overflow
-and produce rain." Mixcoatl, the Mexican Cloud-Serpent, as well as Jove,
-carries his bundle of arrows or thunderbolts, which in the hand of Thor
-are represented by his mighty club or hammer. The old and universal belief
-that stones were hurled by the Thunder-God is not so far-fetched as we, in
-our pride of science, might think, for the flints which are mistaken for
-thunderbolts, and which become objects of adoration as well as charms,
-produce a flash when struck by the lightning. In the lightning flash man
-would see the descent of fire from heaven for his needs. That he should
-regard it, like water, as a living creature, with power to hurt or help
-him, is in keeping with attribution of life to all that moved. Its
-apparent connection with the great source of heat would foster the feeling
-which expressed itself in fire-worship, with its curious survivals to
-modern times. No element was more calculated to excite awe in its seeming
-unrelation to the objects which produced it. Once secured, to guard it
-from extinction or theft was a serious duty, and everything from which it
-issued, trees as its hiding-place, since it came from the wood when
-rubbed, stones also, since sparks shot from them when struck, were held
-sacred. In the manifold myths about its origin one feature is common, that
-its seed was stolen, the chief agents (probably as the messengers between
-earth and sky) being birds, or men assuming the form of birds. The Sioux
-Indians say that their first ancestor procured his fire from the sparks
-which a panther struck from the rocks as he bounded up a hill. But of
-examples from the lower culture, forerunners of the Zeus-defying
-Prometheus, Mr. Gill's _Myths of the South Pacific_ supplies one which may
-be taken as a sample of the rest. Maui, a famous South Sea hero, finding
-some cooked food in a basket brought by Buataranga from the nether world,
-and relishing it more than raw food, determines to steal the fire, and
-flying to the Buataranga's realm frightens the fire-god by threats and
-blows into revealing the secret. Then wresting the fire-sticks from him he
-sets the under-world in flames, and returns with his prize to the
-upper-world; thenceforth "all the dwellers there used fire-sticks, and
-enjoyed the luxuries of light and of cooked food."
-
-(_e._) _Light and Darkness._
-
-As in the conflict raging in the sky during gale or tempest, when the
-light and the darkness alternately prevail, the barbaric mind sees war
-waged between the heroes of the spirit-land who have carried their
-unsettled blood feuds thither, so in many myths the lightning is no
-comrade of the thunder, but its foe, the battle of bird with serpent. The
-resemblance of the lightning flash to the sharp, sudden, zigzag movements
-of the serpent, a creature so mysterious to barbaric man in its unlikeness
-to the beasts of the field, accounts for a myth the influence of which as
-a terrorising agent on human conduct is in course of rapid decay. Its
-importance in the history of belief in the supernatural is too
-far-reaching to be passed over, and in tracing its course it is necessary
-to show its connection with the group of storm-myths and sun-myths of the
-Aryan race in the battles between Indra and Vritra, Ormuzd and Ahriman,
-Thor and Midgard, Hercules and Cacus, Apollo and Python, and St. George
-and the Dragon.
-
-All the Aryan nations have among their legends, often exalted into epic
-themes, the story of a battle between a hero and a monster. In each case
-the hero conquers, and releases treasures, or in some way renders succour
-to man, through his victory. In Hindu myth this battle is fought between
-Indra and Vritra.
-
-Indra, one of the Vedic gods, comes, according to Professor Max Mueller,
-from the same root as the Sanskrit _indu_, drop, sap, but the etymology is
-doubtful. What is not doubtful is that he is the god of the bright sky,
-and although, like the other gods invoked in the hymns of the _Rig-Veda_,
-a departmental or tribal deity, he is a sort of _primus inter pares_, of
-whose many titles, Vritrahan or "Vritra-slayer" is the pre-eminent one.
-The benefits showered by him upon mortals caused the attribution of moral
-qualities to him, and he was adored as "lord of the virtues," while the
-juice of the sacred soma plant was offered in his honour, for which reason
-he is also called Somapa or "soma-drinker." It is his struggle with Vritra
-which is a constant theme of the Vedic hymns, the burden of which remind
-us of the praises offered in the Psalms to Yahweh as a man of war, as
-mighty in battle. "The gods do not reach thee, nor men, thou overcomest
-all creatures in strength.... Thou thunderer, hast shattered with thy bolt
-the broad and massive cloud into fragments, and has sent down the waters
-that were confined in it to flow at will; verily thou alone possessest all
-power." The primitive physical meaning of the myth is clear. Indra is the
-sun-god, armed with spears and arrows, for such did the solar rays
-sometimes appear to barbaric fancy. The rain-clouds are imprisoned in
-dungeons or caverns by Vritra, the "enveloper," the thief, serpent, wolf,
-wild boar, as he is severally styled in the _Rig-Veda_. Indra attacks him,
-hurls his darts at him, they pierce the cloud-caverns, the waters are
-released, and drop upon the earth as rain.
-
-This explanation, which has many parallels in savage myth, is
-self-consistent as fitting into crude philosophy of personal life and
-volition in sun and cloud, and is fraught with deep truth of meaning in
-regions like the Punjaub, where drought brought famine in its train.
-
-The Aryans were a pastoral people, their wealth being in flocks and
-herds.[21] The cow yielded milk for the household; her dung fertilised the
-soil; her young multiplied the wealth of the family at an ever-increasing
-rate, and she naturally became the symbol of fruitfulness and prosperity,
-ultimately an object of veneration; while, for the functions which the
-bull performed, he was the type of strength. The Aryan's enemy was he who
-stole or injured the cattle; the Aryan's friend was he who saved them from
-the robber's clutch.
-
-Intellectually, the Aryan tribes were, speaking broadly, in the mythopoeic
-stage, and the personification of phenomena was rife among them. Their
-barbaric fancy, as kindred myths all the world over testify, would find
-ample play in the fleeting and varied scenery of the cloud-flecked
-heavens, suggestive, as this would be, of bodies celestial and bodies
-terrestrial. To these children of the plain the heavens were a vast, wide
-expanse, over which roamed supra-mundane beasts, the two most prominent
-figures in their mythical zoology being the cow and the bull. The sun,
-giver of blessed light, was the bull of majesty and strength; the white
-clouds were cows, from whose swelling udders dropped the milk of
-heaven--the blessed rain. But there were dark clouds also, clouds of night
-and clouds of storm, and within these lurked the monster-robber; into them
-he lured the herds, and withheld both light and rain from the children of
-men. To the sun-god, therefore, who smote the thief-dragon, Vritra, with
-his shaft, and set free the imprisoned cows, went up the shout of praise,
-the song of gratitude. This myth survives in many legends of the Aryan
-race, and their family likeness is unmistakable. In its Latin guise it
-appears as Hercules[22] and Cacus, although the preciseness of detail
-narrated by Virgil, Livy, and other writers, has given it quasi-historical
-rank. Hercules, after his victory over Geryon, stops to rest by the Tiber,
-and while he is sleeping the three-headed monster, Cacus, steals some of
-his cattle, dragging them by their tails into his cavern in Mons
-Avertinus. Their bellowing awakens Hercules, who attacks the cavern, from
-the mouth of which Cacus vomits flames, and roars as in thunder. But the
-hero slays him and frees the cattle, a victory which the earlier Romans
-celebrated with solemn rites at the Ara Maxima. In Greek myth the most
-familiar examples are the struggles between the sun-god, Apollo, and the
-storm-dragon, Python, and the deliverance of the Princess Andromeda by
-Perseus from the sea-monster sent by Poseidon to ravage the land. In the
-northern group we have the battle of Siegfried with the Niflungs, or
-Niblungs, and of Sigurd with the dragon Fafnir, who guards golden
-treasures; while, in the _Edda_, Thor goes fishing with the giant Hymir,
-and catches the demon Loki, whose foul brood are Hell, the wolf Fenri, and
-the Earth-girdling Serpent. Amongst ourselves, Beowulf, hero of the poem
-of that name, attacks the dragon or fire-drake Grendel, who, with his
-troll-mother, haunts a gloomy marsh-land. Thence he stole forth at night
-to seize sleeping champions, taking them to his dwelling-place to devour
-them, and this in such numbers that scarce a man was left. One pale night,
-Beowulf awaited the coming of the monster, and, gripping him tightly,
-snapped his limbs asunder, so that he died.
-
-These brief illustrations would hardly be complete without some reference
-to our national saint. Opinions differ as to his merits, Gibbon
-stigmatising him as a fraudulent army contractor,[23] while the researches
-of M. Ganneau seek to establish his relation to the Egyptian Horus and
-Typhon. Be this as it may, the stirring old legend tells how George of
-Cappadocia delivered the city of Silene from a dragon dwelling in a lake
-hard by. Nothing that the people could give him satisfied his insatiate
-maw, and in their despair they cast lots who among their dearest ones
-should be flung to the dread beast. The lot fell to the king's daughter,
-and she went unflinchingly, like Jephthah's daughter, to her fate. But on
-the road the hero learns her sad errand, and bidding her fear not, he,
-making sign of the cross, brandishes his lance, attacks and transfixes the
-dragon, and leading him into Silene, beheads him in sight of all the
-people, who, with their king, are baptized to the glory of Him who made
-St. George the victor.[24]
-
-(_f._) _The Devil._
-
-While, however, the myth of Indra and Vritra has in its western variants
-remained for the most part a battle between heroes and dragons, the moral
-element rarely obscuring the physical features, it gave rise among the
-Iranians or ancient Persians to a definite theology, the strange fortunes
-of which have, as remarked above, profoundly affected Christendom.
-
-Although in the Vedic hymns the features of the primitive nature-myth
-reappear again and again, Indra himself boasting, "I slew Vritra, O
-Maruts, with might, having grown strong with my own vigour; I who hold the
-thunderbolt in my arms, I have made these all-brilliant waters to flow
-freely for man," we find an approach in them to some conception of that
-spiritual conflict of which the physical conflict was so complete a
-symbol. Indra as victor, is an object of adoration and invested with
-purity and goodness; Vritra, as the enemy of men, is an object of dread,
-and invested with malice and evil.
-
-But while in the Zend-Avesta, the Scriptures of the old Iranian religion,
-the struggle between Thraetaona and the three-headed serpent Azhi-Dahaka
-(in which names are recognisable the Traitana and Ahi of the _Veda_ and
-the Feridun and Zohak of Persian epic) is narrated, the moral idea is
-dominant throughout. The theme is not the attack of the sun-god to recover
-stolen milch cows from the dragon's cave, but the battle between Ormuzd,
-the Spirit of Light, and Ahriman, the Spirit of Darkness. The one seeks to
-mar the earth which the other has made. Into the fair paradise,
-Airayana-Vaejo, "a delightful spot," as the Avesta calls it, "with good
-waters and trees," and into other smiling lands which Ormuzd has blessed,
-Ahriman sends "a mighty serpent ... strong, deadly frost ... buzzing
-insects, and poisonous plants ... toil and poverty," and, worse than all,
-"the curse of unbelief."[25] Between these two spiritual powers and their
-armies of good and bad angels the battle rages for supremacy in the
-universe, for possession of the citadel of Mansoul.
-
-Early in the history of the Asiatic Aryan tribes there had arisen a
-quarrel between the Brahmanic and Iranian divisions. The latter had
-become a quiet-loving, agricultural people, while the former remained
-marauding nomads, attacking and harassing their neighbours. In their
-plundering inroads they invoked the aid of spells and sacrifices, offering
-the sacred soma-juice to their gods, and nerving themselves for the fray
-by deep draughts of the intoxicating stuff. Not only they, but their gods
-as well, thereby became objects of hatred to the peaceful Iranians, who
-foreswore all worship of freebooter's deities, and transformed these
-_devas_ of the old religion into demons. That religion, as common to the
-Indo-European race, was polytheistic, a worship of deities each ruling
-over some department of nature, but a worship exalting now one, now
-another god, be it Indra, or Varuna, or Agni, according to the indications
-of the deity's supremacy, or according to the mood of the worshipper. As
-remarked by Jacob Grimm, "the idea of the devil is foreign to all
-primitive religions," obviously because in all primitive thought evil and
-good are alike regarded as the work of deities. In the Old Testament,
-Yahweh is spoken of as the author of both;[26] the angels, whether charged
-with weal or woe, are his messengers. In the _Iliad_ Zeus dispenses
-both:--
-
- "Two urns by Jove's high throne have ever stood,
- The source of evil one, the other good;
- From thence the cup of mortal man he fills,
- Blessings to these, to those distribute ills,
- To most, he mingles both,"[27]
-
-and 'tis a far cry from this to the loftier conception of Euripides: "If
-the gods do evil, then are they no gods." So there was a monotheistic--or,
-as Professor Max Mueller terms it, a henotheistic--element in the Vedic
-religion which in the Iranian religion, and this mainly through the
-teaching of the great thinker and reformer Zarathushtra (Zoroaster), was
-largely diffused. In his endeavour to solve the old problem of reconciling
-sin and misery with omnipotent goodness, he supposes "two primeval
-causes," one of which produced the "reality," or good mind; the other the
-"non-reality," or evil mind. Behind these was developed belief in a
-philosophical abstraction, "uncreate time," of which each was the product;
-but such doctrines were too subtle for the popular grasp, and, wrapped in
-the old mythological garb, they appeared in concrete form as dualism.
-Vritra survived in Ahriman, who, like him, is represented as a serpent;
-and in Ormuzd we have the phonetic descendant of Ahura-mazda.
-
-Now, it was with this dualism, this transformed survival of the sun and
-cloud myth, that the Jews came into association during their memorable
-exile in Babylon. Prior to that time their theology, as hinted above, had
-no devil in it. But in that belief in spirits which they held in common
-with all semi-civilised races, as a heritage from barbarous ancestors,
-there were the elements out of which such a personality might be readily
-evolved. Their _satan_, or "accuser," as that word means, is no prince of
-the demons, like the Beelzebul of later times; no dragon or old serpent,
-as of the Apocalypse, defying Omnipotence and deceiving the whole world;
-but a kind of detective who, by direction of Yahweh, has his eye on
-suspects, and who is sent to test their fidelity. In all his missions he
-acts as the intelligent and loyal servant of Yahweh. But although
-therefore not regarded as bad himself, the character and functions with
-which he was credited made easy the transition from such theories about
-him to theories of him as inherently evil, as the enemy of goodness, and,
-therefore, of God. He who, like Vritra, was an object of dread, came to be
-regarded as the incarnation of evil, the author and abettor of things
-harmful to man. Persian dualism gave concrete form to this conception, and
-from the time of the Exile we find Satan as the Jewish Ahriman, the
-antagonist of God. Not he alone, for "the angels that kept not their first
-estate" were the ministers of his evil designs, creatures so numerous that
-every one has 10,000 at his right hand and 1000 at his left hand, and
-because they rule chiefly at night no man should greet another lest he
-salute a demon. They haunt lonely spots, often assume the shape of beasts,
-and it is their presence in the bodies of men and women which is the cause
-of madness and other diseases.[28]
-
-From the period when the Apocryphal books, especially those having traces
-of Persian influence, were written,[29] this doctrine of an arch-fiend
-with his army of demons received increasing impetus. It passed on without
-check into the Christian religion, and wherever this spread the heathen
-gods, like the _devas_ of Brahmanism among the Iranians, were degraded
-into demons, and swelled the vast crowd of evil spirits let loose to
-torment and ruin mankind.
-
-This doctrine of demonology, it should be remembered, was but the
-elaborated form of ancestral belief in spirits referred to above. In the
-Christian system it was associated with that belief in magic which has its
-roots in fetishism, and from the two arose belief in witchcraft. The
-universal belief in demons in early and mediaeval times supplied an easy
-explanation of disasters and diseases; the sorcerers and charm-workers,
-the wizards and enchanters, had passed into the service of the devil. For
-power to work their spite and malevolence they had bartered their souls to
-him, and sealed the bargain with their blood. It was enough for the
-ignorant and frightened sufferers to accuse some poor, misshapen,
-squinting old woman of casting on them the evil eye, or of appearing in
-the form of a cat, to secure her trial by torture and her condemnation to
-an unpitied death. The spread of popular terror led to the issue of Papal
-bulls and to the passing of statutes in England and in other countries
-against witchcraft, and it was not until late in the eighteenth century
-that the laws against that imaginary crime were repealed.
-
-There is no sadder chapter in the annals of this tearful world than this
-ghastly story of witch-finding and witch-burning. Sprenger computes that
-during the Christian epoch no less than _nine millions_ of persons, mostly
-women of the poorer classes, were burned; victims of the survival into
-relatively civilised times of an illusion which had its source in
-primitive thought. It was an illusion which had the authority of Scripture
-on its side;[30] the Church had no hesitation concerning it; such men as
-Luther, Sir Thomas Browne, and Wesley never doubted it; the evidence of
-the bewitched was supported by honest witnesses; and judges disposed to
-mercy and humanity had no qualms in passing the dread sentence of the law
-on the condemned.[31]
-
-And although it exists not to-day, save in by-places where gross darkness
-lurks, it was not destroyed by argument, by disproof, by direct assault,
-but only through the quiet growth and diffusion of the scientific spirit,
-before which it has dispersed. It could not live in an atmosphere thus
-purified, an atmosphere charged with belief in unchanging causation and in
-a definite order unbroken by caprice or fitfulness, whether in the sweep
-of a planet or the pulsations of a human heart.
-
-Of course the antecedents of the arch-fiend himself could not fail to be
-the subject of curious inquiry in the time when his existence was no
-matter of doubt. The old theologians scraped together enough material
-about him from the sacred books of the Jews and Christians to construct an
-elaborate biography of him; but in this they would seem to have explained
-too much in certain directions and not enough in others, thus provoking a
-reaction which ultimately discredited their painful research. Their
-genealogy of him was carried farther back than they intended or desired,
-for the popular notions credited him with both a mother and grandmother.
-Their theory of his fall from heaven gave rise to the droll conception of
-his lameness and to the legends of which the "devil on two sticks" is a
-type. Their infusion of foreign element into his nature aided his
-pictorial presentment in motley form and garb, as seen in the old
-miracle-plays. To Vedic descriptions of Vritra's darkness may perchance be
-traced his murkiness and blackness; to Greek satyr and German
-forest-sprite his goat-like body, his horns, his cloven hoofs, his tail;
-to Thor his red beard; to dwarfs and goblins his red cloak and nodding
-plume; to theories of transformation of men and spirits into animals his
-manifold metamorphoses, as black cat, wolf, hellhound, and the like.
-
-But his description was his doom; it was by a natural sequence that the
-legends of mediaeval times present him, not, with the Scotch theologians,
-as a scholar and a swindler, disguising himself as a parson, but as
-gullible and stupid, as over-reaching himself and as befooled by mortals.
-And, like the Trolls of Scandinavian folk-lore who burst at sunrise, it
-needed only the full light thrown upon his origin and development by the
-researches of comparative mythologists to dissipate this creation of man's
-fears and fancies into the vaporous atmosphere where he had his birth.
-
-
-Sec. IV.
-
-THE SOLAR THEORY OF MYTH.
-
-The cogency of the evidence concerning the development of belief in Satan
-out of light-and-darkness myths is generally admitted, but it is of a kind
-that must not be pushed too far. For the phases of Nature are manifold;
-manifold also is the life of man; and we must not lend a too willing ear
-to theories which refer the crude explanations of an unscientific age,
-when the whole universe is Wonderland, to one source. _Cave hominem unius
-libri_, says the adage, and we may apply it, not only to the man of one
-book, but also to the man of one idea, in whom the sense of proportion is
-lacking, and who sees only that for which he looks. Here such caution is
-introduced as needful of exercise against the comparative mythologists
-who, not content with showing--as abundant evidence warrants--that myth
-has its germs in the investment of the powers of nature with personal life
-and consciousness, contend that the great epics of our own and kindred
-races are, from their broadest features to minutest detail, but
-nature-myths obscured and transformed.
-
-Certain scholars, notably Professor Max Mueller, Sir G. W. Cox, and
-Professor de Gubernatis, as interpreters of the myths of the Indo-European
-peoples, and Dr. Goldziher, as an interpreter of Hebrew myth and cognate
-forms, maintain that the names given in the mythopoeic age to the sun, the
-moon, and the changing scenery of the heaven as the fleeting forms and
-myriad shades passed over its face, lost their original signification
-wholly or partially, and came to be regarded as the names of veritable
-deities and men, whose actions and adventures are the disguised
-descriptions of the sweep of the thunder-charged clouds and of the victory
-of the hero-god over their light-engulfing forces. But it is better to
-state the theory in the words of its exponents, and for that purpose a
-couple of extracts from Sir George Cox's _Mythology of the Aryan Nations_
-will suffice.
-
- In the spontaneous utterances of thoughts awakened by outward
- phenomena, we have the source of myths which must be regarded as
- _primary_. But it is obvious that such myths would be produced only so
- long as the words employed were used in their original meaning. If
- once the meaning of the word were either in part or wholly forgotten,
- the creation of a new personality under this name would become
- inevitable, and the change would be rendered both more certain and
- more rapid by the very wealth of words which were lavished on the
- sights and objects which most impressed their imagination. A thousand
- phrases would be used to describe the action of a beneficent or
- consuming sun, of the gentle or awful night, of the playful or furious
- wind; and every word or phrase become the germ of a new story as soon
- as the mind lost its hold on the original force of the name. Thus, in
- the polyonymy (by which term Sir George Cox means the giving of
- several names to one object), which was the result of the earliest
- form of human thought, we have the germ of the great epics of later
- times, and of the countless legends which make up the rich stores of
- mythical tradition ... and the legends so framed constitute the class
- of _secondary_ myths (p. 42).
-
- Henceforth the words which had denoted the sun and moon would denote
- not merely living things but living persons.... Every word would
- become an attribute, and all ideas, once grouped round a single
- object, would branch off into distinct personifications. The sun had
- been the lord of light, the driver of the chariot of the day; he had
- toiled and laboured for the sons of men, and sunk down to rest, after
- a hard battle, in the evening. But now the lord of light would be
- Phoibos Apollon, while Helios would remain enthroned in his fiery
- chariot, and his toils and labours and death-struggles would be
- transferred to Herakles. The violet clouds which greet his rising and
- his setting would now be represented by herds of cows which feed in
- earthly pastures. There would be other expressions which would still
- remain as floating phrases, not attached to any definite deities.
- These would gradually be converted into incidents in the life of
- heroes, and be woven at length into systematic variations. Finally,
- these gods and heroes, and the incidents of their mythical career,
- would receive each "a local habitation and a name." These would remain
- as genuine history when the origin and meaning of the words had been
- either wholly or in part forgotten (p. 51).
-
-Such is the "solar myth" theory. "We can hardly," as Mr. Matthew Arnold
-says, "now look up at the sun without having the sensations of a moth,"
-and if occasion has not been given to the adversary to blaspheme, he has
-been supplied with ample material for banter and ridicule. Some of the
-happiest illustrations of this are made by Mr. Foster in his amusing and
-really informing essay on "Nature Myths in Nursery Rhymes," reprinted in
-_Leisure Readings_,[32] an essay which it seems the immaculate critics
-took _au serieux_! With a little exercise of one's invention, given also
-ability to parody, it will be found that many noted events, as well as the
-lives of the chief actors in them, yield results comforting to the solar
-mythologists. Not only the _Volsungs_ and the _Iliad_, but the story of
-the Crusades and of the conquest of Mexico; not only Arthur and Baldr, but
-Caesar and Bonaparte, may be readily resolved, as Professor Tyndall says we
-all shall be, "like streaks of morning cloud, into the infinite azure of
-the past." Dupuis, in his researches into the connection between astronomy
-and mythology, had suggested that Jesus was the sun, and the twelve
-apostles the zodiacal signs; and Goldziher, analysing the records of a
-remote period, maintains the same concerning Jacob and his twelve sons. M.
-Senart has satisfied himself that Gotama, the Buddha, is a sun-myth.
-Archbishop Whately, to confound the sceptics, ingeniously disproved the
-existence of Bonaparte; and a French ecclesiastic has, by witty
-etymological analogies, shown that Napoleon is cognate with Apollo, the
-sun, and his mother Letitia identical with Leto, the mother of Apollo;
-that his _personnel_ of twelve marshals were the signs of the zodiac; that
-his retreat from Moscow was a fiery setting, and that his emergence from
-Elba, to rule for twelve months, and then be banished to St. Helena, is
-the sun rising out of the eastern waters to set in the western ocean after
-twelve hours' reign in the sky. But upon this solar theory let us cite
-what Dr. Tylor, whose soberness of judgment renders him a valuable guide
-along the zigzag path of human progress, says: "The close and deep
-analogies between the life of nature and the life of man have been for
-ages dwelt upon by poets and philosophers, who, in simile or in argument,
-have told of light and darkness, of calm and tempest, of birth, growth,
-change, decay, dissolution, renewal. But no one-sided interpretation can
-be permitted to absorb into a single theory such endless many-sided
-correspondences as these. Rash inferences which, on the strength of mere
-resemblance, derive episodes of myth from episodes of nature, must be
-regarded with utter mistrust, for the student who has no more stringent
-criterion than this for his myths of sun and sky and dawn, will find them
-wherever it pleases him to seek them."
-
-The investigations of comparative mythologists, more particularly in this
-country and Germany, have thrown such valuable light on the history of
-ideas, that it will be instructive to learn what excited the inquiry. The
-researches of Niebuhr and his school into the credibility of early history
-made manifest that the only authority on which the chroniclers relied was
-tradition. To them--children of an uncritical age--that tradition was
-venerable with the lapse of time, and binding as a revelation from the
-gods. To us the charm and interest of it lie in detecting within it the
-ancient deposit of a mythopoeic period, and in deciphering from it what
-manner of men they must have been among whom such explanation of the
-beginnings had credence. And in such an inquiry nothing can be "common or
-unclean," nothing too trivial or puerile for analysis; for where the most
-grotesque and impossible are found, there we are nearer to the conditions
-of which we would know more.
-
-The serious endeavour to get at the fact underlying the fabulous was
-extended to the great body of mythology which had not been incorporated
-into history, and the interpretations of which satisfied only those who
-suggested them. As hinted already, the Greeks had sought out the meaning
-of their myths, with here and there a glimpse of the truth gained; but
-this was confined to the philosophers and poets. Euhemeros degraded them
-into dull chronicle, making Herakles a thief who carried off a crop of
-oranges; Jove a king crushing rebellion; Atlas an astronomer; Python a
-freebooter; AEolus a weather-wise seaman, and so on. Plutarch tried to
-"restore" them, but only defaced them, and after centuries of neglect they
-were discovered by Lord Bacon to be allegories with a moral. Then Banier
-and Lempriere emptied out of them what little life Euhemeros had left, and
-the believers in Hebrew as the original speech of mankind saw in them the
-fragments of a universal primitive revelation! Even Professor Max Mueller
-is so upset by the many loathsome and revolting stories in a mythology
-current in the land of Lykurgos and Solon, such as the marriage of his
-mother Jocasta by Oedipus, and the swallowing of his own children by
-Cronus, that he inquires (as if he half believed it possible) whether
-there was not "a period of temporary insanity through which the human mind
-had to pass," and a degradation from lovely metaphor to coarse fact which
-only a "disease of language," or the confusion arising from the forgotten
-meanings of words, explains. There is no need, however, for assumptions of
-this or of any other kind. This is best shown by a summary of facts which
-led, more or less directly, to the formulation of the solar theory.
-
-Some fifty years ago a good many idle speculations, products of a reverent
-and uncurbed fancy concerning Hebrew as the primitive speech of mankind,
-were laid to rest when the sober guess of Schlegel as to the connection of
-the leading languages of Europe and those of India and Persia, was
-converted into certainty by Bopp, Jacob Grimm, Schleicher, and later
-scholars.
-
-By the application of the comparative method to philology, _i.e._ the
-interpretation of any set of facts by comparison with corresponding facts,
-due allowance being made for differences which Grimm's law (see _infra_)
-explains, the relation of Greek, Latin, Slavonic, Teutonic, and Keltic to
-one another and to Indian and Persian, and their consequent descent from a
-common parent language, was proved. To this group the term Aryan (from a
-Sanskrit word cognate with the root _ar_, our English word _ear_, to
-plough), is given, a term which ancient records show was applied by the
-Asiatic Aryans to themselves as the lords of the soil, the dominant race.
-The names Indo-Germanic, and, more appropriately as roughly defining the
-peoples included thereunder, Indo-European, have been suggested in its
-stead, but Aryan, as the more convenient term, has come into general use.
-
-The survival of grammatical forms common to the Aryan ancestors, and the
-likeness between words necessary for daily use, evidenced to one parent
-primitive speech, and, passing from words to the ideas and things which
-they connoted, philologists were able to infer what manner of men these
-Aryans were, and under what conditions they dwelt. In the enthusiasm
-excited by so brilliant a discovery the soberest scholars were apt to
-over-colour their accurately-outlined picture of old Aryan life; to read
-modern meanings into the ancient words. But, making good allowance for
-this, the sketch which was presented in Max Mueller's famous paper on
-_Comparative Mythology_[33] remains a credit to scholarship in its vivid
-generalisations from immaterial data.
-
-Professor Max Mueller, in agreement with Pictet and others, placed the
-original settlement of the Aryans as probably in the region between the
-Hindu Kush Mountains and the Caspian Sea. But the opinion of later
-scholars of cooler judgment leans to Europe rather than to Asia as the
-primitive home of the Aryan tribes. The scanty hints which survive point
-to a larger acquaintance with European flora and fauna than with Asiatic;
-to a southward course, whilst silent about westward migration; the
-movement of races inclines from less genial to more genial zones; the
-traditions of certain branches, as the Greeks, tell of them as
-autochthones, or born on the soil where they are found; and the judgment
-of experts is decisive as to the greater nearness of the European
-languages to the original speech as contrasted with Sanskrit and Iranian.
-These are the principal reasons adduced in support of the theory of a
-European origin. Benfey places the old Aryan home in the neighbourhood of
-the Black Sea, Schrader and Geiger in Middle Germany, Karl Penka in
-Scandinavia. But in speculating on the exact habitation of congeries of
-tribes requiring vast tracts of country for support, no rigid boundaries
-can be fixed, and there is room for the play of both theories, the more so
-as theories they must remain.[34]
-
-At the back of this unsettled question lies the interesting subject of the
-civilisation of pre-Aryan races on the European-Asiatic Continent. In the
-Newer Stone Age this continent was inhabited by races of short stature,
-with long and narrow skulls, and probably dark complexions, races whom the
-Aryans, a tall, round-skulled, fair-complexioned race, conquered, and with
-whom they so largely intermingled that the varieties of fair and dark
-people in Europe at this day, speaking an Aryan language, are past finding
-out. Indeed, there are probably no unmixed races throughout Europe and
-Asia; the conquering race imposed its language on the conquered, and thus
-is explained the community of speech without community of race which must
-be recognised in the composite European peoples.
-
-With this qualification the kinship of the Aryan-language-speaking peoples
-is demonstrated, and the like kind of evidence by which this is proved has
-been applied to establish the identity of their mythologies, legends, and
-folk-tales. The meaning of the proper names of these once determined, the
-key to the meaning of the myth or tale was clear; because, it is
-contended, the names contain the germs or oldest surviving part. This is
-to make the last first; but the result, as already shown in the Aryan
-light-and-darkness myths, has been to bring out a few striking
-correspondences in Greek and Vedic names, although by no means so intimate
-and frequent as the solar mythologists assume. The uniform behaviour of
-the untutored mind before like phenomena to which barbaric myth witnesses
-prepares us for general correspondences, but not in such details as we
-find in the Aryan group. On what theory these, notably in the case of the
-folk-tales, are to be accounted for, it is not easy to say, for the mode
-of their diffusion from India to Iceland is obscure. But the fact abides
-that nursery stories told in Norway and Tyrol, in Scotland and the Deccan,
-are identical. After allowing for local colouring and for changes incident
-to the lapse of time, they are the variants of stories presumably related
-in the Aryan fatherland at a period historically remote, and, moreover,
-are told in words which are phonetically akin. Their resemblances in
-minor incident and detail are not easily explained by theories of
-borrowing, for apparently no trace of intercourse between the Asiatic
-Aryans and the Aryans of extreme Western Europe occurs until after the
-domiciling of the stories where we find them. Nor did they with such close
-resemblances as appear between the German Faithful John and the Hindu Rama
-and Luxman; between our own Cinderella, the German Aschenpuettel and the
-Hindu Sodewa Bai, spring native from their respective soils.[35] And there
-is just that unlikeness in certain details which might be expected from
-the different positions and products of the several Aryan lands. They
-explain, for example, the absence from Scandinavian folk-tale of creatures
-like the elephant, the giant, ape, and turtle, which figure in the
-Brahmanic.
-
-When we turn to the great Aryan epics, the _Iliad_ and the _Odyssey_; the
-_Volsungs_; the _Nibelungs_; _King Arthur and his Round Table_; the
-_Ramayana_ and the _Maha Bharata_; the _Shah Nameh_, and so forth, we find
-similarities of incident and episode which point to a common derivation
-from old Aryan myth. That common synonyms occur in cognate languages is to
-be expected, but so far as the names and the characteristics of the heroes
-and heroines are concerned, the phonetic identity is proven in a far less
-number of cases than the solar mythologists, working on their too
-exclusive method, argue. The key which for them unlocks the meaning of
-every Aryan myth is Sanskrit. In tracing the history of the Indo-European
-family of speech, it served as the starting-point, because it has more
-than any other member preserved the roots and suffixes, if not in their
-oldest, still in their most accessible form. And in tracing the course of
-Indo-European mythology, it is in the Vedic texts, chiefly the most
-ancient, the _Rig-Veda_, that we find the materials for comparative study,
-since in these venerable hymns of a Bible older than our own are preserved
-the earliest recorded forms of that mythology. That is to say, we have not
-in any European branch of Aryan speech any documentary relic of the age of
-the _Rig-Veda_, otherwise we might find ourselves in possession of more
-ancient relics of that speech. So that although the value of Sanskrit as
-the guide without which knowledge of the Aryan mother-tongue would have
-remained vague, indeed have been beyond reach, cannot be over-estimated,
-we must not accept as of universal worth what is local and special in
-it.[36]
-
-The phonetic kinship and actual identity which comparative philologists
-have sought to establish between the proper names of gods and heroes of
-the Greek and Vedic mythologies (for the inquiry has been chiefly
-restricted to these two), is based on the collection of rules by which we
-can at once tell what sounds in one language correspond to those of its
-kindred tongues, called, after its discoverer, "Grimm's Law." This law
-gave the quietus to theories of common origin and variation of words based
-on specious resemblances (theories satirised by Dean Swift in his
-derivation of _ostler_ from _oatstealer_), and introduced a scientific
-method into etymological study.
-
-The varying pronunciation of certain words among the Aryan-speaking
-peoples which were common to them was discovered by Grimm to be constant;
-for example, a Greek _th_ answers to an English _d_, and, _vice versa_, a
-German _s_ or _z_ to an English _t_, and so forth, so that by comparing
-these altered forms the common form from which they spring is reached.
-
-At what fluent period in the history of the Aryan languages these changes
-of one sound into another were induced is unknown, nor are their precise
-causes easy of ascertainment, being referable to physical influences,
-climatal and local, which in the course of time brought about changes in
-the organs of speech, such, for example, as make our _th_ so difficult of
-pronunciation to a German, in whose language _d_ takes its place, as
-_drei_ for _three_, _durstig_ for _thirsty_, _dein_ for _thine_, etc. We
-may note tendencies to variation in children of the same household, their
-prattle often affording striking illustration of Grimm's law, and it is
-easy to see that among semi-civilised and isolated tribes, where no check
-upon the variations is imposed, they would tend to become fixed and give
-rise to new dialects.
-
-Tracing the operation of that law in the changes in proper names in Greek
-and Vedic mythology, their correlation is proved in a few important
-instances. The Greek _Zeus_, the Latin _Deus_ (whence French _Dieu_ and
-our _deity_, and also _deuce_), the Lithuanian _Diewas_, and the Sanskrit
-_Dyaus_ all come from an old Aryan root, _div_ or _dyu_, meaning "to
-shine." The Sanskrit _dyu_, as a noun means "sky" or "day," and in the
-_Veda Dyaus_ is the bright sky or heaven. _Varuna_, the noblest figure in
-the Vedic religion, the "enveloper" or all-surrounding heaven, is cognate
-with the Greek _Ouranos_ or _Uranus_, the common root being _var_, "to
-veil" or "cover." Agni, the fire-god, to whom the larger number of hymns
-occur in the _Veda_, is related to the Latin _ignis_, fire, and so forth.
-
-The heavens and the earth and all that in them is are the raw material on
-which man works, and the comparative philologists have established exactly
-what might have been predicated, the nature-origin of the Greek, Vedic,
-and other Aryan myths. They might well have rested content with this
-confirmation which their method gives to results arrived at by other
-methods, and not weakened or discredited it by applying it all round to
-every leading name in Aryan myth. For this has only revealed the
-fundamental differences among themselves as to the etymologies and
-meanings of such names. But not satisfied with the demonstration that the
-majestic epics have their germs in the phenomena of the natural world, and
-the course of the day and year, they strain the evidence by contending
-that "there is absolutely nothing left for further analysis in the
-stories;" that their "resemblances in detail defy the influences of
-climate and scenery;"[37] that every incident has its birth in the journey
-of the sun, the death of the dawn, the theft of the twilight by the powers
-of darkness, evidence which, in Sir George Cox's words, "not long hence
-will probably be regarded as excessive."
-
-They are nature-myths; but, and in this is the secret of their enduring
-life, they are much more than that. The impetus that has shaped them as we
-now know them came from other forces than clouds and storms.
-
-Without such caution as these remarks are designed to supply, any reader
-of the _Mythology of the Aryan Nations_ would conclude that the
-philological method had proved the meteorological origin of every epic and
-folk-tale among the Indo-European peoples. He would learn that, in a way
-rudely analogous to the supernatural guidance of the Christian Church, the
-several Aryan tribes had received from the fathers of the race an
-unvarying canon of interpretation of the primitive myths, a canon
-seemingly preserved with the jealous veneration with which the Jew
-regarded the _Thorah_, and the Brahman the _Veda_. He would also learn
-that the details of Norse and classic myth can be traced to the _Veda_,
-that these details, not of incident alone, but of thought and expression,
-survived unimpaired by time and untouched by circumstance, whilst, strange
-to say, the more prominent names and the leading characters became
-obscured in their meaning. Strange indeed, and not true. For what are the
-facts?
-
-Long before the hymns of the _Rig-Veda_ existed as we know them (and they
-have remained an inviolate sacred text since 600 B.C., when every verse,
-word, and syllable were counted) the Aryan tribes had swarmed from their
-parent hive across boundless steppes and over winding mountain passes,
-some to the westward limits of Europe, others southward into Hindustan.
-Among the slender intellectual capital of which they stood possessed was
-the common mythology of their savage ancestors, in which, as we have seen,
-sun and moon, storm and thunder-cloud, and all other natural phenomena,
-were credited with personal life and will. But that mythology had
-certainly advanced beyond the crude primitive form and entered the heroic
-stage, wherein the powers of nature were half human, half divine. Their
-language had passed into the inflective or highest stage, and had
-undergone such changes that the relationship between its several groups
-and their origin from one mother-tongue was obscured, and remained so
-until laid bare in our day. In short, the Aryan tribes had attained no
-mean state of civilisation, some being more advanced than the others,
-according as external circumstances helped or hindered, and one by one
-they passed from the condition of semi-civilised nomads to become fathers
-and founders of nations that abide to this day.
-
-These being the facts to which language itself bears witness, how was it
-possible for their mythologies, _i.e._ their stock of notions about
-things, to remain unaffected and secure of transmission without organic
-change? The myths, unfixed in literary form, yielded themselves with ease
-as vehicles of new ideas; their ancient meaning, already faded, paled
-before the all-absorbing significance of present facts. These were more
-potent realities than the kisses of the dawn; the human and the personal,
-in its struggles, of mightier interest than the battle of rosy morn or
-purple eve with the sons of thunder; and Homer's music would long since
-have died away were Achilles' "baneful wrath" but a passively-told tale of
-the sun's grief for the loss of the morning.
-
-In brief, the complex and varying influences which have transformed the
-primitive myth are the important factors which the solar theorists have
-omitted in their attempted solution of the problem. They have forgotten
-the part which, to borrow a term from astronomy, "personal equation" has
-played. They have not examined myth in the light of the long history of
-the race; and the new elements which it took into itself, while never
-wholly ridding itself of the old, have escaped them. They have secured a
-mechanical unity, whereas, by combination of the historical with their own
-method, they might have secured a vital unity.
-
-To all which classic myth itself bears record. The Greeks were of Aryan
-stock, but the time of their settlement is unknown. The period between
-this and the Homeric age was, however, long enough to admit of their
-advance to the state of a nation rejoicing in the fulness of intellectual
-life. They remembered not from what rock they were hewn, from what pit
-they were digged. The nature-gods of their remote ancestors had long since
-changed their meteorological character, and appeared in the likeness of
-men, or, at least, played very human pranks on Olympus. In the _Veda_ the
-primitive nature-myth, although exalted and purified, is persistent; under
-one name or another it is still the ceaseless battle between the darkness
-and the light; Dyaus was still the bright sky, the cattle of Siva were
-still the clouds. But the Greek of Homer's time, and his congener in the
-far north, had forgotten all that; the war in heaven was transferred to
-the strife of gods and men on the shores of the Hellespont and by the
-bleak seaboard of the Baltic. Their gods and goddesses, improved by age
-and experience, put off their physical and put on the ethical; the
-heaven-father became king of gods and men, source of order, law, and
-justice; the sun and the dawn, Apollo and Athene, became wisdom, skill,
-and guardianship incarnate. And the story of human vicissitudes found in
-solar myth that "pattern of things in the heavens" which conformed to its
-design.
-
-Thus Homer, in whose day the old nature-myth had become confused with the
-vague traditions of veritable deeds of kings and heroes but dimly
-remembered, touched it as with heavenly fire unquenchable. The siege of
-Troy, so say the solar mythologists, "is a repetition of the daily siege
-of the east by the solar powers that every evening are robbed of their
-highest treasures in the west." It is surely a truer instinct which,
-recognising the physical framework of the great epics, feels that the
-vitality which inheres in them is due to whatever of human experience,
-joy, and sorrow is the burden of their immortal song. As to the repulsive
-features of Greek myth, one can neither share the distress of the solar
-theorists nor feel their difficulties. Both are self-created, and are
-aggravated by suggestions, serious or otherwise, of "periods of temporary
-insanity through which the human mind had to pass," as the rude health of
-childhood is checked by whooping-cough and measles. They are explained by
-the persistence with which the lower out of which man has emerged asserts
-itself, as primary rocks pierce through and overlap later strata.
-
-The ancestors of the Aryans were savages in the remote past, and the "old
-Adam" was never entirely cast out; indeed it is with us still. There are
-superstitions and credulities in our midst, in drawing-rooms as well as
-gipsy camps, quite as gross in nature, if less coarse in guise, as those
-extant among the Greeks. The future historian of our time, as he turns
-over the piles of our newspapers, will find contrasts of ignorance and
-culture as startling as any existing in the land of Homer, of Archimedes,
-and Aristotle. Spirit-rapping and belief in the "evil eye" have their cult
-among us, although Professor Huxley's _Hume_ can be bought for two
-shillings, and knowledge has free course. And it certainly accords best
-with all that we have learnt as to the mode of human progress to believe
-that the old lived into the new, than that the old had been cast out, but
-had gained re-entry, making the last state of the Greeks to be worse than
-the first.
-
-In this matter the Vedic hymns do not help us much. The conditions under
-which they took the form that insured their transmission are _ipso facto_
-as of yesterday, compared with the period during which man's endeavour was
-made to get at that meaning of his surroundings wherein is found the germ
-of myth throughout the world. They are the products of a relatively
-highly-civilised time; the conception of sky and dawn as living persons
-has passed out of its primitive simplicity; these heavenly powers have
-become complex deities; there is much confounding of persons, the same god
-called by one or many names. The thought is that of an age when moral
-problems have presented themselves for solution, and the references to
-social matters indicate a settled state of things far removed from the
-fisher and the hunter stage. Nevertheless there lurk within these sacred
-writings survivals of the lower culture, traces of coarse rites, bloody
-sacrifices, of repulsive myths of the gods, and of cosmogonies familiar to
-the student of barbaric myth and legend.
-
-Enough has been said to show that the extreme and one-sided
-interpretations of the solar mythologists are due to a one-sided method.
-The philological has yielded splendid results; this the solar theorists
-have done; the historical yields results equally rich and fertile; this
-they have left undone. Language has given us the key to the kinship
-between the several members of the great body of Aryan myths; the study of
-the historical evolution of myths, the comparison of these, without regard
-to affinity of speech, will give us the key to the kinship between savage
-interpretation of phenomena all the world over. The mythology of Greek and
-Bushman, of Kaffir and Scandinavian, of the Red man and the Hindu, springs
-from the like mental condition. It is the uniform and necessary product of
-the human mind in the childhood of the race.
-
-
-Sec. V.
-
-BELIEF IN METAMORPHOSIS INTO ANIMALS.
-
-The belief that human beings could change themselves into animals has been
-already alluded to, but in view of its large place in the history of
-illusions, some further reference is needful.
-
-Superstitions which now excite a smile, or which seem beneath notice, were
-no sudden phenomena, appearing now and again at the beck and call of
-wilful deceivers of their kind. That they survive at all, like organisms,
-atrophied or degenerate, which have seen "better days," is evidence of
-remote antiquity and persistence. Every seeming vagary of the mind had
-serious importance, and answered to some real need of man as a sober
-attempt to read the riddle of the earth, and get at its inmost secret.
-
-So with this belief. It is the outcome of that early thought of man which
-conceived a common nature and fellowship between himself and brutes, a
-conception based on rude analogies between his own and other forms of
-life, as also between himself and things without life, but having motion,
-be they waterspouts or rivers, trees or clouds, especially these last,
-when the wind, in violent surging and with howling voice, drove them
-across the sky. Where he blindly, timidly groped, we walk as in the light,
-and with love that casts out fear. Where rough resemblances suggested to
-him like mental states and actions in man and brute, the science of our
-time has, under the comparative method, converted the guess into a
-certainty; not to the confirmation of his conclusions, but to the proof of
-identity of structure and function, to the demonstrating of a common
-origin, however now impassable the chasm that separates us from the lower
-animals.
-
-The belief in man's power to change his form and nature is obviously
-nearly connected with the widespread doctrine of metempsychosis, or the
-passing of the soul at death into one or a series of animals, generally
-types of the dead man's character, as where the timid enter the body of a
-hare, the gluttonous that of a swine or vulture.
-
- "Fills with fresh energy another form,
- And towers an elephant or glides a worm;
- Swims as an eagle in the eye of noon,
- Or wails a screech-owl to the deaf, cold moon,
- Or haunts the brakes where serpents hiss and glare,
- Or hums, a glittering insect, in the air."
-
-But while in transmigration the soul returns not to the body which it had
-left, transformation was only for a time, occurring at stated periods, and
-effected by the will of the transformed, or by the aid of sorcery or
-magic, or sometimes imposed by the gods as a punishment for impious
-defiance and sin.
-
-Other causes, less remote, aided the spread of a belief to which the mind
-was already inclined. Among these were the hallucinations of men who
-believed themselves changed into beasts, and who, retreating to caves and
-forests, issued thence howling and foaming, ravening for blood and
-slaughter; hallucinations which afflicted not only single persons, as in
-the case of Nebuchadnezzar, whose milder monomania (he, himself, saying in
-the famous prize poem:--
-
- "As he ate the unwonted food,
- 'It may be wholesome, but it is not good'"),
-
-rather resembled that of the daughters of Praetus, who believed themselves
-cows, but which also spread as virulent epidemic among whole classes. It
-is related that, in 1600, multitudes were attacked by the disease known as
-lycanthropy, or wolf-madness (from Greek, _lukos_, a wolf, and
-_anthropos_, a man), and that they herded and hunted in packs, destroying
-and eating children, and keeping in their mountain fastnesses a cannibal
-or devil's sabbath, like the nocturnal meetings of witches and demons
-known as the Witches' Sabbath. Hundreds of them were executed on their own
-confession, but some time elapsed before the frightful epidemic, and the
-panic which it caused, passed away. Besides such delusions, history down
-to our own time records instances where a morbid innate craving for blood,
-leading sometimes to cannibalism, has shown itself. Mr. Baring-Gould, in
-his _Book of Werewolves_, cites a case from Gall of a Dutch priest who had
-such a desire to kill and to see killed that he became chaplain to a
-regiment for the sake of witnessing the slaughter in battle. But still
-more ghastly are the notorious cases of Elizabeth, a Hungarian lady of
-title, who inveigled girls into her castle and murdered them, that she
-might bathe her body in human blood to enhance her beauty; and of the
-Marechal de Retz who, cursed with the abnormal desire to murder children,
-allured them with promises of dainties into his kitchen, and killed them,
-inhaling the odour of their blood with delight, and then burned their
-bodies in the huge fireplace in the room devoted to these horrors. When
-the deed was done the Marechal would lie prostrate with grief, "would toss
-weeping and praying on a bed, or recite fervent prayers and litanies on
-his knees, only to rise with irresistible craving to repeat the crime."
-
-Such instances as the foregoing, whether of delusion or morbid desire to
-destroy, are among secondary causes; they may contribute, but they do not
-create, being inadequate to account for the world-wide existence of
-transformation myths. The animals which are the supposed subject of these
-vary with the habitat, but are always those which have inspired most
-dread from their ferocity. In Abyssinia we find the man-hyaena; in South
-Africa, the man-lion; in India, the man-tiger; in Northern Europe, the
-man-bear; and in other parts of Europe the man-wolf, or werewolf (from
-A.-S. _wer_, a man).
-
-Among the many survivals of primitive thought in the Greek mythology,
-which are the only key to its coarser features, this of belief in
-transformation occurs, and, indeed, along the whole line of human
-development it appears and re-appears in forms more or less vivid and
-tragic. The gods of the south, as of the north, came down in the likeness
-of beasts and birds, as well as of men, and among the references to these
-myths in classic writers, Ovid, in the _Metamorphoses_, tells the story of
-Zeus visiting Lykaon, king of Arcadia, who placed a dish of human flesh
-before the god to test thereby his omniscience. Zeus detected the trick,
-and punished the king by changing him into a wolf, so that his desire
-might be towards the food which he had impiously offered to his god.
-
- "In vain he attempted to speak; from that very instant
- His jaws were bespluttered with foam, and only he thirsted
- For blood, as he raged amongst flocks and panted for slaughter.
- His vesture was changed into hair, his limbs became crooked.
- A wolf--he retains yet large traces of his ancient expression,
- Hoary he is as afore, his countenance rabid,
- His eyes glitter savagely still, the picture of fury."
-
-But we may pass from this and such-like tales of the ancients to the grim
-realities of the belief in mediaeval times.
-
-If wolves abounded, much more did the werewolf abound. According to Olaus
-Magnus, the sufferings which the inhabitants of Prussia and neighbouring
-nations endured from wolves were trivial compared with the ravages wrought
-by men turned into wolves. On the feast of the Nativity, these monsters
-were said to assemble and then disperse in companies to kill and plunder.
-Attacking lonely houses, they devoured all the human beings and every
-other animal found therein. "They burst into the beer-cellars and there
-they empty the tuns of beer or mead, and pile up the empty casks one above
-another in the middle of the cellar, thus showing their difference from
-natural wolves." In Scandinavia it was believed that some men had a second
-skin out of which they could slip and appear in the shape of a beast.
-Perhaps the phrase "to jump out of one's skin" is a relic of this notion.
-The Romans believed that the werewolf simply effected the change by
-turning his skin inside out, hence the term "versipellis," or
-"skin-changer." So in mediaeval times it was said that the wolf's skin was
-under the human, and the unhappy suspects were hacked and tortured for
-signs of such hairy growth. Sometimes the change was induced, it is said,
-by putting on a girdle of human skin round the waist; sometimes by the use
-of magical ointment. Whatever the animal whose shape a man took could do,
-that he could do, plus such power as he possessed in virtue of his
-manhood or acquired by sorcery, his eyes remaining as the only features by
-which he could be recognised. If he was not changed himself, some charm
-was wrought on the eyes of onlookers whereby they could see him only in
-the shape which he was supposed to assume. The genuine monomaniacs aided
-such an illusion. The poor demented one who conceived himself a dog or a
-wolf, who barked, and snapped, and foamed at the mouth, and bit savagely
-at the flesh of others, was soon clothed by a terror-stricken fancy in the
-skin of either brute, and believed to have the canine or lupine appetite
-in addition to his human cunning. The imagination thus projects in visible
-form the spectres of its creation; the eye in this, as in so much else,
-sees the thing for which it looks. Some solid foundation for the belief
-would, however, exist in the custom among warriors of dressing themselves
-in the skins of beasts to add to their ferocious appearance. And it was
-amidst such that the remarkable form of mania in Northern Europe known as
-the Berserkr rage ("bear-sark" or "bear-skin" wearer) arose. Working
-themselves by the aid of strong drink or drugs and contagious excitement
-into a frenzy, these freebooters of the Northland sallied forth to break
-the backbones and cleave the skulls of quiet folk and unwary travellers.
-As with flashing eyes and foaming mouth they yelled and danced, seemingly
-endowed with magic power to resist assault by sword or club, they aroused
-in the hysterically disposed a like madness, which led to terrible crimes,
-and which died away only as the killing of one's fellows became less the
-business of life. History supplies many examples of strange mental
-epidemics which sped through towns and provinces in mediaeval times. They
-were induced by religious enthusiasm and other extreme and harmful forms
-of mental stimulation, the most notorious being the great St. Vitus'
-dance, and the procession of Flagellants, to which in their mad orgies the
-hysterical ceremonies of barbarous tribes correspond. Of that tendency
-towards imitation which these freaks of erratic and unbalanced minds
-foster Dr. Carpenter[38] quotes an illustration from Zimmerman. A nun in a
-large convent in France began to mew like a cat, and shortly afterwards
-other nuns also mewed. At last all the nuns mewed every day at a given
-time and for several hours together. And this cat's concert was only
-stopped by the military arriving and threatening to whip the nuns.
-
-During the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries the belief in men-beasts
-reached its maximum, and met with no tender treatment at the hands of a
-church whose founder had manifested such soothing pity towards the
-"possessed" of Galilee and Judaea. That church had a cut-and-dried
-explanation of the whole thing, and applied a sharp and pitiless remedy.
-If the devil, with countless myrmidons at his command, was "going to and
-fro in the earth, and walking up and down in it," what limit could be put
-to his ingenuity and arts? Could he not as easily change a man into a wolf
-or a bear as a woman into a cat? and had not each secured this by a
-compact with him, the foe of God and His Church? The evidence in support
-of the one was as clear and cogent as in support of the other; hence
-werewolf hunting and burning became as Christian a duty and as paying a
-profession as witch-smelling and torturing. Any cruelty was justified by
-its perpetrators when the object in view was the vindication of the
-majesty of God; and not until the advancing intelligence of men recoiled
-against the popular explanations of witchcraft and lycanthropy were the
-laws against both repealed.
-
-Those explanations were survivals of savage mental philosophy blended with
-a crude theology. To the savage, all diseases are the work of evil
-spirits. If a man hurts himself against a stone, the demon in the stone is
-the cause. If the man falls suddenly ill, writhes or shrieks in his pain,
-the spirit which has smuggled itself in with the food or the drink or the
-breath is twisting or tearing him; if he has a fit, the spirit has flung
-him; if he is in the frenzy of hysteria, the spirit within him is laughing
-in fiendish glee. And when the man suddenly loses his reason, goes, as
-people say, "out of his mind," acts and looks no longer like his former
-self, still more does this seem the work of an evil agent within him. It
-is kindred with the old belief that the sickly and ugly infant had been
-left in the cradle by the witch in place of the child stolen by her before
-its baptism.[39] And the thing to do is to find some mode of conjuring or
-frightening or forcing the demon out of the man, just as it became a
-sacred duty to watch over the newly-born until the sign of the cross had
-been made on its forehead, and the regenerating water sprinkled over it.
-
-"Presbyter is but old priest writ large." And the theory of demoniacal
-agency was but the savage theory in a more elaborate guise. To theologians
-and jurists it was a sufficing explanation; it fitted in with the current
-notions of the government of the universe, and there was no need to frame
-any other. Body and mind were to them as separate entities as they are to
-the savage and the ignorant. Each regarded the soul as independent of the
-body, and framed his theories of occasional absence therefrom accordingly.
-But science has taught us to know ourselves not as dual, but as one. She
-lays her finger on the subtle, intricate framework of man's nervous
-system, and finds in the derangement of this the secret of those delusions
-and illusions which have been so prolific in agony and suffering. She
-makes clear how the yielding to morbid tendencies can still foster
-delusions, which, if no longer the subject of pains and penalties in the
-body politic, are themselves ministers of vengeance in the body where they
-arise. And in the recognition of a fundamental unity between the physical
-and the mental, in the healthy working of the one as dependent on the
-wholesome care of the other, she finds not only the remedy against mental
-derangement and all forms of harmful excitement, but also the prevention
-which is better than cure.
-
-Traditions of transformation of men into beasts are not confined to the
-Old world.[40] In Dr. Rink's _Tales of the Eskimo_ there are numerous
-stories both of men and women who have assumed animal form at will, as
-also incidental references to the belief in stories such as that telling
-how an Eskimo got inside a walrus skin, so that he might lead the life of
-that creature. And among the Red races, that rough analogy which led to
-the animal being credited with life and consciousness akin to the human,
-still expresses itself in thought and act. If even now it is matter of
-popular belief in the wilds of Norway that Finns and Lapps, who from
-remote times have passed as skilful witches and wizards, can at pleasure
-assume the shape of bears, the common saying, according to Sir George
-Dasent, about an unusually daring and savage beast being, "that can be no
-Christian bear," we may not be surprised that lower races still ascribe
-power of interchange to man and brute. The werewolf superstition is extant
-among the North-Western Indians, but free from those diabolical features
-which characterised it in mediaeval times among ourselves. It takes its
-place in barbaric myth generally, and although it may have repellent or
-cruel elements, it was never blended with belief in the demoniacal. The
-Ahts say that men go into the mountains to seek their manitou (that is,
-the personal deity, generally the first animal seen by a native in the
-dream produced by his fasting on reaching manhood), and, mixing with
-wolves, are after a time changed into these creatures. Although the
-illustration bears more upon what has to be said concerning the barbaric
-belief in animal-ancestors, it has some reference to the matter in hand to
-cite the custom among the Tonkanays, a wild and unruly tribe in Texas, of
-celebrating their origin by a grand annual dance. One of them, naked as he
-was born, is buried in the earth, then the others, clothed in wolf-skins,
-walk over him, sniff around him, howl in wolfish style, and then dig him
-up with their nails.[41] The leading wolf solemnly places a bow and arrow
-in his hands, and, to his inquiry as to what he must do for a living,
-advises him "to do as the wolves do--rob, kill, and rove from place to
-place, never cultivating the soil." Dr. Brinton, in quoting the above from
-Schoolcraft, refers to a similar custom among the ancient dwellers on
-Mount Soracte.
-
-As in past times among ourselves, so in times present among races such as
-the foregoing, their wizards and shamans are believed to have power to
-turn themselves as they choose into beasts, birds, or reptiles. By
-whatever name these professional impostors are known, whether as
-medicine-men, or, as in Cherokee, by the high-sounding title of
-"possessors of the divine fire," they have traded, and wherever credulity
-or darkest ignorance abide, still trade on the fears and fancies of their
-fellows by disguising themselves in voice and gait and covering of the
-animal which they pretend to be. Among races believing in transformation
-such tricks have free course, and the more dexterous the sorcerer who
-could play bear's antics in a bear's skin proved himself in throwing off
-the disguise and appearing suddenly as a man, the greater his success, and
-the more firmly grounded the belief.
-
-The whole subject, although presented here only in the barest outline,
-would not be fitly dismissed without some reference to the survival of the
-primitive belief in men-animals in the world-wide stories known as
-beast-fables, in which animals act and talk like human beings. When to us
-all nature was Wonderland, and the four-footed, the birds, and the fishes,
-among our play-fellows; when in fireside tale and rhyme they spoke our
-language and lived that free life which we then shared and can never share
-again, the feeling of kinship to which the old fables gave expression may
-have checked many a wanton act, and, if we learned it not fully then, we
-may have taken the lesson to heart since--
-
- "Never to blend our pleasure or our pride
- With sorrow of the meanest thing that lives."
-
-And then those _Fables_ of AEsop, even with the tedious drawback of the
-"moral," as powder beneath the jam, did they not lighten for us in
-school-days the dark passages through our Valpy (for the omniscient Dr.
-William Smith was not then the tyro's dread), and again give us communion
-with the fowl of the air and the beast of the field? Now our mature
-thought may interest itself in following the beast-myths to the source
-whence Babrius and Phaedrus, knowing not its springhead and antiquity, drew
-their vivid presentments of the living world, and find in the storied East
-the well-spring that fed the imagination of youngsters thousands of years
-ago. Such tales have not fallen in the East to the low level which they
-have reached here, because they yet accord in some degree with extant
-superstitions in India, whereas in Europe they find little or nothing to
-which they correspond. With some authorities the Egyptians have the credit
-of first inventing the beast-fable, but among them, as among every other
-advanced race, such stories are the remains of an earlier deposit; relics
-of a primitive philosophy in which wisdom and skill and cunning are no
-monopoly of man's. The fondness of the negro races, whose traditions are
-not limited to South and Central Africa, for such fables is well known, as
-witness the tales of which "Uncle Remus" is a type, and it is strikingly
-illustrated in the history of the Vai tribe, who having, partly through
-contact with whites, elaborated a system of writing, made the beast-fable
-their earliest essay in composition.[42]
-
-The evidence in support of the common ancestry of the languages spoken by
-the leading peoples in Europe, and by such important historical races in
-Asia as the Hindu and the Persian, has been already summarised. That
-evidence, it was remarked, is considered corroborative not only of the
-common origin of the myths on which the framework of the great
-Indo-European epics rests, but also of the possession by the several clans
-of a common stock of folk-lore and folk-tale, in which, of course, the
-beast-fables are included, these being the relics in didactic or humorous
-guise of that serious philosophy concerning the community of life in man
-and brute amongst the barbaric ancestors of the Indo-Europeans, upon which
-stress enough has been laid.
-
-Even if the common origin be disproved, the evidence would be shifted
-merely from local to general foundations, because the uniform attitude of
-mind before the same phenomena would have further confirmation; but the
-resemblances are too minute in detail to be explained by a theory of
-independent creation of the tales where we now find them. The likenesses
-are many, the unlikenesses are few, being the result of local colouring,
-historical fact blended with the fiction, popular belief, and
-superstition, all affected by the skill of the professional story-teller.
-As in the numerous variants of the familiar Cinderella, Beauty and the
-Beast, Punchkin, and the like, the same fairy prince or princess, the same
-wicked magician and clever versatile Boots, peep through, disclosing the
-near relationship of Hindu nursery tales to the folk-tales of Norway and
-the Highlands, of Iceland and Ceylon, of Persia and Serbia, of Russia and
-the lands washed by the Mediterranean.
-
-In the venerable collection of _Buddhist Birth Stories_, now in course of
-translation by Dr. Rhys Davids,[43] and to which is prefaced an
-interesting introduction on the source and migration of folk-tales, we are
-face to face with many a fable familiar to us in the _AEsop_ of our
-school-days. There is the story of the Ass in the Lion's Skin, not in
-which, as AEsop has it, the beast dressed himself, but which the hawker put
-on him to frighten the thieves who would steal his goods. Left one day to
-browse in a field whilst his master refreshed himself at an inn, some
-watchmen saw him, and, raising hue and cry, brought out the villagers,
-armed with their rude implements. The ass, fearing death, made a noise
-like an ass, and was killed. Long might he, adds the ancient moral--
-
- "Clad in a lion's skin
- Have fed on the barley green;
- But he brayed!
- And that moment he came to ruin."
-
-The variants of this old fable are found in mediaeval, in French, German,
-Indian, and Turkish folk-lore, as are also those of the tortoise who lost
-his life through "much speaking." Desiring to emigrate, two ducks agreed
-to carry him, he seizing hold of a stick which they held between their
-beaks. As they passed over a village the people shouted and jeered,
-whereupon the irate tortoise called out: "What business is it of yours?"
-and, of course, thereby let go the stick and, falling down, split in two.
-Therefore--
-
- "Speak wise words not out of season;
- You see how, by talking overmuch,
- The tortoise fell."
-
-In _AEsop_ the tortoise asks an eagle to teach him to fly; in Chinese
-folk-lore he is carried by geese.
-
-Jacob Grimm's researches concerning the famous mediaeval fable of "Reynard
-the Fox" revealed the ancient and scattered materials out of which that
-wonderful satire was woven, and there is no feature of the story which
-reappears more often in Eastern and Western folk-lore than that cunning of
-the animal which has been for the lampooner and the satirist the type of
-self-seeking monk and ecclesiastic. When Chanticleer proudly takes an
-airing with his family, he meets master Reynard, who tells him he has
-become a "religious," and shows him his beads, and his missal, and his
-hair shirt, adding, in a voice "that was childlike and bland," that he had
-vowed never to eat flesh. Then he went off singing his Credo, and slunk
-behind a hawthorn. Chanticleer, thus thrown off his guard, continues his
-airing, and the astute hypocrite, darting from his ambush, seizes the
-plump hen Coppel. So in Indian folk-tale a wolf living near the Ganges is
-cut off from food by the surrounding water. He decides to keep holy day,
-and the god Sakka, knowing his lupine weakness, resolves to have some fun
-with him, and turns himself into a wild goat "Aha!" says the wolf, "I'll
-keep the fast another day," and springing up he tried to seize the goat,
-who skipped about so that he could not be taken. So Lupus gives it up, and
-says as his solatium: "After all, I've not broken my vow."
-
-The Chinese have a story of a tiger who desired to eat a fox, but the
-latter claimed exemption as being superior to the other animals, adding
-that if the tiger doubted his word he could easily judge for himself. So
-the two set forth, and, of course, every animal fled at sight of the
-tiger, who, too stupid to see how he had been gulled, conceived high
-respect for the fox, and spared his life.
-
-Sometimes the tables are turned. Chanticleer gets his head out of
-Reynard's mouth by making him answer the farmer, and in the valuable
-collection of Hottentot tales which the late Dr. Bleek, with some warrant,
-called _Reynard in South Africa_, the cock makes the jackal say his
-prayers, and flies off while the outwitted beast folds his hands and shuts
-his eyes.
-
-But further quotations must be resisted; enough if it is made clearer that
-the beast-fable is the lineal descendant of barbaric conceptions of a life
-shared in common by man and brute, and another link thus added to the
-lengthening chain of the continuity of human history.
-
-
-Sec. VI.
-
-TOTEMISM: BELIEF IN DESCENT FROM ANIMAL OR PLANT.
-
-In addition to the beliefs in the transformation of men into animals and
-in the transmigration of souls into the bodies of animals, we find among
-barbarous peoples a belief which is probably the parent of one and
-certainly nearly related to both, namely, in descent from the animal or
-plant, more often the former, whose name they bear. Its connection with
-transmigration is seen in the belief of the Moquis of Arizona, that after
-death they live in the form of their totemic animal, those of the deer
-family becoming deer, and so on through the several gentes. The belief
-survives in its most primitive and vivid forms among two races, the
-aborigines of Australia and the North American Indians. The word
-"totemism," given to it both in its religious and social aspects, is
-derived from the Algonquin "dodaim" or "dodhaim," meaning "clanmark."
-Among the Australians the word "kobong," meaning "friend" or "protector,"
-is the generic term for the animal or plant by which they are known. It is
-somewhat akin in significance to the Indian words "manitou," "oki," etc.,
-comprehending "the manifestations of the unseen world, yet conveying no
-sense of personal unity," which are commonly translated by the misleading
-word "medicine;" hence "medicine-men."
-
-The family name, or second name borne by all the tribes in lineal descent,
-and which corresponds to our surname, _i.e._ _super nomen_, or
-"over-name," is derived from names of beasts, birds, plants, etc., around
-which traditions of their transformation into men linger. Sir George
-Grey[44] says that there is a mysterious connection between a native and
-his kobong. It is his protecting angel, like the "daimon" of Socrates,
-like the "genius" of the early Italian. "If it is an animal, he will not
-kill one of the species to which it belongs, should he find it asleep, and
-he always kills it reluctantly and never without affording it a chance of
-escape. The family belief is that some one individual of the species is
-their dearest friend, to kill whom would be a great crime," as, in Hindu
-belief, when a Rajah was said to have entered at death into the body of a
-fish, a "close time" was at once decreed. Among the Indian tribes we find
-well-nigh the whole fauna and flora represented, their totems being the
-Bear, Turtle, Deer, Snake, Eagle, Pike, Corn, Tobacco, etc. Like the
-Australians, these tribes regarded themselves as being of the breed of
-their particular animal-totem, and avoided hunting, slaying, and eating
-(of which more presently) the creature under whose form the ancestor was
-thought to be manifest. The Chippeways carried their respect even farther.
-Deriving their origin from the dog, they at one time refrained from
-employing their supposed canine ancestors in dragging their sledges. The
-Bechuana and other people of South Africa will avoid eating their
-tribe-animal or wearing its skin. The same prohibitions are found among
-tribes in Northern Asia, and the Vogulitzi of Siberia, when they have
-killed a bear, address it formally, maintaining "that the blame is to be
-laid on the arrows and iron, which were made and forged by the Russians!"
-Among the Delawares the Tortoise gens claimed supremacy over the others,
-because their ancestor, who had become a fabled monster in their
-mythology, bore their world on his back. The California Indians are in
-interesting agreement with Lord Monboddo when, in claiming descent from
-the prairie wolf, they account for the loss of their tails by the habit of
-sitting, which, in course of time, wore them down to the stump! The
-Kickapoos say their ancestors had tails, and that when they lost them the
-"impudent fox sent every morning to ask how their tails were, and the bear
-shook his fat sides at the joke." The Patagonians are said to have a
-number of animal deities, creators of the several tribes, some being of
-the caste of the guanaco and others of the ostrich. In short, the group of
-beliefs and practices found among races in the lower stages of culture
-point to a widespread common attitude towards the mystery of life around
-them. In speaking of totemism among the Red races Dr. Brinton thinks that
-the free use of animate symbols to express abstract ideas, which he finds
-so frequent, is the source of a confusion which has led to their claiming
-literal descent from wild beasts. But the barbaric mind bristles with
-contradictions and mutually destructive conceptions; nothing is too
-wonderful, too _bizarre_, for its acceptance, and the belief in actual
-animal descent is not the most remarkable or far-fetched among the
-articles of its creed.
-
-The subject of totemism is full of interest both on its religious and
-social side:--
-
-On its religious side it has given rise, or, if this be not conceded,
-impetus, to that worship of animals which assuredly had its source in the
-attribution of mysterious power through some spirit within them, making
-them deity incarnate.
-
-On its social side it has led to prohibitions which are inwoven among the
-customs and prejudices of civilised communities. But, before speaking of
-these prohibitions, the barbaric mode of reckoning descent should be
-noticed.
-
-The family name borne by most Australian tribes is perpetuated by the
-children, whether boys or girls, taking their mother's name. Precisely the
-same custom is found among some American Indians, the children of both
-sexes being of the mother's clan. Among the Moquis of Arizona all the
-members of each gens trace descent from a common ancestor; they are
-regarded as brothers and sisters.[45] Now, the family, as we define it,
-does not exist in savage communities, nor, as Mr. McLennan says in his
-very remarkable work on _Primitive Marriage_, had "the earliest human
-groups any idea of kinship, ... the physical root of which could be
-discerned only through observation and reflection." Where the relations
-of the sexes were confused and promiscuous, the oldest system in which the
-idea of blood-ties was expressed was a system of kinship through the
-mother. The habits of the "much-married" primitive men made mistake about
-any one's mother less likely than mistake about his father; and, if in
-civilised times it is, as the saying goes, a wise child that knows its own
-father, he was, in barbarous times, a wise father who knew his own child.
-Examples tracing the kinship through females, father and offspring being
-never of the same clan, abound in both ancient and modern authorities, and
-perhaps the most amusing one that can be given is found in Dr. Morgan's
-_Systems of Consanguinity_. He says that the "natives of the province of
-Keang-se are celebrated among the natives of the other Chinese provinces
-for the mode or form used by them in address, namely, 'Laon peaon,' which,
-freely translated, means, 'Oh, you old fellow, brother mine by some of the
-ramifications of female relationship!'"[46]
-
-The prohibitions arising out of or confirmed by totemism are two: 1.
-Against intermarriage between those of the same name or crest. 2. Against
-the eating of the totem by any member of the tribe called after it.
-
-1. Among both Australians and Indians a man is forbidden to marry in his
-own clan, _i.e._ any woman of his own surname or badge, no matter where
-she was born or however distantly related to him. The Navajoes of Arizona
-say that if they married in their own clan "their bones would dry up and
-they would die."
-
-Were this practice of "Exogamy," as marriage outside the totem-kin is
-called, limited to one or two places, it might be classed among
-exceptional local customs based on a tradition, say, of some heated
-blood-feud between the tribes. But its prevalence among savage or
-semi-savage races all the world over points to reasons the nature of which
-is still a _crux_ to the anthropologists. The late Mr. McLennan, whose
-opinion on such a matter is entitled to the most weight, connects it with
-the custom of female infanticide, which, rendering women scarce, led at
-once to polyandry, or one female to several males, within the tribe, and
-to the capturing of women from other tribes. This last-named practice
-strengthens Mr. McLennan's theory. He cites numerous instances from past
-and present barbarous races, and traces its embodiment in formal code
-until we come to the mock relics of the custom in modern times, as, for
-example, the harmless "survival" in bride-lifting, that is, stealing, as
-in the word "cattle-lifting."
-
-Connected with this custom is the equally prevailing one which forbids
-intercourse between relations, as especially between a couple and their
-fathers and mothers-in-law, and which also forbids mentioning their names.
-So far as the aversion which the savage has to telling his own name, or
-uttering that of any person (especially of the dead) or thing feared by
-him is concerned, the reason is not far to seek. It lies in that
-confusion between names and things which marks all primitive thinking. The
-savage, who shrinks from having his likeness taken in the fear that a part
-of himself is being carried away thereby, regards his name as something
-through which he may be harmed. So he will use all sorts of roundabout
-phrases to avoid saying it, and even change it that he may elude his foes,
-and puzzle or cheat Death when he comes to look for him. But why a
-son-in-law should not see the face of his mother-in-law, for so it is
-among the Navajoes, (where the offender would, they say, go blind), the
-Aranaks of South America, the Caribs and other tribes of more northern
-regions, the Fijians, Sumatrans, Dyaks, the natives of Australia, the
-Zulus, in brief, along the range of the lower culture, is a question to
-which no satisfactory answer has been given, and to which reference is
-here made because of its connection with totemism.
-
-2. That the animal which is the totem of the tribe should not be eaten,
-even where men did not hesitate to eat men of another totem, is a custom
-for which it is less hard to account. The division of flesh into two
-classes of forbidden and permitted, of clean and unclean, with the
-resulting artificial liking or repulsion for food which custom arising out
-of that division has brought about, is probably referable to old beliefs
-in the inherent sacredness of certain animals. The Indians of Charlotte
-Island never eat crows, because they believe in crow-ancestors, and they
-smear themselves with black paint in memory of that tradition; the
-Dacotahs would neither kill nor eat their totems, and if necessity compels
-these and like barbarians to break the law, the meal is preceded by
-profuse apologies and religious ceremonies over the slain. Although the
-aborigines of Victoria, who are to be ranked among the lowest savages
-extant, devour the most loathsome things, worms, slugs, and vermin, they
-have a classification of meats to be eaten or avoided. A Kumite is deeply
-grieved when hunger compels him to eat anything which bears his name, but
-he may satisfy his hunger with anything that is Krokee. The abstention of
-the Brahmans from meat, the pseudo-revealed injunction to the Hebrews
-against certain flesh-foods (has that against pork its origin in the
-forgotten tradition of descent from a boar?), need no detailing here. But,
-as parallels, some restrictions amongst the ancient dwellers in these
-islands are of value. It was, according to Caesar,[47] a crime to eat the
-domestic fowl, or goose, or hare, and to this day the last-named is an
-object of disgust in certain parts of Russia and Brittany. The oldest
-Welsh laws contain several allusions to the magical character of the hare,
-which was thought to change its sex every month or year, and to be the
-companion of the witches, who often assumed its shape.[48] The revulsion
-against horse-flesh as food may have its origin in the sacredness of the
-white horses, which, as Tacitus remarks,[49] were kept by the Germans at
-the public cost in groves holy to the gods, whose secrets they knew, and
-whose decrees regarding mortals their neighings interpreted. That this
-animal was a clan-totem among our forefathers there can be no doubt, and
-the proofs are with us in the white horses carved in outline on the chalk
-hills of Berkshire and the west, as in the names and crests of clan
-descendants.
-
-The totem is not only the clan-name indicating descent from a common
-ancestor. It is also the clan-symbol, badge, or crest. Where the tribes
-among whom it is found are still in the picture-writing stage, _i.e._ when
-the idea is expressed by a portrait of the thing itself instead of by some
-sound-sign--a stage in writing corresponding to the primitive stage in
-language, when words were imitative--there we find the rude hieroglyphic
-of the totem a means of intercourse between different tribes, as well as
-with whites. A striking example of the use of such totemic symbols occurs
-in a petition sent by some Western Indian tribes to the United States
-Congress for the right to fish in certain small lakes near Lake Superior.
-
-The leading clan is represented by a picture of the crane; then follow
-three martens, as totems of three tribes; then the bear, the man-fish, and
-the cat-fish, also totems. From the eye and heart of each of the animals
-runs a line connecting them with the eye and heart of the crane, to show
-that they are all of one mind, and the eye of the crane has also a line
-connecting it with the lakes on which the tribes have their eyes, and
-another line running towards Congress.
-
-In the barbaric custom of painting or carving the totem on oars, on the
-bows and sides of canoes, on weapons, on pillars in the front of houses,
-and on the houses themselves; in tattooing it on various parts of the body
-(in the latter case, in some instances, together with pictures of
-exploits; so that the man carries on his person an illustrated history of
-his own life) we have the remote and forgotten origin of heraldic emblems.
-The symbols of civilised nations, as, _e.g._ the Imperial eagle, which so
-many states of ancient and modern renown have chosen; the crests of
-families of rank, with their fabulous monsters, as the cherub, the Greek
-_gryps_, surviving in the griffin, the dragon, the unicorn, which, born of
-rude fancy or terrified imagination, are now carved on the entrance-gates
-to the houses of the great; the armorial bearings on carriages; the crest
-engraven on ring or embossed on writing-paper, these are the lineal
-descendants of the totem; and the Indians, who could see no difference
-between their system of manitous and those of the white people, with their
-spread-eagle or their lion-rampant, made a shrewd guess that would not
-occur to many a _parvenu_ applying at the Heralds' College for a crest.
-The continuity is traceable in the custom of the Mexicans and other
-civilised nations of painting the totemic animals on their banners, flags,
-crests, and other insignia; and it would seem that we have in the totem
-the key to the mystery of those huge animal-shaped mounds which abound on
-the North American continent.
-
-The arbitrary selection in the "ages of chivalry" of such arms as pleased
-the knightly fancy or ministered to its pride, or, as was often the case,
-resembled the name in sound, together with the ignorance then and till
-recently existing as to the origin of crests, and also the discredit into
-which a seemingly meaningless vanity had fallen, have made it difficult to
-trace the survival of the totem in the crests even of that numerous
-company of the Upper Ten who claim descent from warriors who came over
-with the Conqueror. But there is no doubt that an inquiry conducted on the
-lines suggested above, and not led into by-paths by false analogies, would
-yield matter of interest and value. It would add to the evidence of that
-common semi-civilised stage out of which we have risen. Such names as the
-Horsings, the Wylfings, the Derings, the Ravens, the Griffins, perhaps
-hold within themselves traces of the totem name of the horse, wolf, deer,
-raven, and that "animal fantasticall," the griffin. In Scotland we find
-the clan Chattan, or the wild cat; in Ireland "the men of Osory were
-called by a name signifying the wild red deer." On the other hand such
-names may have been given merely as nicknames (_i.e._ ekename or the
-_added_ name, from _eke_, "also," or "to augment"), suggested by the
-physical or mental likeness to the thing after which they are called.
-
-But it is time to turn to the religious significance of the totem, as
-shown among races worshipping the animal which is their supposed ancestor.
-
-At first glance this seems strong argument in support of Mr. Herbert
-Spencer's theory that all forms of religion, and all myth, have their
-origin in ancestor worship. The mysterious power of stimulation, of
-excitation to frenzy, or of healing and soothing, or of poisoning, which
-certain plants possess, has been attributed to indwelling spirits, which,
-as Mr. Spencer contends, are regarded as human and ancestral. Very many
-illustrations of this occur, as, _e.g._ the worship of the Soma plant, and
-its promotion as a deity among the Aryans; the use of tobacco in religious
-ceremonies among the tribes of both Americas; whilst now and again we find
-trees and plants as totems. The Moquis have a totem-kin called the
-tobacco-plant, and also one called the seed-grass. One of the Peruvian
-Incas was called after the native name of the tobacco-plant; and among the
-Ojibways the buffalo grass was carried as a charm, and its god said to
-cause madness.
-
-In Algonquin myth "there is a spirit for the corn, another for beans,
-another for squashes. They are sisters, and are very kind to each other.
-There are spirits in the water, in fire, in all the trees and berries, in
-herbs and in tobacco, in the grass."
-
-The worship of animals is on Mr. Spencer's theory explained as due to the
-giving of a nickname of some beast or bird to a remote ancestor, the
-belief arising in course of time that such animal was the actual
-progenitor, hence its worship. We call a man a bear, a pig, or a vampire,
-in symbolic phrase, and the figure of speech remains a figure of speech
-with us. But the savage loses the metaphor, and it crystallises into hard
-matter-of-fact. So the traditions have grown, and Black Eagle, Strong
-Buffalo, Big Owl, Tortoise, etc., take the shape of actual forefathers of
-the tribe bearing their name and crest. According to the same theory the
-adoration of sun, moon, and mountains, etc., is due to a like source. Some
-famous chief was called the Sun; the metaphor was forgotten; the personal
-and concrete, as the more easily apprehended, remained; hence worship of
-the powers of nature "is a form of ancestor-worship, which has lost in a
-still greater degree the character of the original."[50]
-
-The objection raised in these pages to the extreme application of the
-solar theory applies with equal force to Mr. Spencer's limitation of the
-origin of myth and religion to one source. Having cleared Scylla, we must
-not dash against Charybdis. Religion has its origin neither in fear of
-ghosts, as Mr. Spencer's theory assumes, nor in a perception of the
-Infinite inherent in man, as Professor Max Mueller holds. Rather does it
-lie in man's sense of vague wonder in the presence of powers whose force
-he cannot measure, and his expressions towards which are manifold. There
-is underlying unity, but there are, to quote St. Paul, "diversities of
-operation." There is just that surface unlikeness which one might expect
-from the different physical conditions and their resulting variety of
-subtle influences surrounding various races; influences shaping for them
-their gods, their upper and nether worlds; influences of climate and soil
-which made the hell of volcanic countries an abyss of sulphurous stifling
-smoke and everlasting fire, and the hell of cold climates a place of
-deathly frost; which gave to the giant-gods of northern zones their rugged
-awfulness, and to the goddesses of the sunny south their soft and stately
-grace. The theory of ancestor-worship as the basis of every form of
-religion does not allow sufficient play for the vagaries in which the same
-thing will be dressed by the barbaric fear and fancy, nor for the
-imagination as a creative force in the primitive mind even at the lowest
-at which we know it. And, of course, beneath that lowest lies a lower
-never to be fathomed. We are apt to talk of primitive man as if his
-representatives were with us in the black fellows who are at the bottom of
-the scale, forgetting that during unnumbered ages he was a brute in
-everything but the capacity by which at last the ape and tiger were
-subdued within him. Of the beginnings of his _thought_ we can know
-nothing, but the fantastic forms in which it is first manifest compel us
-to regard him as a being whose feelings were uncurbed by reason. That
-ancestor-worship is one mode among others of man's attitude towards the
-awe-begetting, mystery-inspiring universe, none can deny. That his
-earliest temples, as defined sacred spots, were tombs; that he prayed to
-his dead dear ones, or his dead feared ones, as the case may be, is
-admitted. From its strong personal character, ancestor-worship was,
-without doubt, one of the earliest expressions of man's attitude before
-the world which his fancy filled with spirits. It flourishes among
-barbarous races to-day; it was the prominent feature of the old Aryan
-religion; it has entered into Christian practice in the worship of saints,
-and perhaps the only feature of religion which the modern Frenchman has
-retained is the _culte des morts_. That it was a part of the belief of the
-Emperor Napoleon III. the following extract from his will shows:--"We must
-remember that those we love look down upon us from heaven and protect us.
-It is the soul of my great Uncle which has always guided and supported me.
-Thus will it be with my son also if he proves worthy of his name."
-
-But the worship of ancestors is not primal. The comparatively late
-recognition of kinship by savages, among whom some rude form of religion
-existed, tells against it as the earliest mode of worship. Moreover,
-Nature is bigger than man, and this he was not slow to feel. Even if it be
-conceded that sun-myth and sun-worship once arose through the nicknaming
-of an ancestor as the Sun, we must take into account the force of that
-imagination which enabled the unconscious myth-maker, or creed-maker, to
-credit the moving orbs of heaven with personal life and will. The faculty
-which could do that might well express itself in awe-struck forms without
-intruding the ancestral ghost. Further, the records of the classic
-religions, themselves preserving many traces of a primitive
-nature-worship, point to an adoration of the great and bountiful, as well
-as to a sense of the maleficent and fateful, in earth and heaven which
-seem prior to the more concrete worship of forefathers and chieftains.
-
-If for the worship of these last we substitute a general worship of
-spirits, there seems little left on which to differ. As aids to the
-explanation of the belief in animal ancestors and their subsequent
-deification and worship, as of the lion, the bull, the serpent, etc., we
-have always present in the barbaric mind the tendency to credit living
-things, and indeed lifeless, but moving ones, with a passion, a will, and
-a power to help or harm immeasurably greater than man's. This is part and
-parcel of that belief in spirits everywhere which is the key to savage
-philosophy, and the growth of which is fostered by such secondary causes
-as the worship of ancestors.
-
-
-Sec. VII.
-
-SURVIVAL OF MYTH IN HISTORY.
-
-For proofs of the emergence of the higher out of the lower in philosophy
-and religion, to say nothing of less exalted matters, whether the
-beast-fable or the nursery rhyme, as holding barbaric thought in solution,
-examples have necessarily been drawn from the mythology of past and
-present savage races. But these are too remote in time or standpoint to
-stir other than a languid interest in the reader's mind; their purpose is
-served when they are cited and classified as specimens. Not thus is it
-with examples drawn nearer home from sources at which our young thirst for
-the stirring and romantic was slaked. When we learn that famous names and
-striking episodes are in some rare instances only transformed and
-personified natural phenomena, or, as occurring everywhere, possibly
-variants of a common legend, the far-reaching influence of primitive
-thought comes to us in more vivid and exciting form. And although one
-takes in hand this work of disenchantment in no eager fashion, the loss is
-more seeming than real. Whether the particular tale of bravery, of
-selflessness, of faithfulness, has truth of detail, matters little
-compared with the fact that its reception the wide world over witnesses to
-human belief, even at low levels, in the qualities which have given man
-empire over himself and ever raised the moral standard of the race.
-Moreover, in times like these, when criticism is testing without fear or
-favour the trustworthiness of records of the past, whether of Jew or
-Gentile, the knowledge of the legendary origin of events woven into sober
-history prepares us to recognise how the imagination has fed the stream of
-tradition, itself no mean tributary of that larger stream of history, the
-purity of which is now subject of analysis. As a familiar and interesting
-example let us take the story of William Tell.
-
-Everybody has heard how, in the year 1307 (or, as some say, 1296) Gessler,
-Vogt (or Governor) of the Emperor Albert of Hapsburg, set a hat on a pole
-as symbol of the Imperial power, and ordered every one who passed by to do
-obeisance to it; and how a mountaineer named Wilhelm Tell, who hated
-Gessler and the tyranny which the symbol expressed, passed by without
-saluting the hat, and was at once seized and brought before Gessler, who
-ordered that as punishment Tell should shoot an apple off the head of his
-own son. As resistance was vain, the apple was placed on the boy's head,
-when Tell bent his bow, and the arrow, piercing the apple, fell with it to
-the ground. Gessler saw that Tell, before shooting, had stuck a second
-arrow in his belt, and, asking the reason, received this for answer: "It
-was for you; had I shot my child, know that this would have pierced your
-heart."
-
-Now, this story first occurs in the chronicle of Melchior Russ, who wrote
-at the end of the fifteenth century, _i.e._ about one hundred and seventy
-years after its reputed occurrence. The absence of any reference to it in
-contemporary records caused doubt to be thrown upon it three centuries
-ago. Guillimann, the author of a work on Swiss antiquities, published in
-1598, calls it a fable, but subscribes to the current belief in it because
-the tale is so popular! The race to which he belonged is not yet extinct.
-A century and a half later a more fearless sceptic, who said that the
-story was of Danish origin, was condemned by the Canton of Uri to be burnt
-alive, and in the well-timed absence of the offender his book was ordered
-to be burnt by the common hangman. But the truth is great, and prevails.
-G. von Wyss, the Swiss historian, has pointed out that the name of Wilhelm
-Tell does not occur even once in the history of the three cantons, neither
-is there any trace that a Vogt named Gessler ever served the house of
-Hapsburg there. Moreover, the legend does not correspond to any fact of a
-period of oppression of the Swiss at the hands of their Austrian rulers.
-
-"There exist in contemporary records no instances of wanton outrage and
-insolence on the Hapsburg side. It was the object of that power to obtain
-political ascendancy, not to indulge its representatives in lust or wanton
-insult," and, where records of disputes between particular persons occur,
-"the symptoms of violence, as is natural enough, appear rather on the side
-of the Swiss than on that of the aggrandising Imperial house."[51]
-
-Candour, however, requires that the "evidence" in support of the legend
-should be stated. There is the fountain on the supposed site of the
-lime-tree in the market-place at Altdorf by which young Tell stood, as
-well as the colossal plaster statue of the hero himself which confronts us
-as we enter the quaint village. But more than this, the veritable
-cross-bow itself is preserved in the arsenal at Zurich!
-
-However, although the little Tell's chapel, as restored, was opened with
-a national _fete_, in the presence of two members of the Federal Council,
-in June 1883,[52] the Swiss now admit in their school-teaching that the
-story of the _Apfelschusz_ is legendary.
-
-Freudenberger, who earned his death-sentence for affirming that the story
-came from Denmark, was on the right track, for the following variant of it
-is given by Saxo Grammaticus, a Danish writer of the twelfth century, who
-puts it as happening in the year 950:--
-
- Nor ought what follows to be enveloped in silence. Palnatoki, for some
- time in the body-guard of King Harold (Harold Gormson, or Bluetooth),
- had made his bravery odious to many of his fellow-soldiers by the zeal
- with which he surpassed them. One day, when he had drunk too much, he
- boasted that he was so skilled a bowman that he could hit the smallest
- apple, set on the top of a stick some way off, at the first shot,
- which boast reached the ears of the king. This monarch's wickedness
- soon turned the confidence of the father to the peril of the son, for
- he commanded that this dearest pledge of his life should stand in
- place of the stick, adding a threat that if Palnatoki did not at his
- first shot strike off the apple, he should with his head pay the
- penalty of making an empty boast. This command forced him to attempt
- more than he had promised, and what he _had_ said, reported by
- slanderous tongues, bound him to accomplish what he had _not_ said.
- Yet did not his sterling courage, though caught in the snare of
- slander, suffer him to lay aside his firmness of heart. As soon as the
- boy was led forth Palnatoki warned him to await the speeding of the
- arrow with calm ears and unbent head, lest by any slight movement of
- the body he should frustrate the archer's well-tried skill. He then
- made him stand with his back towards him, lest he should be scared at
- the sight of the arrow. Then he drew three arrows from his quiver, and
- with the first that he fitted to the string he struck the apple. When
- the king asked him why he had taken more than one arrow from his
- quiver, when he was to be allowed to make but one trial with his bow,
- he made answer, "That I might avenge on thee the swerving of the first
- by the points of the others, lest perchance my innocence might have
- been punished, while your violence escaped scot-free."[53]
-
-Going farther northward we find tales corresponding in their main features
-to the above, in the Icelandic _Saga_, the Vilkina; in the Norse _Saga_ of
-Saint Olaf or Thidrik; and in the story of Harold, son of Sigurd. In the
-Olaf _Saga_ it is said that the saint or king, desiring the conversion of
-a brave heathen named Eindridi, competed with him in various athletic
-sports, swam with him, wrestled with him, and then shot with him. Olaf
-then dared Eindridi to strike a writing-tablet from off his son's head
-with an arrow, and bade two men bind the eyes of the child and hold the
-napkin so that the boy might not move when he heard the whizz of the
-arrow. Olaf aimed first, and the arrow grazed the lad's head. Eindridi
-then prepared to shoot, but the mother of the boy interfered and persuaded
-the king to abandon this dangerous test of skill. The story adds that had
-the boy been injured Eindridi would have revenged himself on the king.[54]
-
-Somewhat like this, as from the locality might be expected, is the Faroee
-Isles variant. King Harold challenges Geyti, son of Aslak, and, vexed at
-being beaten in a swimming match, bids Geyti shoot a hazel-nut from off
-his brother's head. He consents, and the king witnesses the feat, when
-Geyti
-
- "Shot the little nut away,
- Nor hurt the lad a hair."
-
-Next day Harold sends for the archer, and says:--
-
- "List thee, Geyti, Aslak's son,
- And truly tell to me,
- Wherefore hadst thou arrows twain
- In the wood yestreen with thee?"
-
-To which Geyti answers:--
-
- "Therefore had I arrows twain
- Yestreen in the wood with me,
- Had I but hurt my brother dear
- The other had pierced thee."
-
-With ourselves it is the burden of the ballad of William of Cloudeslee,
-where the brave archer says:--
-
- "I have a sonne seven years old;
- Hee is to me full deere;
- I will tye him to a stake--
- All shall see him that bee here--
- And lay an apple upon his head,
- And goe six paces him froe;
- And I myself with a broad arroe
- Shall cleave the apple in towe."
-
-In the _Malleus Maleficarum_ Puncher, a magician on the Upper Rhine, is
-required to shoot a coin from off a lad's head; while, travelling
-eastwards as far as Persia, we find the Tell myth as an incident in the
-poem _Mantic Ultrair_, a work of the twelfth century.
-
-Thus far the variants of the legend found among Aryan peoples have been
-summarised, and it is tempting to base upon this diffusion of a common
-incident a theory of its origin among the ancestors of the Swiss and the
-Norseman, the Persian and the Icelander. But it is found among non-Aryans
-also. The ethnologist, Castren, whose researches in Finland have secured a
-valuable mass of fast-perishing materials, obtained this tale in the
-village of Ultuwa. "A fight took place between some freebooters and the
-inhabitants of the village of Alajaerai. The robbers plundered every house,
-and carried off amongst their captives an old man. As they proceeded with
-their spoils along the strand of the lake a lad of twelve years old
-appeared from among the reeds on the opposite bank, armed with a bow and
-amply provided with arrows; he threatened to shoot down the captors unless
-the old man, his father, was restored to him. The robbers mockingly
-replied that the aged man would be given to him if he could shoot an apple
-off his head. The boy accepted the challenge, pierced the apple and freed
-his father." Among a people in close contact with an Aryan race as the
-Finns are in contact with both Swedes and Russians, the main incident of
-the Tell story may easily have been woven into their native tales. But in
-reference to other non-Aryan races Sir George Dasent, who has treated of
-the diffusion of the Tell story very fully in the Introduction to his
-_Popular Tales from the Norse_ (a reprint of which would be a boon to
-students of folk-lore), says that it is common to the Turks and
-Mongolians, and a legend of the wild Samoyedes, who never heard of Tell or
-saw a book in their lives, relates it, chapter and verse, of one of their
-marksmen. What shall we say, then, but that the story of this bold
-mastershot was prominent amongst many tribes and races, and that it only
-crystallised itself round the great name of Tell by that process of
-attraction which invariably leads a grateful people to throw such mythic
-wreaths, such garlands of bold deeds of precious memory, around the brow
-of its darling champion. Of course the solar mythologists see in Tell the
-sun or cloud deity; in his bow the storm-cloud or the iris; and in his
-arrows the sun-rays or lightning darts.
-
-This is a question which we may leave to the champions concerned to
-settle. Apart from the evidence of the survival of legend in history, and
-the lesson of caution in accepting any ancient record as gospel which we
-should learn therefrom, it is the human element in the venerable tale
-which interests us most.
-
-Remote in time, far away in place, as is its origin, it moves us yet. The
-ennobling qualities incarnated in some hero (whether he be real or ideal
-matters not) meet with admiring response in the primitive listeners to the
-story, else it would have been speedily forgotten. Thus does it retain for
-us witness to the underlying oneness of the human heart beneath all
-surface differences.
-
-Widespread as a myth may be, it takes depth of root according to the more
-or less congenial soil where it is dropped. That about Tell found
-favourable home in the uplands and the free air of Switzerland; with us S.
-George, falling on times of chivalry, had abiding place, as also, less
-rugged of type than the Swiss marksman, had Arthur, the "Blameless King,"
-who, if he ever existed, is smothered in overgrowth of legends both native
-and imported.
-
-For such cycle of tales as gathered round the name of Arthur, and on which
-our youthhood was nourished, is as mythical as the wolf that suckled
-Romulus and Remus. Modern criticism and research have thoroughly sifted
-the legendary from the true, and if the past remains vague and shadowy, we
-at least know how far the horizon of certainty extends. The criticism has
-made short work of the romancing chronicles which so long did duty for
-sober history, and has shown that no accurate knowledge of the sequence of
-events is obtainable until late in the period of the English invasions.
-Save in scattered hints here and there, we are quite in the dark as to the
-condition of this island during the Roman occupation, whilst for anything
-that is known of times prior to this, called for convenience
-"pre-historic," we are dependent upon unwritten records preserved in tombs
-and mounds. The information gathered from these has given us some clue to
-what manner of men they were who confronted the first Aryan immigrants,
-and, enriched by researches of the ethnologist and philologist, enabled us
-to trace the movements of races westwards, until we find old and new
-commingled as one English-speaking folk.
-
-All or any of which could not be known to the earlier chroniclers. When
-Geoffry of Monmouth set forth the glory and renown of Arthur and his Court
-he recorded and embellished traditions six hundred years old, without
-thought of weighing the evidence or questioning the credibility of the
-transmitters. Whether there was a king of that name who ruled over the
-Silures, and around whom the remnant of brave Kelts rallied in their final
-struggle against the invading hordes, and who, wounded in battle, died at
-Glastonbury, and was buried, or rather sleeps, as the legend has it, in
-the Vale of Avilion, "hath been," as Milton says, "doubted heretofore, and
-may again, with good reason, for the Monk of Malmesbury and others, whose
-credit hath swayed most with the learned sort, we may well perceive to
-have known no more of this Arthur nor of his doings than we now
-living."[55]
-
-In the group of legends both of the Old and New World, which, the solar
-theorists tell us, symbolise the long sleep of winter before the sweet
-awakening of the spring, Arthur of course has place. "Men said he was not
-dead, but by the will of our Lord Jesus Christ was in another place, and
-men say that he will come again ... that there is written on his tomb this
-verse:
-
- 'Hic jacet Arthurus rex quondam, Rexque futurus.'"
-
-So Charlemagne reposes beneath the Untersberg, waiting for the appointed
-time to rise and do battle with anti-Christ; Tell slumbers ready-panoplied
-to save Switzerland when danger threatens; the hero-deity of the
-Algonquins, when he left the earth, promised to return, but has not,
-wherefore he is called Glooskap, or the Liar; St. John sleeps at Ephesus
-till the last days are at hand; and the Church militant awaits the return
-of her Lord at the Second Advent.
-
-The comparative mythologists say that Arthur is a myth, pure and simple, a
-variant of Sigurd and Perseus; the winning of his famous sword but a
-repetition of the story of the Teutonic and Greek heroes; the gift of
-Guinevere as fatal to him as Helen to Menelaus; his knights but
-reproductions of the Achaian hosts--much of which may be true; but the
-romance corresponded to some probable event; it fitted in with the
-national traditions. There were struggles between the Kelts and subsequent
-invaders--Romans, Angles, Saxons, Jutes. There were brave chieftains who
-led forlorn hopes or fought to the death in their fastnesses. There were,
-in the numerous tribal divisions, petty kings and queens ruling over mimic
-courts, with retinues of knights bent on chivalrous, unselfish service.
-These were the nuclei of stories which were the early annals of the tribe,
-the glad theme of bards and minstrels, and from which a long line of poets
-to the latest singer of the _Idylls of the King_ have drawn the materials
-of their epics. The fascination which such a cycle of tales had for the
-people, especially in days when the ballad was history and poetry and all
-literature rolled into one, was so strong, that the Church wisely imported
-an element which gave loftier meaning to the knightly life, and infused
-religious ardour into the camp and court. To the stories of Tristram and
-Gawayne, already woven into the old romance, she added the half-Christian,
-half-pagan, legend of the knights who left the feast at the Round Table to
-travel across land and sea that they might free the enslaved, remove the
-spell from the enchanted, and deliver fair women from the monsters of
-tyranny and lust, setting forth on what in her eyes was a nobler quest--to
-seek and look upon the San Graal, or Holy Vessel used by Jesus at the Last
-Supper, and into which Joseph of Arimathea collected the blood and water
-that streamed from the side of the crucified Jesus. This mystic cup, in
-which we have probably a sacrificial relic of the old British religion
-imported into the Christian incident with which it blended so well,
-floated, according to Arthurian legend, suddenly into the presence of the
-King and his Round Table knights at Camelot as they sat at supper, and was
-as suddenly borne away, to be henceforth the coveted object of knightly
-endeavour. Only the baptized could hope to behold it; to the unchaste it
-was veiled: hence only they among the knights who were pure in heart and
-life vowed to go in quest of the San Graal, and return not until they had
-seen it. So to Sir Galahad, the "just and faithful," Tennyson sings how
-the sacred cup appeared--
-
- "Sometimes on lonely mountain meres
- I find a magic bark;
- I leap on board: no helmsman steers:
- I float till all is dark.
- A gentle sound, an awful light!
- Three angels bear the holy Grail:
- With folded feet, in stoles of white,
- On sleeping wings they sail.
- Ah, blessed vision! blood of God!
- My spirit beats her mortal bars,
- As down dark tides the glory slides,
- And, star-like, mingles with the stars."
-
-Whilst in such legends as the Arthurian group the grain of truth, if it
-exists, is so embedded as to be out of reach, there are others concerning
-actual personages, notably Cyrus and Charlemagne, not to quote other names
-from both "profane" and sacred history, in which the fable can be
-separated from the fact without difficulty. Enough is known of the life
-and times of such men to detach the certain from the doubtful, as, _e.g._,
-when Charlemagne is spoken of as a Frenchman and as a Crusader before
-there was a French nation, or the idea of Crusades had entered the heads
-of most Christian kings; and as in the legends of the infancy of Cyrus,
-which are of a type related to like legends of the wonderful round the
-early years of the famous.
-
-This, however, by the way. Leaving illustration of the fabulous in heroic
-story, it will be interesting to trace it through such a tale of pathos
-and domestic life as the well-known one of Llewellyn and his faithful
-hound, Gellert.
-
-Whose emotions have not been stirred by the story of Llewellyn the Great
-going out hunting, and missing his favourite dog; of his return, to be
-greeted by the creature with more than usual pleasure in his eye, but with
-jaws besmeared with blood; of the anxiety with which Llewellyn rushed into
-the house, to find the cradle where had lain his beautiful boy upset, and
-the ground around it soaked with blood; of his thereupon killing the dog,
-and then seeing the child lying unharmed beneath the cradle, and sleeping
-by the side of a dead wolf, from whose ravenous maw the faithful Gellert
-had delivered it? Most of us, in our visits to North Wales, have stood by
-Gellert's grave at Beddgelert, little suspecting that the affecting story
-occurs in the folk-lore of nearly every Aryan people, and of several
-non-Aryan races, as the Egyptians and Chinese.
-
-Probably it comes to us as many other tales have come, through collections
-like the well-known _Gesta Romanorum_, compiled by mediaeval monks for
-popular entertainment. In the version given in that book the knight who
-corresponds to Llewellyn, after slaying his dog, discovers that it had
-saved his child from a serpent, and thereupon breaks his sword and departs
-on a pilgrimage to the Holy Land. But the monks were no inventors of such
-tales; they recorded those that came to them through the pilgrims,
-students, traders, and warriors who travelled from west to east and from
-east to west in the Middle Ages, and it is in the native home of fable and
-imagery the storied Orient, that we must seek for the earliest forms of
-the Gellert legend. In the _Panchatantra_, the oldest and most celebrated
-Sanskrit fable-book, the story takes this form:--An infirm child is left
-by its mother while she goes to fetch water, and she charges the father,
-who is a Brahman, to watch over it. But he leaves the house to collect
-alms, and soon after this a snake crawls towards the child. In the house
-was an ichneumon, a creature often cherished as a house pet, who sprang at
-the snake and throttled it. When the mother came back, the ichneumon went
-gladly to meet her, his jaws and face smeared with the snake's blood. The
-horrified mother, thinking it had killed her child, threw her water-jar at
-it, and killed it; then seeing the child safe beside the mangled body of
-the snake, she beat her breast and face with grief, and scolded her
-husband for leaving the house.
-
-We find the same story, with the slight difference that the animal is an
-otter, in a later Sanskrit collection, the _Hitopadesa_, but we can track
-it to that fertile source of classic and mediaeval fable, the Buddhist
-_Jatakas_, or _Birth Stories_, a very ancient collection of fables, which,
-professing to have been told by the Buddha, narrates his exploits in the
-550 births through which he passed before attaining Buddhahood. In the
-_Vinaya Pitaka_ of the Chinese Buddhist collection, which, according to
-Mr. Beal, dates from the fifth century A.D., and is translated from
-original scriptures supposed to have existed near the time of Asoka's
-council in the third century B.C., we have the earliest extant form of
-the tale. That in the _Panchatantra_ is obviously borrowed from it, the
-differences being in unimportant detail, as, for example, the nakula, or
-mongoose, is killed by the Brahman on his return home, the wife having
-neglected to take the child with her as bidden by him. He is filled with
-sorrow, and then a Deva continues the strain:--
-
- "Let there be due thought and consideration,
- Give not way to hasty impulse,
- By forgetting the claims of true friendship
- You may heedlessly injure a kind heart (person)
- As the Brahman killed the nakula."
-
-The several versions of the story which could be cited from German,
-Russian, Persian, and other Aryan folk-lore, would merely present certain
-variations due to local colouring and to the inventiveness of the
-narrators or transcribers; and, omitting these, it will suffice to give
-the Egyptian variant or corresponding form, in which the tragical has
-given place to the amusing, save, perhaps, in the opinion of the Wali.
-This luckless person "once smashed a pot full of herbs which a cook had
-prepared. The exasperated cook thrashed the well-intentioned but
-unfortunate Wali within an inch of his life, and when he returned,
-exhausted with his efforts at belabouring the man, he discovered among the
-herbs a poisonous snake."
-
-In pointing to the venerable Buddhist _Birth Stories_ as the earliest
-extant source of Aryan fables, it should be added that these were with the
-Buddha and his disciples the favourite vehicle of carrying to the hearts
-of men those lessons of gentleness and tenderness towards all living
-things which are a distinctive feature of that non-persecuting religion.
-
-
-Sec. VIII.
-
-MYTH AMONG THE HEBREWS.
-
-With the important exception of reference to the change effected in the
-Jewish doctrine of spirits, and its resulting influence on Christian
-theology, by the transformation of the mythical Ahriman of the old Persian
-religion into the archfiend Satan, but slight allusion has been made in
-these pages to the myths and legends of the Semitic race. Under this term,
-borrowed from the current belief in their descent from Shem, are included
-extant and extinct people, the Assyrians, Chaldeans or Babylonians,
-Phoenicians, Arabs, Syrians, Jews, and Ethiopians.
-
-The mythology of the Aryan nations has had the advantage of the most
-scholarly criticism, and the light which this has thrown upon the racial
-connection of peoples between whom all superficial likeness had long
-disappeared, as well as upon the early condition of their common
-ancestors, is of the greatest value as aid to our knowledge of the mode of
-man's intellectual and spiritual growth. And the comparisons made between
-the older and cruder forms underlying the elaborated myth and the myths of
-semi-barbarous races have supported conclusions concerning man's
-primitive state identical with those deduced from the material relics of
-the Ancient and Newer Stone Ages, namely, that the savage races of to-day
-represent not a degradation to which man has sunk, but a condition out of
-which all races above the savage have, through much tribulation, emerged.
-An important exception to this has, however, been claimed on behalf of at
-least one branch of the Semitic race--namely, the Hebrews or Jews. This
-claim has rested on their assumed selection by the Deity for a definite
-purpose in the ordering and directing of human affairs; but no assumption
-of supernatural origin can screen the documents of disputed authorship and
-uncertain meaning on which that claim is based from the investigation
-applied to all ancient records; nor can the materials elude dissection
-because hitherto regarded as organic parts of revelation. The real
-difficulties are in the structure of the language and in the scantiness of
-the material as contrasted with the flexile and copious mythology of the
-Aryan race. And the investigation has been in some degree checked by the
-mistaken dicta of authorities such as M. Renan and the late Baron Bunsen;
-the former contending that "the Semites never had a mythology," and the
-latter (although any statement of his carries far less weight) that "it is
-the grand, momentous, and fortunate self-denial of Judaism to possess
-none."
-
-But, independently of the refusal of the student of history to admit that
-exceptional place has been accorded of direct Divine purpose to any
-particular race, the discoveries of literatures much older than the
-Hebrew, and in which legends akin to those in the earlier books of the Old
-Testament are found, together with the proofs of historical connection
-between the peoples having these common legends, have given the refutation
-to the distinctive character of the Semitic race claimed by M. Renan. That
-a people dwelling for centuries, as the Hebrews did, in a land which was
-the common highway between the great nations of antiquity; a people
-subject to vicissitudes bringing them, as the pipkin between iron pots,
-into collision and subject relations to Egyptians, Persians, and other
-powerful folk, should remain uninfluenced in their intellectual
-speculations and religious beliefs, would indeed be a greater miracle than
-that which makes their literature inspired in every word and vowel-point.
-The remarkable collection of cuneiform inscriptions (so called from their
-wedge-like shape: Latin, _cuneus_, a wedge) on the baked clay cylinders
-and tablets of the vast libraries of Babylon and Nineveh, has brought out
-one striking fact, namely, that the Semitic civilisation, venerable as
-that is, was the product of, or at least, greatly influenced by, the
-culture of a non-Semitic people called the Akkadians, from a word meaning
-"highlanders." These more ancient dwellers in the Euphrates valley and
-uplands were not only non-Semitic but non-Aryan, and probably racially
-connected with the complex group of peoples embracing the
-Tatar-Mongolians, the distinguishing features of whose religion are
-Shamanistic, with belief in magic in its manifold forms. "In Babylonia,
-under the non-Semitic Akkadian rule, the dominant creed was the fetish
-worship, with all its ritual of magic and witchcraft; and when the Semites
-conquered the country, the old learning of the land became the property of
-the priests and astrologers, and the Akkadian language the Latin of the
-Empire."[56]
-
-It was during the memorable period of the Exile that the historical
-records of the Jews underwent revision, and from that time dates the
-incorporation into them of legends and traditions which, invested with a
-purity and majesty distinctively Hebrew, were borrowed from the
-Babylonians, although primarily Akkadian. They are here, as elsewhere, the
-product of the childhood of the race, when it speculates and invents,
-framing its theory of the beginnings, their when and how; when it prattles
-of the Golden Age, which seems to lie behind, in the fond and not extinct
-delusion that "the old is better;" when it frames its fairy tales, weird
-or winsome, in explanation of the uncommon, the unknown, and the
-bewildering.
-
-The Babylonian origin of the early biblical stories is now generally
-admitted, although the dogmas based upon certain of them still retard the
-acceptance of this result of modern inquiry in some quarters. That
-reluctance is suggestively illustrated in Dr. Wm. Smith's _Dictionary of
-the Bible_, where, turning to the heading "Deluge," the reader is referred
-to "Flood" and thence to "Noah!"
-
-So much for the legendary; but the analysis of the more strictly mythical,
-the names of culture-ancestors and heroes, sons of Anak and of God,
-scattered over the Pentateuch, is not so easy a matter. The most important
-work in this direction has been attempted by Dr. Goldziher,[57] but even
-his scholarship has failed to convince sympathetic readers that Abraham
-and Isaac are sun-myths, and that the twelve sons of Jacob are the
-zodiacal signs! Under the Professor's etymological solvent the personality
-of the patriarchs disappears, and the charming idylls and pastorals of old
-Eastern life become but phases of the sun and the weather. The Hebrew,
-like the Aryan myth-maker, speaks of the relations of day and night, of
-gray morning and sunrise, of red sunset and the darkness of night, as of
-love and union, or strife and pursuit, or gloomy desire and coy evasion.
-Abh-ram is the High or Heaven-Father (from _ram_, "to be high") with his
-numberless host of descendants. Yis-chak, commonly called Isaac, denotes
-"he who laughs," and so the Laughing one, whom the High Father intends to
-slay, is the smiling day or the smiling sunset, which gets the worst of
-the contest with the night sky, and disappears. Sarah signifies princess,
-or the moon, the queen who rules over the great army glittering amidst the
-darkness. The expulsion of Hagar (derived from a root _hajara_, meaning
-"to fly," and yielding the word hijra or "flight," whence the Mohammadan
-Hegira) is the Semitic variant of that inexhaustible theme of all
-mythology, the battle of Day and Night; Hagar flying before the inconstant
-sun and the jealous moon. And so on through the whole range of leading
-characters in Hebrew history; Cain and Abel, in which Dr. Goldziher, to
-whom they are the sun and dark sky, overlooks the more likely explanation
-of the story as a quarrel between nomads and tillers of the soil;
-Jephthah, in which the sun-god kills at mid-day the dawn, his own
-offspring; Samson, or more correctly Shimshon, from the Hebrew word for
-sun, the incidents of whose life, as expounded by Professor Steinthal,[58]
-are more clearly typical of the labours of the sun; Jonah and the fish, a
-story long ago connected with the myth of Herakles and Hesione; "as on
-occasion of the storm the dragon or serpent swallows the sun, so when he
-sets he is swallowed by a mighty fish, waiting for him at the bottom of
-the sea. Then when he appears again on the horizon, he is spat out on the
-shore by the sea-monster."[59]
-
-These bare references must suffice to show that there is in Hebrew
-literature a large body of material which must undergo the sifting and the
-criticism already applied with success to Indo-European and non-Aryan
-myth. This done, the Semitic race will contribute its share of evidence in
-support of those conditions under which it has been the main purpose of
-this book to show that myth has its birth and growth.
-
-
-Sec. IX.
-
-CONCLUSION.
-
-The multitude of subjects traversed in the foregoing sections has
-compelled presentment in so concise a form that any attempt to gather into
-a few sentences the sum of things said would be as a digest of a digest,
-and it is, therefore, better to briefly emphasise the conclusions to which
-the gathered evidence points. It was remarked at the outset, when
-insisting on the serious meaning which lies at the heart of myths, that
-they have their origin in the endeavour of barbaric man to explain his
-surroundings. The mass of fact brought together illustrates and confirms
-this view, and has thereby tended to raise what was once looked upon as
-fantastic, curious, and lawless, to the level of a subject demanding sober
-treatment and examination on strictly scientific methods.
-
-Archbishop Trench, in his _Study of Words_, quotes Emerson's happy
-characterisation of language as fossil poetry and fossil history: "Just as
-in some fossil, curious and beautiful shapes of vegetable or animal life,
-the graceful fern, or the finely-vertebrated lizard, such as have been
-extinct for thousands of years, are permanently bound up with the stone,
-so in words are beautiful thoughts and images, the imagination and the
-feeling of past ages, of men long since in their graves, of men whose very
-names have perished, preserved and made safe for ever." In like manner we
-may speak of myths as fossil ethics and fossil theology, but, with more
-appositeness, as embryonic ethics and theology, since they contain
-potentially all the philosophies and theologies "that man did ever find."
-
-And to the student of the history of humanity who rejoices in the sure
-foundation on which, tested in manifold ways, the convictions of the
-highest and noblest of the race rest, the value of myth is increased in
-its being a natural outgrowth of the mind when, having advanced to the
-point at which curiosity concerning the causes of surrounding things
-arises, it frames its crude explanations. For not that which man claims to
-have received as a message from the gods, as a revelation from heaven, but
-that which he has learned by experience often painful and bitter, and
-which succeeding generations have either verified or improved upon, or
-disproved altogether, is, in the long run, of any worth. Through it alone,
-as we follow the changes wrought in the process from guess to certainty,
-can we determine what was the intellectual stage of man in his mental
-infancy, and how far it finds correspondences in the intellectual stage of
-existing barbaric races.
-
-Thus, the study of myth is nothing less than the study of the mental and
-spiritual history of mankind. It is a branch of that larger, vaster
-science of evolution which so occupies our thoughts to-day, and with it
-the philosopher and the theologian must reckon. The evidence which it
-brings from the living and dead mythologies of every race is in accord
-with that furnished by their more tangible relics, that the history of
-mankind is a history of slow but sure advance from a lower to a higher; of
-ascent, although with oft backslidings. It confirms a momentous canon of
-modern science, that the laws of evolution in the spiritual world are as
-determinable as they are in the physical. To this we, for the enrichment
-of our life and helpful service of our kind, do well to give heed.
-Wherever we now turn eye or ear the unity of things is manifest, and their
-unbroken harmony heard. With the theory of evolution in our hands as the
-master-key, the immense array of facts that seemed to lie unrelated and
-discrete are seen to be interrelated and in necessary dependence--"a
-mighty sum of things for ever speaking." That undisturbed relation of
-cause and effect which science has revealed and confirmed extends
-backwards as well as reaches forwards; its continuity involves the
-inclusion of man as a part of nature, and the study of his development as
-one in which both the biologist and the mythologist engage towards a
-common end.
-
-
-
-
-II.
-
-DREAMS: THEIR PLACE IN THE GROWTH OF BELIEFS IN THE SUPERNATURAL.
-
-
-"The physical world is made up of atoms and ether, and there is no room
-for ghosts."
-
-W. K. CLIFFORD.
-
-
-"If ghos'es want me to believe in 'em, let 'em leave off skulking i' the
-dark and i' lone places--let 'em come where there's company and candles."
-
-GEORGE ELIOT.
-
-
-DREAMS: THEIR PLACE IN THE GROWTH OF BELIEFS IN THE SUPERNATURAL.
-
-
-Sec. I.
-
-DIFFERENCE BETWEEN SAVAGE AND CIVILISED MAN.
-
-The evidence as to pre-historic man's material furniture and surroundings,
-which was first gathered from and restricted to ancient river valleys and
-bone caverns of Great Britain, France, and Belgium, is no longer isolated.
-It is supported by evidence which has been collected from every part of
-the globe inhabited in past or present times, and its uniform character
-has enabled us to determine what lies beyond an horizon which within the
-last half century was bounded by the hazy line of myth and tradition. So
-rigid seemed the limit defining man's knowledge of his past that some
-forty years ago even the Geological Society of London recorded with barest
-reference the unearthing of relics witnessing to his presence in Britain
-hundreds of thousands of years ago. The canon was closed, and no one
-ventured to add to the sayings of the book. But the discoveries which had
-disproved belief in the earth's supremacy in the universe, and in its
-creation in six days, led the way to researches into the history of the
-life upon its surface, and especially of that which, in the language of
-ancient writ, was "made in the image of God." When the long-forbidding
-line, imaginary as the equator and lacking its convenience, was crossed,
-there was found the evidence of the conditions under which man emerged
-from a state quite other than that which had formed the burden of legends
-sacred with the hoariness of time. Those conditions, it is well-nigh
-needless to remind the reader, accord with that theory which holds man to
-be no specially-created being, started on this earth, fully equipped,
-Minerva-like, with all ripeness of wisdom and loftiness of soul, but the
-last and long result of an ever-ascending series of organisms ranging from
-the lowest, shapeless, nerveless specks to _homo sapiens_, "the foremost
-in the files of time." Evolution is advance from the simple to the
-complex. The most primitive forms reach maturity in a shorter time than
-the higher forms, and fulfil their purpose quicker, and this doctrine
-applies not only in relation to man and the inferior creatures, but as
-between the several races of man himself. Herein the differences, which
-are determined by size, still more by increase in complexity, of
-brain-stuff, are greater than between the lowest man and the highest
-animals--that is to say, the savage and civilised man are farther apart
-than the savage and the anthropoid ape. The cranial capacity of the
-modern Englishman surpasses that of the non-Aryan inhabitant of India by a
-difference of sixty-eight cubic inches, while between this non-Aryan skull
-and the skull of the gorilla the difference in capacity is but eleven
-inches,[60] and if we were to take into account the differences in
-structural complexity, as indicated by the creasing and furrowing of the
-brain surface, the contrast would be still more striking.
-
-The brains of the earliest known races, the men of the Ancient Stone Age,
-ape-like savages who fought with woolly-haired elephants, cave-lions, and
-cave-bears, amidst the forests and on the slopes of the valleys and hills
-where London now stands, and who in the dawn of human intelligence,
-applying means to ends, came off victorious, were doubtless much nearer to
-the chimpanzee with his thirty-five cubic inches than to the Papuan with
-his fifty-five cubic inches. Indeed, we need not travel beyond this age
-or island; it suffices to compare the brain quality of the rustic,
-thinking of "maistly nowt," with that of the highest minds amongst us, as
-evidence of the enormous diversity between wild and cultivated stocks of
-mankind.
-
-Unless we are so enchained to fond delusions as to place man in a kingdom
-by himself, and deny in the sympathetic, moral, and intellectual faculties
-in brutes the germs of those capacities which, existing in a pre-human
-ancestry, have flowered in the noblest and wisest of our race, we may find
-in such differences as are shown to occur between civilised and primitive
-man further evidence of the enormous time since the latter appeared. For
-unnumbered ages man--then physically hardly distinguishable from apes--may
-have remained stationary. Certainly the relics from the Drift show no
-advance: given no change in the conditions, the species do not vary, and
-man, once adapted to his surroundings, changed only as these changed. But,
-obscure as are the causes, there came a period when conditions arose
-inducing some variation, no matter how slight, in brain development, which
-was of more need than any variation in the rest of the body, and when an
-impetus was given which, leaving the latter but slightly affected,
-quickened the former, so that man passed from the highest animality to the
-lowest humanity. Slowly, in the course of a struggle not yet ended, "the
-ape and tiger" were subdued within him, and those social conditions
-induced to which are due that progress which ever draws him nearer to the
-angels.
-
-The discussion of this in detail lies outside the limits of these pages.
-Here, after briefly noting on what lines it must run, we are concerned
-with man at that far later stage in his development when the physical and
-material evidence respecting his bodily development gives place to the
-psychical and immaterial evidence respecting his mental development.
-Chipped flints, flakes, and scrapers of the Drift are indispensable
-witnesses to his primitive state, but during the long ages that he was
-making shift with them he remains within the boundaries of the zoological;
-he is more geological than human. Gleams of the soul within that will one
-day be responsive to grace of form and harmony of colour appear in the
-rude portraits of mammoth, reindeer, urus, whale, and man himself,
-scratched on ivory and horn. Indications of germinal ideas about an
-after-life are present in the contents of tumuli with the skeletons in
-defined positions, and with weapons presumably for the use of the departed
-in the happy hunting-grounds. In these last we are nearing the historic
-period, for a vast interval exists between the tomb-building races and the
-men of the Reindeer Period, yet even then the ages are many before man had
-so advanced as to bequeath the intangible relics of his thought,
-disclosing what answer he had beat out for himself to the riddle of the
-earth and the mysteries of life and death. Although the story of his
-intellectual and spiritual development is a broken one, of the earlier
-chapters of which we have no record, enough survives to induce and
-strengthen the conviction that in this, as in aught else, there is no
-real disconnection. In the shaping of the rudest pointed flint-tool and
-weapon there are the germs of the highest mechanical art; in the
-discordant war-whoop of the savage the latent strains of the
-"Marseillaise," as, quoting Tennyson, in the eggs of the nightingale
-sleeps the music of the moon. If we cannot get so near to the elemental
-forms of thought as we could wish, we must lay hold of the lowest extant,
-and trace in these the connection to be sought between the barbaric and
-civilised mind. We must have understanding of the mental condition of
-races, still on low levels of culture, and if the result is to show that
-many highly-elaborated beliefs among advanced peoples are but barbaric
-philosophies "writ large," the conception of an underlying unity between
-all nations of men that do dwell, or have dwelt, on the face of the earth,
-will receive additional proof.
-
-
-Sec. II.
-
-LIMITATIONS OF BARBARIC LANGUAGE.
-
-Illustrations of the low intellectual stage of some extant races not quite
-at the bottom of the scale, drawn from simple matters, will make clearer
-how they will interpret matters of a more complex order, and interpret
-them only in one way.
-
-Of the beginning of thought we can know nothing. For numberless ages man
-was marked out from the animals most nearly allied to him by that power
-of more readily adapting means to ends which gave him mastery over nature.
-Through that dim and dateless time he thought without knowing that he
-thought. "His senses made him conversant only with things externally
-existing and with his own body, and he transcended his senses only far
-enough to draw concrete inferences respecting the action of these
-things."[61] He is human only when the thought reaches us through
-articulate speech. Language, as a means of communication between him and
-his fellows, denotes the existence of the social state, the play of the
-social evolution which gives the impetus to ideas. Language is the outcome
-of man's social needs and nature; he speaks not so much because he thinks
-and feels as because he must perforce tell his thoughts and feelings to
-others. And by the richness or poverty of his speech we may assess the
-richness or poverty of his ideas, since language cannot transcend the
-thought of which it is the vehicle.
-
-By what tones and gestures, by what signs and grimaces, the beginnings of
-speech were made, we know not. Countless processions of races appeared and
-vanished before language had reached a stage when the elements of which
-words are built up could be separated, and the reason which governed the
-choice of this and that sound or symbol discovered. Now and again, when a
-correspondence is found between the roots of terms in use amongst the
-higher races and the names given by lower races to the same thing, we get
-nearer primitive thought, the correspondence being not always in sound or
-spelling, which may be delusive, but in physical or sensible meaning. It
-would be a wholesome corrective of theories concerning the origin of
-languages to which many are yet wedded to show that terms not only for
-things material and concrete, but also for things immaterial and abstract,
-are of purely physical origin, _i.e._ have been chosen from their analogy
-to something real. But the consideration of such matters lies outside the
-purpose of this work.
-
-Language proves the limited range of ideas among barbaric peoples in the
-absence of their capacity to generalise. They have a word for every
-familiar thing, sound, and colour, but no word for animal, plant, sound,
-or colour as abstract terms. It is the concrete, the special shape and
-feature and action of a thing, which strike the senses at the outset; to
-strip it of these accidents, as we call them, and merge it in the general,
-and realise its relation to what is common to the class to which it
-belongs, is an effort of which the untutored mind is incapable. Many of
-the northern non-Aryan tribes, as among the Mongols, have names for the
-smallest rivulet, but no word for river; names for each finger, but no
-word for finger. The Society Islanders have a separate name for the tails
-of various animals, but no name for tail. The Mohicans have verbs for
-every kind of cutting, but no verb "to cut." The Australians and other
-southern aborigines have no generic term for tree, neither have the
-Malays, yet they have words for the several parts, the root, stem, twig,
-etc. When the Tasmanians wished to express qualities of things, as hard,
-soft, warm, long, round, they would say for hard, "like a stone"; for
-tall, "long legs"; for round, "like the moon," and so on. Certain
-hill-tribes of India give names to sunshine, candle, and flames of fire,
-but "light" is a high abstraction which they are unable to grasp. Some of
-the Red Race languages have separate verbs for "I wish to eat meat," or "I
-wish to eat soup," but no verb for "I wish." Of course, the verb "to be,"
-which, as Adam Smith remarked long ago, is the most abstract and
-metaphysical of all words, and therefore of no early coinage, is absent
-from a large number of barbaric languages. Abstract though it be, it is,
-as Professor Whitney points out, made up of the relics of several verbs
-which once had, like all elements and parts of speech, a distinct physical
-meaning. As in "be" and "been" the idea of "growing" is contained, so in
-"am," "art," "is," and "are," the idea of "sitting" (or, as some think, of
-"breathing") is embodied. As an example of its absence, the Abipones
-cannot say "I am an Abipone," only "I Abipone." Turning to another class
-of illustration, we have proof what a far cry it is from the savage to the
-Senior Wrangler in the powerlessness of the former to count beyond his
-fingers; indeed, he cannot always count as far as that, any number beyond
-two bewildering him. One of the best stories to the point is given in Mr.
-Galton's _Tropical South Africa_.
-
-"When the Dammaras wish to express four they take to their fingers, which
-are to them as formidable instruments of calculation as a sliding rule is
-to an English schoolboy. They puzzle very much after five, because no
-spare hand remains to grasp and secure the fingers that are required for
-units. Yet they seldom lose oxen; the way in which they discover the loss
-of one is not by the number of the herd being diminished, but by the
-absence of a face they know. When bartering is going on, each sheep must
-be paid for separately. Thus, suppose two sticks of tobacco to be the rate
-of exchange for one sheep, it would sorely puzzle a Dammara to take two
-sheep and give him four sticks. I have done so, and seen a man put two of
-the sticks apart, and take a sight over them at one of the sheep he was
-about to sell. Having satisfied himself that that one was honestly paid
-for, and finding to his surprise that exactly two sticks remained in hand
-to settle the account for the other sheep, he would be afflicted with
-doubts; the transaction seemed to come out too "pat" to be correct, and he
-would refer back to the first couple of sticks; and then his mind got hazy
-and confused, and wandered from one sheep to the other, and he broke off
-the transaction until two sticks were put into his hand and one sheep
-driven away, and then the other two sticks given him and the second sheep
-driven away. Once while I watched a Dammara floundering hopelessly in a
-calculation on one side of me, I observed Dinah, my spaniel, equally
-embarrassed on the other. She was overlooking half a dozen of her new-born
-puppies, which had been removed two or three times from her, and her
-anxiety was excessive, as she tried to find out if they were all present,
-or if any were still missing. She kept puzzling and running her eyes over
-them, backwards and forwards, but could not satisfy herself. She evidently
-had a vague notion of counting, but the figure was too large for her
-brain. Taking the two as they stood, dog and Dammara, the comparison
-reflected no great honour on the man."
-
-Dr. Rae says that if an Eskimo is asked the number of his children he is
-generally puzzled. After counting some time on his fingers he will
-probably consult his wife, and the two often differ, even though they may
-not have more than four or five in family. Of the languages of the
-Australian savages, who are the lowest extant, examined by Mr. Crawfurd,
-thirty were found to have no number beyond four, all beyond this being
-spoken of as "many," whilst the Brazilian Indians got confused in trying
-to reckon beyond three. The list of such cases might be largely extended,
-and although exceptions occur where savages are found with a fairly wide
-range of numbers, notably where barter prevails, the larger proportion of
-uncivilised people are bewildered at any effort to count beyond three or
-five. The fingers have, in most cases, determined the limits, for men
-counted on these before they gave words to the numbers, the words being at
-last borrowed from the fingers, as in our "five," which is cognate with
-the Greek "pente," and the Persian "pendji" (said to be derived from the
-word for "hand"), and "digits," from Latin "digitus," a finger. This
-limited power of numeration thus shown to be possessed by the savage
-justifies the statement that he is nearer to the ape than to the average
-civilised man, nearer, as the extract from Mr. Galton shows, to the
-spaniel than to the mathematician. What conception of the succession of
-time, still less of it as a confluence of the eternities, can he have
-whose feeble brain cannot grasp a to-morrow! And yet the difference is not
-one of kind, but of degree, which separates the aborigines of Victoria or
-Papua from the astronomer who is led by certain irregularities in the
-motion of a planet to calculate the position of the disturbing cause, and
-thereby to discover it nearly a thousand million miles beyond in the
-planet Neptune.
-
-
-Sec. III.
-
-BARBARIC CONFUSION BETWEEN NAMES AND THINGS.
-
-Races which have names for different kinds of oaks, but none for an oak,
-still less for a tree, and who cannot count beyond their fingers, may be
-expected to have hazy notions concerning the objective and subjective; or,
-to put these in terms less technical, concerning that which belongs to the
-object of thought, and that which is to be referred to the thinking
-subject. Although primitive religion and philosophy are too nearly allied
-to admit of sharp definitions, the former may be said, if the slang is
-allowed, to be one of funk, and the latter one of fog. There are those
-amongst us who say that the terrorism which lies at the base of the one
-and the mist which is an element of the other, linger yet in extant belief
-and metaphysics. What man cannot understand he fears; and in all primary
-beliefs the powers around which seem to him so wayward are baleful, to be
-appeased by sacrifice or foiled by sorcery. And the confusion which reigns
-in his cosmos extends to his notion of what is in the mind and what is out
-of it. He cannot distinguish between an illusion and a reality, between a
-substance and its image or shadow; and it needs only some bodily ailment,
-as indigestion through gorging, or delirium through starving, to give to
-spectres of diseased or morbid origin, airy nothings, a substantive
-existence, a local habitation, and a name.
-
-The tangle between things and their symbols is well illustrated in the
-barbaric notion that the name of a man is an integral part of himself, and
-that to reveal it is to put the owner in the power of another. An Indian
-asked Kane whether his wish to know his name arose from a desire to steal
-it; the Araucanians would not allow their names to be told to strangers,
-lest these should be used in sorcery. So with the Indians of British
-Columbia; and among the Ojibways husbands and wives never told each
-other's names, the children being warned against repeating their own names
-lest they stop growing. Dobrizhoffer says that the Abipones of Paraguay
-had the like superstition. They would knock at his door at night, and when
-asked who was there, no answer would come, through dread of uttering their
-names. Mr. im Thurn tells us that, although the Indians of British Guiana
-have an intricate system of names, it is "of little use, in that owners
-have a very strong objection to telling or using them, apparently on the
-ground that the name is part of the man, and that he who knows it has part
-of the owner of that name in his power." In Borneo the name of a sickly
-child is changed, to deceive the evil spirits that have tormented it; the
-Lapps change the baptismal name of a child for the same reason; and among
-the Abipones, the Fuegians, the Lenguas of Brazil, the North-West Indians,
-and other tribes at corresponding low levels, when any member died the
-relatives would change their names to elude Death when he should come to
-look for them, as well as give their children horrid names to frighten the
-bad spirits away. All over the barbaric world we find a great horror of
-naming the dead, lest the ghost appear. An aged Indian of Lake Michigan
-explained why tales of the spirits were told only in winter, by saying
-that when the deep snow is on the ground the voices of those repeating
-their names are muffled; but that in summer the slightest mention of them
-must be avoided, lest the spirits be offended. Among the Californian
-tribes the name of the departed spoken inadvertently caused a shudder to
-pass over all those present. Among the Iroquois the name of a dead man
-could not be used again in the lifetime of his oldest surviving son
-without the consent of the latter, and the Australians believe that a dead
-man's ghost creeps into the liver of the impious wretch who has dared to
-utter his name. Dr. Lang tried to get the name of a relative who had been
-killed from an Australian. "He told me who the lad's father was, who was
-his brother, what he was like, how he walked, how he held his tomahawk in
-his left hand instead of his right, and who were his companions; but the
-dreaded name never escaped his lips, and I believe no promises or threats
-could have induced him to utter it." Dorman gives a pathetic illustration
-of this superstition in the Shawnee myth of Yellow Sky. "She was a
-daughter of the tribe, and had dreams which told her she was created for
-an unheard-of mission. There was a mystery about her being, and none could
-comprehend the meaning of her evening songs. The paths leading to her
-father's lodge were more beaten than those to any other. On one condition
-alone at last she consented to become a wife, namely, that he who wedded
-her should never mention her name. If he did, she warned him that a sad
-calamity would befall him, and he would for ever thereafter regret his
-thoughtlessness. After a time Yellow Sky sickened and died, and her last
-words were that her husband might never breathe her name. For five summers
-he lived in solitude, but, alas, one day as he was by the grave of his
-dead wife, an Indian asked him whose it was, and in forgetfulness he
-uttered the forbidden name. He fell to the earth in great pain, and as
-darkness settled round about him a change came over him. Next morning,
-near the grave of Yellow Sky a large buck was quietly feeding. It was the
-unhappy husband."
-
-The original meaning has dropped out of the current saying, "Talk of the
-devil and you'll see his horns," but savage philosophy recovers it for us.
-And the shrinking from naming persons is still more marked as we ascend
-the scale of principalities and powers. In the South Sea Islands not only
-are the names of chiefs tabooed, but also words and syllables resembling
-those names in sound. The Tahitians have a custom called _Te pi_, which
-consists in avoiding in daily language those words which form a part or
-the whole of the names of the king and royal family, and in inventing new
-terms in their place. The king's name being _Tu fetu_, "star," had to be
-changed into _fetia_, and _tui_, "to strike," became _tiai_. In New
-Zealand knives were called _nekra_, because a chief's name was _Maripi_,
-or "knife." It is, Professor Max Mueller aptly remarks, as if with the
-accession of Queen Victoria either the word _victory_ had been tabooed
-altogether, or only part of it, as _tori_, so as to make it high treason
-to speak of _Tories_ during her reign. The secret name of Pocahontas was
-Matokas, which was concealed from the English through superstitious fear;
-and in the mythical story of "Hiawatha" the same metonymic practice
-occurs, his real name being Tarenyawagon. A survival of the dislike to
-calling exalted temporal, and also spiritual, beings by their names,
-probably lies at the root of the Jews' unwillingness to use the name of
-Yahweh (commonly and incorrectly spelt Jehovah[62]), and in the name
-"Allah," which is an epithet or title of the Mohammadan deity, and not the
-"great name"; whilst the concealment by the Romans of the name of the
-tutelary deity of their city was fostered by their practice, when
-besieging any place, to invoke the treacherous aid of its protecting god
-by offering him a high place in their Pantheon. And in the title of
-Eumenides, or the "gracious ones," given to the Furies by the Greeks, may
-be noted a survival of the verbal bribes by which the thing feared was
-"squared." For example, the Finnish hunters called the bear "the apple of
-the forest," "the beautiful honey-claw," "the pride of the thicket"; the
-Laplander speaks of it as "the old man with the fur coat"; in Annam the
-natives call the tiger "grandfather," or "lord"; and the Dyaks of Borneo
-speak of the small-pox as "the chief," or "jungle leaves."
-
-The confusion between ideas and objects which these examples illustrate is
-shared by us, although in a remote degree. If the initials of any
-well-known name are transposed, for example, let W. E. Gladstone be
-printed E. W. Gladstone; or if some familiar name is altered, for example,
-let John Bright be misprinted James Bright, it is curious to note how for
-a moment the identity is obscured in one's mind. Another personality,
-indistinct and bewildering, rises before us, showing how we have come to
-link together a man and his name even to the details of his initials. That
-which we feel momentarily the uncivilised feels constantly. He cannot
-think of himself, of his squaw, of his children, or of his
-fellow-tribesmen, apart from names which are more significant to him than
-ours are to us. With us the reason which governed selection is forgotten
-or obscured, the physical features and conditions no longer correspond to
-ancestral names; but with barbarous peoples those features and conditions
-are more apparent. Besides which, children are often named by the
-medicine-man, and the name is thus endowed with a charm which may roughly
-be analogous to the halo round a name confirmed by baptism to one simply
-recorded in the office of a Registrar of Births.
-
-
-Sec. IV.
-
-BARBARIC BELIEF IN VIRTUE IN INANIMATE THINGS.
-
-The artificial divisions which man in his pride of birth made between the
-several classes of phenomena in the inorganic world, and also between the
-inorganic and the organic, are being swept away before the larger
-knowledge and insight of our time. Indeed, it would seem that the surest
-test we can apply to the worth of any kind of knowledge is whether it adds
-to or takes from our growing conception of unity. If it does the former,
-we cannot overthrow it; if it does the latter, then is it science "falsely
-so called."
-
-That notable doctrine known as the correlation of physical forces, or the
-convertibility into one another of heat, light, electricity, chemical
-affinity, etc., each being a mode of manifestation of an unknown energy
-which "lives through all life, extends through all extent," has its
-counterpart in the correlation of spiritual forces. Varied as are the
-modes of expression of these, that variety is on the surface only. Deep
-down lies the one source that feeds them, the one heart to whose existence
-their pulsations witness. All primitive philosophies, all religions "that
-man did ever find," are but as the refractions of the same light dispersed
-through different media; are the result of the speculations of the same
-subject, allowances being made for local and non-essential differences
-upon like objects. And, therefore, in treating of the nature and
-limitations of man's early thought concerning his surroundings, whether
-these be the broad earth bathed in the sunshine or swathed in the
-darkness, or the sounds that come from unseen agents, the sight of
-spectral visitants of whom he cannot have touch, and out of which are
-built up his theories of the invisible world, the reader may find
-reference to the same conditions which were shown in former pages to give
-birth and sustenance to primitive myth. The same fantastic conclusions,
-drawn from rude analyses and associations, and from seeming connections of
-cause and effect, the same bewildering entanglement between things which
-we know can have nothing in common, meet us; and the same scientific
-method by which we determine the necessary place of each in the advance of
-man to truth through illusion is applied.
-
-The illustrations of the vital connection which the savage assumes between
-himself and his name show how easy is the passage from belief in life
-inhering in everything to belief in it as capable of power for good or
-evil. This can be shown by illustrations from more tangible things than
-names. The savage who is afraid to utter these also shrinks from having
-his likeness taken, in the feeling that some part of him is transferred,
-and at the mercy of the sorcerer and enemy. The Malemutes of North America
-refused to risk their lives before a photographic apparatus. They said
-that those who had their likenesses had their spirit, and they would not
-let these pass into the keeping of those who might use them as instruments
-of torment. Catlin relates that he caused great commotion among the Sioux
-by drawing one of their chiefs in profile. "Why was half his face left
-out?" they asked; "Mahtocheega was never ashamed to look a white man in
-the face." The chief himself did not take offence, but Shouka the Dog
-taunted him, saying: "The Englishman knows that you are but half a man; he
-has painted but one-half of your face, and knows that the rest is good
-for nothing." This led to a quarrel, and in the end Mahtocheega was shot,
-the fatal bullet tearing away just that part of the face which Catlin had
-not drawn! He had to make his escape, and the matter was not settled till
-both Shouka and his brother had been killed in revenge for Mahtocheega's
-death. The Yanktons accused Catlin of causing a scarcity of buffaloes by
-putting a great many of them in his book, and refused to let him take
-their portraits. So with the Araucanians, who ran away if any attempt was
-made to sketch them. Among such races we find great care exercised lest
-cuttings of hair, parings of nails, saliva, refuse of food, water in which
-they had washed, etc., should fall into unfriendly or mistrusted hands.
-The South Sea Island chiefs had servants following them with spittoons,
-that the saliva might be buried in some hidden place. Among the
-Polynesians any one who fell ill attributed it to some sorcerer, who had
-got hold of refuse from the sick and was burning it, and the quiet of the
-night was often broken by the blowing of shell-trumpets, as signals for
-the sorcerer to stop until the gifts on their way to appease him could
-arrive. The idea is common both to Eskimo and Indian that so long as a
-fragment of a body remains unburnt, the being, man or beast, may, by
-magic, be revived from it. As with the name or the portrait, whoever
-possessed a part of the material substance possessed a part of the
-spiritual, and in this world-wide belief in a sympathetic connection
-between things living and not living lies the whole philosophy of
-sorcery, of charms, amulets, spells, and the general doctrine of luck
-surviving through the successive stages of culture to this day. And he who
-would prevent anything from his person getting into hostile hands,
-naturally sought after things in which coveted qualities were believed to
-dwell, and avoided those of a reverse nature. So we find tiger's flesh
-eaten to give courage, and the eyes of owls swallowed to give good sight
-in the dark. The Kaffirs prepare a powder made of the dried flesh of
-various wild beasts, the leopard, tiger, elephant, snake, etc., so as to
-absorb the several virtues of these creatures. The Tyrolese hunter wears
-his tuft of eagle's down to gain long sight and daring, and the Red Indian
-strings bears claws round his neck to get Bruin's savage courage. The
-customs of scalping and, in some measure, of cannibalism, may be referred
-to the same notion, for the Red man will risk his life to prevent a
-tribesman's scalp being captured by the foe, and the New Zealander will
-swallow the eyes of his slain enemy to improve his sight. In Greenland "a
-slain man is said to have power to avenge himself upon the murderer by
-_rushing into him_, which can only be prevented by eating a piece of his
-liver."[63] When a whaler died the Eskimos distributed portions of his
-dried body among his friends, and rubbed the points of their lances with
-them, it being held that a weapon thus charmed would pierce a vital part
-in a whale, where another would fail. Sometimes the body was laid in a
-cave, and, before starting for the chase, the whalers would assemble, and,
-carrying it to a stream, plunge it in, and then drink the water. When the
-heroic Jesuit Brebeuf was tortured by the Iroquois, they were so
-astonished at his endurance that they laid open his breast and came in a
-crowd to drink the blood of so valiant a foe, thinking to imbibe with it
-some portion of his courage, while a chief tore out his heart and devoured
-it.
-
-Cannibalism, it may be remarked, _en passant_, is also found to have a
-religious significance, on the supposition, which has unsuspected survival
-among advanced races, that eating the body and drinking the blood
-communicates the spirit of the victim to the consumer. It is not always
-the most savage races who practise it; for example, the Australians,
-despite the scarcity of large animals for food supply, rarely ate the
-flesh of man, whilst the New Zealanders, who rank far above them, and had
-not the like excuse, were systematic feeders on human flesh.
-
-As examples of a reverse kind, but witnessing to the play of like beliefs
-in qualities passing from brutes and lifeless things, we find some races
-avoiding oil, lest the game slip through their fingers, abstaining from
-the flesh of deer, lest it engenders timidity, and from that of pigs and
-of tortoises lest the eater has very small eyes. Dr. Tylor gives an
-apposite illustration of a kindred superstition in the Hessian lad who
-thinks that he may escape the conscription by carrying a baby-girl's cap
-in his pocket as a symbolical way of repudiating manhood. So the thief of
-our London slums hopes to evade the police by carrying a piece of coal or
-slate in his pocket for luck. Among ourselves there was an old medical
-saw, "Hare-flesh engendereth melancholy bloude," and in Swift's _Polite
-Conversation_ we have this reason assigned by Lady Answerall when asked to
-eat it; whilst faith is not yet extinct in the "Doctrine of Signatures,"
-or the notion that the appearance of a plant indicates the disease for
-which it is a remedy, as the "eye-bright," the black purple spot on the
-corolla of which was said to show that it was good for weak eyes. In
-referring to the mandrake superstition (a plant whose roots are said to
-rudely resemble the human form) as illustration of the "recognised
-principles in magic that things like each other, however superficially,
-affect each other in a mystic way and possess identical properties," Mr.
-Andrew Lang quotes a Melanesian belief that a stone in the shape of a pig,
-of a bread-fruit, of a yam, was a most valuable find, because it made pigs
-prolific and fertilised bread-fruit trees and yam-plots.[64]
-
-Brand remarks[65] that the custom of giving infants coral to help in
-cutting the teeth is said to be a survival of an old belief in it as an
-amulet; and in English, Sicilian, and West Indian folk-lore, we find the
-belief that it changes colour in sympathy with the pale or healthy look of
-the wearer. An old Latin author says,[66] "It putteth of lightenynge,
-whirle-wynde, tempeste, and storms fro shyppes and houses that it is in."
-
-We are each of us hundreds of thousands of years old, and although our
-customs and beliefs have a far less venerable antiquity, their sources lie
-not less in primitive thought. Like the survival of the ancient Roman
-workman's "casula" or "little house" or "shelter" in the chasuble of the
-priest; like the use of stone knives in circumcision long after the
-discovery of metals; the general tends to become special; the common, its
-primitive need or service forgotten, to become sacred. Sometimes the early
-idea abides; the Crees, who carry about the bones of the dead carefully
-wrapped up as a fetish; the Caribs, who think such relics can answer
-questions; the Xomanes, who drink the powdered bones in water, that they
-may receive the spirit; the Algonquins, whose god Manobozho turned bits of
-his own flesh or his wife's into raccoons for food; the Iroquois cited
-above; represent the barbarous ancestry of higher races, whether of the
-Bacchanalians described by Arnobius,[67] who thought that the fulness of
-the divine majesty was imparted to them when they tore and ate the
-struggling rams with mouths dripping with gore, or of the faithful who
-receive nutriment through the symbols of the Cross. And the prayers of
-savage and civilised have this in common, that some advantage is thereby
-sought by the utterer; their sacrifices are alike the giving up of one's
-goods or one's self to a deity who may be appeased or bribed thereby;
-their fastings are cultivated as inducing the abnormal states in which
-their old men dream dreams and their young men see visions of spirits
-appearing as angels ascending and descending between earth and the abode
-of the blest. Baptisms are the ancient lustrations, which water, as the
-cleansing element, suggested; and the eastward position, over which
-priests and ecclesiastics have fought, is the undoubted relic of worship
-of the rising sun.
-
-In short, there is no rite or ceremony yet practised and revered amongst
-us which is not the lineal descendant of barbaric thought and usage,
-expressing a need which, were men less the slaves of custom and indolence,
-would long since have found loftier form than in genuflexion before shrine
-and reliquary. By an exercise of imagination not possible but for these
-being a felicitous "gesture language" of the cries of human souls, a mass
-of heathen and pagan rites have been transformed into those of the
-Christian faith. That they have come to be mistaken for the ideas
-symbolised, that with the loftiest spiritual teaching there should remain
-commingled belief in miraculous power in fragments (mostly spurious) of
-dead men and their clothes; only shows the persistency of that notion of a
-vital connection between the lifeless and the living which this section
-has sought to illustrate.
-
-
-Sec. V.
-
-BARBARIC BELIEF IN THE REALITY OF DREAMS.
-
-The confusion in the barbaric mind between the objective and the
-subjective, and between the name and the person or thing, which has been
-illustrated in the foregoing pages, will enable us to see more clearly how
-the like confusion must enter into the interpretation of such occult and
-compound phenomena as dreams, and all their kind.
-
-They supply the conditions for exciting and sustaining that feeling of
-mystery which attends man's endeavour to get at the meaning of his
-surroundings. The phantasies which have defiled through the brain in
-coherent order, or danced in mazy whirl about its sinuous passages when
-complete sleep was lacking, leave their footprints on the memory, and they
-are strong of head and heart, true pepticians, like the countryman cited
-by Carlyle, who, "for his part, had no system," whose composure on awaking
-is not affected by the harmonious or discordant, the pleasant or
-disagreeable, illusions which have made up their dreams. In the felicitous
-words of Lucretius, "When sleep has chained down our limbs in sweet
-slumber, and the whole body is sunk in profound repose, yet then we seem
-to ourselves to be awake and to be moving our limbs, and amid the thick
-darkness of night we think we see the sun and the daylight; and though in
-a confined room, we seem to be passing to new climates, seas, rivers,
-mountains, and to be crossing plains on foot, and to hear voices, though
-the austere silence of night prevails all round, and to be uttering
-speech, though quite silent. Many are the other things of this marvellous
-sort we see, which all seek to shake, as it were, the credit of the
-senses: quite in vain, since the greatest part of these cases cheat us on
-account of the mental suppositions which we add of ourselves, taking those
-things as seen which have not been seen by the senses. For nothing is
-harder than to separate manifest facts from doubtful, which the mind
-without hesitation adds on of itself."[68]
-
-While for us dreams fill an empty moment in the telling, albeit now and
-again nurturing such remains of superstition as cling to the majority of
-people, they are to the untrained intelligence, unable to distinguish fact
-from fiction, or to follow any sequence of ideas, as solid as the
-experiences of waking moments. As a Zulu, well expressing the limits of
-savage thought, said to Bishop Callaway, "Our knowledge does not urge us
-to search out the roots of it, we do not try to see them, if any one
-thinks ever so little, he soon gives it up, and passes on to what he sees
-with his eyes; and he does not understand the real state of even what he
-sees." Nor does his language clear the confusion within when he tells what
-he has seen and heard and felt, where he has been and what he has done,
-for the speech cannot transcend the thought, and therefore can represent
-neither to himself nor to his hearers the difference between the illusions
-of the night and the realities of the day. The dead relatives and friends
-who appear in dreams and live their old life, with whom he joins in the
-battle, the chase, and the feast, the foes with whom he struggles, the
-wild beasts from whom he flees, or in whose clutches he feels himself, and
-with shrieks awakens his squaw, the long distances he travels to sunnier
-climes lit by a light that never was on land or sea, are all real, and no
-"baseless fabric of a vision." That now and again he should have walked in
-his sleep would confirm the seeming reality; still more so would the
-intensified form of dreaming called "nightmare,"[69] when hideous spectres
-sit upon the breast, stopping breath and paralysing motion, and to which
-is largely due the creation of the vast army of nocturnal demons that fill
-the folk-lore of the world, and that, under infinite variety of repellent
-form, have had place in the hierarchy of religions.
-
-Dreams are in the main referred by the savage either to the entrance into
-him of some outside spirit, as among the Fijians, who believe that the
-spirit of a living man will leave the body to trouble sleeping folk, or to
-the real doings of himself.
-
-When the Greenlander dreams of hunting, or fishing, or courting, he
-believes that the soul quits the body; the Dyaks of Borneo think that
-during sleep the soul sometimes remains in the body or travels far away,
-being endowed, whether present or absent, with conditions which in waking
-moments are lacking. Wherever we find a low state of mental development
-the like belief exists. In Mr. im Thurn's elaborate work on the _Indians
-of Guiana_ we have corroborative evidence, the more valuable because of
-its freshness. He tells us that the dreams which come to the Indian are to
-him as real as any of the events of his waking life. To him dream-acts
-and waking-acts differ only in one respect--namely, that the former are
-done only by the spirit, the latter are done by the spirit in its body.
-Seeing other men asleep, and afterwards hearing from them the things which
-they suppose themselves to have done when asleep, the Indian has no
-difficulty in reconciling that which he hears with the fact that the
-bodies of the sleepers were in his sight and motionless throughout the
-time of supposed action, because he never questions that the spirits,
-leaving the sleepers, played their part in dream-adventures. Mr. im Thurn
-illustrates the complete belief of the Indian in the unbroken continuity
-of his dream-life and waking-life by incidents which came under his own
-notice, and which are quoted as serving the present argument better than
-any theorising.
-
- One morning when it was important to me to get away from a camp on the
- Essequibo River, at which I had been detained for some days by the
- illness of some of my Indian companions, I found that one of the
- invalids, a young Macusi, though better in health, was so enraged
- against me that he refused to stir, for he declared that, with great
- want of consideration for his weak health, I had taken him out during
- the night and had made him haul the canoe up a series of difficult
- cataracts. Nothing could persuade him that this was but a dream, and
- it was some time before he was so far pacified as to throw himself
- sulkily into the bottom of the canoe. At that time we were all
- suffering from a great scarcity of food, and, hunger having its usual
- effect in producing vivid dreams, similar events frequently occurred.
- More than once the men declared in the morning that some absent man,
- whom they named, had come during the night, and had beaten, or
- otherwise maltreated them; and they insisted on much rubbing of the
- bruised parts of their bodies. Another instance was amusing. In the
- middle of one night I was awakened by an Arawak named Sam, the captain
- or head-man of the Indians who were with me, only to be told the
- bewildering words, "George speak me very bad, boss; you cut his bits!"
- It was some time before I could collect my senses sufficiently to
- remember that "bits," or fourpenny-pieces, are the units in which,
- among Creoles and semi-civilised Indians, calculation of money, and
- consequently of wages, is made; that to cut bits means to reduce the
- number of bits or wages given; and to understand that Captain Sam,
- having dreamed that his subordinate George had spoken insolently to
- him, the former, with a fine sense of the dignity of his office, now
- insisted that the culprit should be punished in real life. One more
- incident, of which the same Sam was the hero, may be told for the sake
- of the humour, though it did not happen within my personal experience,
- but was told me by a friend. This friend, in whose employ Sam was at
- the time, told his man, as they sat round the fire one night, of the
- Zulu or some other African war which was then in progress, and in so
- doing inadvertently made frequent use of the expression, "to punish
- the niggers." That night, after all in camp had been asleep for some
- time, they were raised by loud cries for help. Sam, who was one of the
- most powerful Indians I ever saw, was "punishing a nigger" who
- happened to be one of the party; with one hand he had firmly grasped
- the back of the breeches-band of the black man, and had twisted this
- round so tightly that the poor wretch was almost cut in two. Sam
- sturdily maintained that he had received orders from his master for
- this outrageous conduct, and on inquiry it turned out that he had
- dreamed this.[70]
-
-Taking an illustration from nearer home, although from a more remote time,
-we have in the Scandinavian _Vatnsdaela Saga_ a curious account of three
-Finns who were shut up in a hut for three nights, and ordered by
-Ingimund, a Norwegian chief, to visit Iceland, and inform him of the line
-of the country where he was to settle. Their bodies became rigid, and they
-sent their souls on their errand, and, on their awaking at the end of
-three days, gave an accurate account of the Vatnsdael, in which Ingimund
-ultimately dwelt. No wonder that in mediaeval times, when witches swept the
-air and harried the cattle, swooning and other forms of insensibility were
-adduced in support of the theory of soul-absence, or that we find among
-savages--as the Tajals of the Luzon islands--objections to waking a
-sleeper lest the soul happens to be out of the body. As a corollary to
-this belief in soul-absence, fear arises lest it be prolonged to the peril
-of the owner, and hence a rough and ready theory of the cause of disease
-is framed, for savages rarely die in their beds.
-
-
-Sec. VI.
-
-BARBARIC THEORY OF DISEASE.
-
-That disease is a derangement of functions interrupting their natural
-action, and carrying attendant pain as its indication, could not enter the
-head of the uncivilised: and, indeed, among ourselves a cold or a fever is
-commonly thought of as an entity in the body which has stolen in, and,
-having been caught, must be somehow expelled. With the universal primitive
-belief in spiritual agencies everywhere inhaled with the breath or
-swallowed with the food or drink, all diseases were regarded as their
-work, whether, as remarked above, through absence of the rightful spirit
-or subtle entrance of some hostile one. If these be the causes to which
-sicknesses are due, obviously the only cure is to get rid of them, and
-hence the sorcerer and the medicine-man find their services in request in
-casting out the demon by force, or enticing him by cajolery, or in
-bringing back the truant soul.
-
-To the savage mind no other explanation of illness is possible than that
-it is due to the exit of one's own spirit or to the intrusion of a
-stronger one, whether of revengeful man or animal. An old Dakota, whose
-son had sore eyes, said that nearly thirty years before, when the latter
-was a boy, he fastened a pin to a stick and speared a minnow with it, and
-it was strange that after so long a time the fish should come to seek
-revenge. When an Indian is attacked by any wild beast he believes that the
-avenging Kenaima has transferred his spirit to the animal which seizes
-him, and if he has even a toothache, of which more presently, then the
-Kenaima has insinuated himself in the shape of a worm. The tribal chief
-among the Brazilian natives acts as doctor, and when he visits the sick he
-asks what animal the patient has offended, and if no cure is effected, the
-convenient explanation is at hand that the right animal has not been
-found. At the death of Iron Arms, a noted North American Indian warrior,
-it was said that he died because the doctor made a mistake, thinking that
-a prairie-dog had entered him, when it was a mud-hen. In the weird
-mythology of the Finns the third daughter of the ruler of Tuonela, the
-underworld, sits on a rock rising from hell-river, beneath which the
-spirits of all diseases are shut up. As she whirls the rock round like a
-millstone the spirits escape and go on their torturing errand to mortals.
-The more abnormal and striking phases of disease manifest when a man is
-writhing under intense agony, as if torn and twisted by some fiendish
-living thing, or when in delirium he raves and starts, or when thrown down
-in epilepsy he struggles convulsively, or when he shivers in an ague, or
-when in more violent forms of madness he seems endowed with superhuman
-strength; the various symptoms attending hysteria; each and all support
-that theory of spirit-influence which survives among advanced races in
-referring disease to supernatural causes. For the ancient theories of a
-divine government under which disease is the expression of the anger of
-the gods, and medicine the token of their healing mercy, and the current
-notions that any epidemic or pestilence is a visitation of God, are
-identical in character, however improved in feature, with the barbaric
-belief illustrated above; and in the ages when belief in the devil as one
-walking to and fro upon the earth was rampant, he especially was regarded
-as bringer of both bane and antidote. "He may," says an old writer,
-"inflict diseases, which is an effect he may occasion _applicando activa
-passivis_ (by applying actives to passives), and by the same means he may
-likewise cure ... and not only may he cure diseases laid on by himself, as
-Wierus observes, but even natural diseases, since he knows the natural
-causes and the origin of even those better than the physicians can, who
-are not present when diseases are contracted, and who, _being younger than
-he_, must have less experience."[71] In Lancashire folk-lore "casting out
-the ague" was but another name for "casting out the devil"; in the Arabic
-language the words for epilepsy and possession by demons are the same; and
-in such phrases as a man being "beside himself," "transported," "out of
-his mind," or in the converse, as when it is said in the parable of the
-prodigal son, "he came to himself"; in the words "ecstasy," which means a
-displacement or removal of the soul, and "catalepsy," a seizing of the
-body by some external power, we have language preserving the primitive
-ideas of an intruding or departing spirit. Such minor actions as gaping
-and sneezing confirm the belief. The philosophy of the latter, as Mr. Gill
-remarks in his _Myths and Songs of the South Pacific_, is that the spirit
-having gone travelling about, its return to the body is naturally attended
-with some difficulty and excitement, occasioning a tingling and enlivening
-sensation all over the body. And the like explanation lies at the root of
-the mass of customs attendant on sneezing, and of the superstitions
-generated by it, which extend through the world.
-
-Williams tells us that among the Fijians, when any one faints or dies,
-their spirit, it is said, may sometimes be brought back by calling after
-it, and occasionally the ludicrous scene is witnessed of a stout man lying
-at full length and bawling out lustily for the return of his soul. So in
-China, when a child is lying dangerously ill, its mother will go outside
-into the garden and call its name, in the hope of bringing back the
-wandering spirit. But for all the ills that flesh is heir to, from
-hiccupping to madness, from toothache to broken limbs, the patient seldom
-dares to doctor himself; neither the etiquette of the ordained
-medicine-man nor the orthodox therapeutics favour that show of
-independence. The methods adopted by the faculty vary in detail, but they
-are ruled by a single assumption. When a Chinaman is dying, and the soul
-is believed to be already out of the body, a relative holds up his coat on
-a bamboo stick, and a Taoist priest seeks by incantations to bring back
-the truant soul so that it may re-enter the sick man. Among the Six
-Nations the Indians sought to discover the intruder by gathering a
-quantity of ashes and scattering them in the cabin where the sick person
-was lying. A similar recipe for tracking demons is given in the _Talmud_;
-but, as more nearly bearing on the Indian practice, a Polish custom
-mentioned by Grimm[72] may be quoted. When the white folk torment a sick
-man a friend walks round him carrying a sieveful of ashes on his back, and
-lets the ashes run out till the floor round the bed is covered with them.
-The next morning all the lines in the ashes are counted, and the result
-told to a wise woman, who prescribes accordingly.
-
-A favourite mode of treatment is blowing upon or sucking the diseased
-organ, and deception is no infrequent resort when the sorcerer secretes
-thorns or fishbones, beetles or worms, in his mouth, and then pretends
-that he has extracted them. Cranz says that the Eskimo old women appear to
-suck from a swollen leg scraps of leather or a parcel of hair which they
-have previously crammed into their mouths, and in Australia the same dodge
-is practised, when the sorcerer makes believe that he has drawn out a
-piece of bone from the affected part. That toothache is due to a worm is a
-belief which exists throughout Europe and Asia, and from the Orkneys to
-New Zealand. Shakspere refers to it in _Much Ado about Nothing_, Act III.
-Scene ii.--
-
- _Don Pedro._ What! sigh for the toothache?
-
- _Leonata._ Where is but a humour or a worm;
-
-and instances are current of this superstition being acted upon in rural
-districts, whilst in China the itinerant dentist conceals a worm in the
-stick which he applies to the aching tooth, and on the stick being gently
-tapped, the worm wriggles out to the satisfaction of the sufferer. But
-among barbaric races the treatment of disease is ordinarily the reverse of
-soothing. Here and there the virtues of some plant have been discovered by
-accident, and, whilst exalted into a deity in its native home, it has
-become, like cinchona, a priceless boon to the fever-stricken all over the
-world; but, speaking broadly, the medicine-man is no Melampus, winning
-the secret of their healing balm from herb and tree. Nor has he much faith
-in magic or charm compared to his faith in noise, in incantations, with
-their accompanying hideous grimaces and gestures, and their deafening
-yells with clang of instrument to drown the sufferer's groans and chase
-away the demon. Not unfrequently, when the patient is kept without food so
-as to starve out the indwelling enemy, or when the body is pommelled and
-squeezed to force him out, the remedy helps the disease! An illustration
-or two from a great mass at command must suffice. Among the Mapuches the
-sorcerer adopts the canonical howls and grimaces. Making himself as
-horrible-looking as he can, he begins beating a drum and working himself
-into a frenzy until he falls to the ground with his breast working
-convulsively. As soon as he falls, a number of young men outside the hut,
-who are there to help him in frightening the disease-bringing spirit out
-of the patient, add their defiant yells, and dash at full speed, with
-lighted torches, against the hut. If this does not succeed, and the
-patient dies, the result is attributed to witchcraft. When a Pawnee chief
-had some ribs and an arm broken, the medicine-men danced round him, and
-raised their voices from murmurous chants to howls, accompanying the music
-by blows upon the wounded man's breast to banish the bad spirit. In olden
-time this rough-and-tumble business of blows, to which immersion was
-added, was applied to lunatics in these islands. And, in fact, until some
-local paper narrates a current superstition, we seldom awaken to the fact
-how widely the theological explanation of diseases and the empirical
-choice of remedies still obtains, each being survivals of barbaric theory
-and practice.
-
-The savage who has more faith, as a curative, in plants that grow on
-burial-places, and the Christian, who ascribed special healing power to
-turf and dew from a saint's grave,[73] differ no whit in kind; and so
-ingrained was the medicinal belief in virtue inhering in fragments of the
-dead, that not even the satire of "Reynard the Fox," telling how the wolf
-was cured of his earache, and the hare of his fever, the moment that they
-lay down on the grave of the martyred hen, could give quietus to the
-notion that grated skulls and sacramental shillings were specifics for the
-healing of the faithful.
-
-This reference to like practices reminds us how belief in the action of
-invisible agencies has passed into the practice of confession among
-advanced races outside Christendom, as in Mexico and Peru. The Roman
-Catholic priests were not less astonished at finding this in vogue on
-their arrival in South America than the good Father Huc when, on reaching
-Tibet, he found shaven monks wearing rosaries, worshipping relics, using
-holy water, and a grand Lama decked in mitre, cope, and cross.[74] But, as
-the Italian proverb has it, the world is one country, and "we have all
-one human heart," so that the confessional has the like explanation in
-east as in west. If the disease be the work of an offended deity or of an
-avenging spirit, let the wrong-doer admit his fault, and trust to him who
-is credited with influence with the unseen to exorcise the intruder.
-
-
-Sec. VII.
-
-BARBARIC THEORY OF A SECOND SELF OR SOUL.
-
-In thus far illustrating the confusion inherent in the barbaric mind
-between what is and what is not external to itself, the explanation given
-of matters still dividing philosophers into opposite camps has been hardly
-indicated. The uniformity of this confusion among the lower intelligence
-in every zone and age might surprise us, and we should be in bondage to
-the theory which explains it by assumption of primal intuitions of the
-race, were we not rejoicing in the freedom of the truth of the doctrine of
-the descent, or ascent, of man from an ape-like ancestry, and the
-resulting slow development of his psychical faculties, involving his
-accounting for motion in things around by the like personal life and will
-of which he is conscious in himself, and for his regarding the world of
-great and small alike as the home and haunt of spirits.
-
-For the assumption underlying the savage explanation of such things as
-dreams and diseases involves a larger assumption--namely, that the spirit
-which acts thus arbitrarily, playing this game of hide-and-seek, now, as
-it were, caught up into Paradise, and now dodging its owner and worrying
-its enemy on earth--is, to quote Mr. Spencer's appropriate term, a man's
-_other self_. It is, at least, what the scientists call a working
-hypothesis; it is the only possible explanation which the uncultivated
-mind can give of what it has not the power to see is a subjective
-phenomenon. Odd and out-of-the-way events have happened to the dreamer; he
-has been to strange places and seen strange doings, but waking up, he
-knows that he is in the same wigwam where he laid down to sleep, and can
-be convinced by his squaw that he has not moved therefrom all night.
-Therefore it is the other self, this phantom-soul, which has been away for
-a time, seeing and taking part in things both new and old. We civilised
-folk, as Dr. Wendell Holmes remarks, not rarely find our personality
-doubled in our dreams, and do battle with ourselves, unconscious that we
-are our own antagonists. Dr. Johnson dreamed that he had a contest with an
-opponent and got the worst of it; of course, he found the argument for
-both! Tartini heard the devil play a wonderful sonata, and lay entranced
-by the arch-fiend's execution. On waking he seized his violin, and
-although he could not reproduce the actual succession of notes, he
-recovered sufficient impressions to compose his celebrated "Devil's
-Sonata." Obviously the devil was no other than Tartini.
-
-Thus the philosopher, to whom dreaming merely indicates a certain amount
-of uncontrolled mental activity, may satisfy himself; not thus can the
-savage, who cannot even think that he thinks, and to whom the phenomena of
-shadows, reflection, and echoes bring confirming evidence of the existence
-of his mysterious double. What else than a veritable entity can his shadow
-be to him? Its intangibility feeds his awe and wonder, and increases his
-bewilderment; its actions, ever corresponding with his own, make it, even
-more than its outline, a part of himself, the loss of which may be
-serious. Only when the light is withdrawn or intercepted does the shadow
-cease to accompany, precede, or follow him, and to lengthen, shorten, or
-distort itself; whilst not he alone, but all things above and around, have
-this phantom attendant. The Choctaws believed that each man has an outside
-shadow, _shilombish_, and an inside shadow, _shilup_, both of which
-survive his decease. Among the Fijians a man's shadow is called the dark
-spirit, which goes to the unseen world, while the other spirit, which is
-his likeness reflected in water or a mirror, stays near the place where he
-dies. The Basutos are careful, when walking by a river, not to let their
-shadow fall on the water, lest a crocodile seize it, and harm the owner.
-Among the Algonquin Indians sickness is accounted for by the patient's
-shadow being unsettled or detached from the body; the Zulus say that a
-corpse cannot cast a shadow, and in the barbaric belief that its loss is
-baleful, we have the germ of the mediaeval legends of shadowless men and of
-tales of which Chamisso's story of Peter Schlemihl is a type. The New
-England tribes called the soul _chemung_, the shadow, and in the Quiche
-and Eskimo languages, as also in the several dialects of Costa Rica, the
-same word expresses both ideas; while civilised speech indicates community
-of thought in the _skia_ of the Greeks, the _manes_ or _umbra_ of the
-Romans, and the _shade_ of our own tongue. Still more complete in the
-mimicry is the reflection of the body in water or mirror, the image
-repeating every gesture and adopting every colour, whilst in the echoes
-which forest and hillside fling back, the savage hears confirmation of his
-belief in the other self, as well as in the nearness of the spirits of the
-dead. The Sonora Indians say that departed souls dwell among the caves and
-nooks of the cliffs, and that the echoes are their voices, and in South
-Pacific myth echo is the first and parent fairy, to whom at Marquesas
-divine honours are still paid as the giver of food, and as she who "speaks
-to the worshippers out of the rocks." In Greek myth she is punished by
-Juno for diverting her attention whilst Jupiter flirts with the nymphs,
-and at last, pining in grief at her unrequited love for Narcissus, there
-remains nothing but her voice.
-
-But what, in primitive conception, is the more specific nature of the
-other self, and how does it make the passage from within to without, and
-_vice versa_? Very early in man's history he must have wondered at the
-difference between a waking and a sleeping person, a living and a dead
-one, and sought wherein this consisted. There lay the body in the repose,
-more or less broken, of sleep, or in the undisturbed repose of the
-unawakening sleep; in the latter case, with nothing tangible or visible
-gone, but that which was once "quick" and warm, which had spoken, moved,
-smiled, or frowned but a little while before, and which still came in
-dream or vision, was now cold and still.
-
-It should here be remarked, in passing, that many savage races do not
-believe in death as a natural event, but regard it as differing from sleep
-only in the length of time that the spirit is absent from the body. No
-matter what any one's age may be, if his death is not caused by wounds, it
-is attributed to magic, and the search for the sorcerer becomes a family
-duty, like the vendetta for other injuries. The widespread myths which
-account for death have as their underlying idea the infraction of some law
-or custom, for which the offender pays the extreme penalty. And that
-personification of it which pervades barbaric thought, whilst undergoing
-many changes of form, yet retains its hold in popular conception as well
-as in poetry. Pictured as the messenger of Deity, as the awful angel who
-sought the rebellious and impious, or who, in mission of tenderness, bore
-the soul to its home in the bosom of the Eternal, it was transformed and
-degraded by the grotesque fancy of a later time into a grim and dancing
-skeleton whetting his sickle for ingathering of the young and fair to
-their doom, or into the grinning skull and crossbones of Christian
-headstones. So when the maiden Proserpine is plucking the spring flowers,
-"crocuses and roses and fair violets," in the Elysian fields, Hades,
-regent of hell, regardless of her cries, carries her off to his invisible
-realm.
-
-But to resume. Whilst shadows, reflections, and echoes, one and all,
-seemed to satisfy the uncivilised mind as to the existence of the other
-self, they gave no key to its nature, to what it is like. Obviously the
-difference between death and life lay in some unsubstantial or
-semi-substantial thing. Perhaps, thought some races, it lies in the blood,
-with the unchecked outflow of which death ensues, and the idea of this
-connection has not been confined to barbaric peoples. Perhaps, thought
-other races, it lies in the heart, which, say the Basutos, has gone out of
-any one dead, but has returned when the sick have recovered. Among the
-Greeks some philosophers held that it was fire, which was extinct when the
-fuel of life was burnt out, or water, which would evaporate away. But, as
-language shows, it is with the _breath_ that the other self of the savage
-and the vital principle of the philosopher has been most widely
-identified. For it is the cessation of breathing which would in the
-long-run be noted as the unfailing accompaniment of death; and the
-condensing vapour, as it was exhaled, would confirm the existing theories
-of a shadowy and gaseous-like soul. In this, as the illustrations to be
-adduced from various languages will evidence, the continuity of idea which
-travels along the whole line of barbaric and learned speculation is
-unbroken.
-
-
-Sec. VIII.
-
-BARBARIC PHILOSOPHY IN "PUNCHKIN" AND ALLIED STORIES.
-
-As bearing upon the barbaric belief in the soul leaving the body at
-pleasure, there is a remarkable group of stories, the central idea of
-which is the dwelling apart of the soul or heart, as the seat of life, in
-some secret place, in an egg, or a necklace, or a flower, the good or evil
-fortunes of the soul involving those of the body. To this group the name
-of "Punchkin," the title of one of the older specimens, may conveniently
-be given. In Miss Frere's _Old Deccan Days_ it takes the following form.
-
-A Rajah has seven daughters, and his wife dying when they were quite
-children, he marries the widow of his prime minister. Her cruelty to his
-children made them run off to a jungle, where seven neighbouring princes,
-who were out hunting, found them, and each took one of them to wife. After
-a time they again went hunting, and did not come back. So when the son of
-the youngest princess, who had also been enchanted away, grew up, he set
-out in search of his mother and father and uncles, and at last discovered
-that the seven princes had been turned into stone by the magician
-Punchkin, who had shut up the princess in a tower because she would not
-marry him. Recognising her son, she plotted with him to feign agreement to
-marry Punchkin if he would tell her where the secret of his life was
-hidden. Overjoyed at her yielding to his wish, the magician told her that
-it was true that he was not as others.
-
- "Far, far away, hundreds of thousands of miles from this, there lies a
- desolate country covered with thick jungle. In the midst of the jungle
- grows a circle of palm-trees, and in the centre of the circle stand
- six chattees full of water, piled one above another; below the sixth
- chattee is a small cage which contains a little green parrot; on the
- life of the parrot depends my life, and if the parrot is killed I must
- die. But," he added, "this was not possible, because thousands of
- genii surround the palm-trees, and kill all who approach the place."
-
-The princess told her son this, and he set forth on his journey. On the
-way he rescued some young eagles from a serpent, and the grateful birds
-carried him until they reached the jungle, where, the genii being overcome
-with sleep by the heat, the eaglets swooped down. "Down jumped the prince;
-in an instant he had overthrown the chattees full of water and seized the
-parrot, which he rolled up in his cloak," then mounted again into the air
-and was carried back to Punchkin's palace. Punchkin was dismayed to see
-the parrot in the prince's hands, and asked him to name any price he
-willed for it, whereupon the prince demanded the restoration of his father
-and his uncles to life. This was done; then he insisted on Punchkin doing
-the like to "all whom he had thus imprisoned," when, at the waving of the
-magician's wand, the whole garden became suddenly alive.
-
-"Give me my parrot!" cried Punchkin. Then the boy took hold of the
-parrot, and tore off one of his wings; and as he did so the magician's
-right arm fell off. He then pulled off the parrot's second wing, and
-Punchkin's left arm fell off; then he pulled off the bird's legs, and down
-fell the magician's right leg and left leg. Nothing remained of him save
-the limbless body and the head; but still he rolled his eyes, and cried,
-"Give me my parrot!" "Take your parrot, then," cried the boy, and with
-that he wrung the bird's neck, and threw it at the magician, and as he did
-so, Punchkin's head twisted round, and, with a fearful groan, he died. Of
-course, all the rest "lived very happily ever afterwards," as they do in
-the plays and the novels.
-
-In the stories of _Chundum Rajah_, and of _Sodewa Bai_, the Hindu
-Cinderella, the heroine's soul is contained in a string of golden beads.
-When the Ranee, jealous of her husband's love for Sodewa Bai, asked her
-why she always wore the same beads, she replies: "I was born with them
-round my neck, and the wise men told my father and mother that they
-contained my soul, and that if any one else wore them I should die."
-Whereupon the Ranee instructed her servant to steal the beads from the
-princess when she slept; then she died, but her body did not decay, and in
-the end she was restored to life by the recovery of her necklace. In the
-Bengali tale, _Life's Secret_, a Rajah's favourite wife gives birth
-miraculously to a boy, whose soul is bound up in a necklace in the stomach
-of a boal-fish. In both instances the ornaments are stolen, and while
-they are worn by the thieves, prince and princess alike are lifeless,
-whilst with the recovery of the beads life returned to each. A not unlike
-idea occurs in the story, _Truth's Triumph_. The children of a village
-beauty, whom the Rajah had married, are changed into mango trees, to save
-them from the fury of the jealous Ranee, until the time of danger was
-past.
-
-In Miss Stokes' collection of _Indian Fairy Tales_, we have variants
-corresponding more closely to _Punchkin_. In _Brave Hiralalbasa_, a
-Rakshas (the common name for demon) is induced to reveal the secret of his
-life. He says, "Sixteen miles from here is a tree, round it are tigers and
-bears and other animals, on the top of it is a large flat snake, on the
-head of which is a bird in a cage, and my soul is in that bird." By
-enchantment Hiralalbasa reached the tree and secured the cage. He pulled
-the bird's limbs off, and the Rakshas' arms and legs fell off; then he
-wrung its neck, and the Rakshas fell dead. And in the tale of _The Demon
-and the King's Son_, from the same collection, the prince falls in love
-with the monster's daughter, who is dead during the day and alive in the
-night. The prince asks what she would do, if whilst she is dead, her
-father were to be killed? She tells him it is impossible for any one to
-kill her father, for his life is in a _maina_ (starling), which is in a
-nest in a tree on the other side of the sea, and if, she adds, any one in
-killing the bird spilt the blood on the ground, a hundred demons would be
-born from it. The prince reached the other side, and taking the _maina_,
-proceeded to kill it, but first wrapt it in his handkerchief, that no
-blood might be spilt. The demon, who was far away, knew that the bird was
-caught, and he set out at once to avert his doom. The story ends, like the
-preceding one, with the dismemberment of the bird, and the consequent
-death of the demon.
-
-The nearest approach to tales similar to these in the _Buddhist
-Birth-stories_, is in one or two isolated cases, when the Karma of a human
-being is spoken of as immediately transferred to an animal.
-
-In _Tales from the Norse_ the one in most striking correspondence with the
-Punchkin group is that of _The giant who had no heart in his body_. The
-monster turns six princes and their wives into stone, whereupon the
-seventh and only surviving son, Boots, sets out to avenge their fate. On
-his journey he saves the lives of a raven, a salmon, and a wolf, and the
-wolf, having eaten his horse, compensates Boots by carrying him to the
-giant's castle, where the lovely princess who is to be his bride is
-confined. She promises to find out where the giant keeps his heart, and by
-blandishments and divers arts known to the fair sex both before and since
-the time of Delilah, she worms out the secret. He tells her that "far, far
-away in a lake lies an island; on that island stands a church; in that
-church is a well; in that well swims a duck; in that duck is an egg; and
-in that egg lies my heart, you darling!" Boots, taking fond farewell of
-the princess, rides on the wolf's back to the island. Then the raven he
-had befriended flies to the steeple and fetches the key of the church; the
-salmon, in like return for kindness, brings him the egg from the well
-where the duck had dropped it.
-
- Then the wolf told him to squeeze the egg, and as soon as ever he did
- so, the giant screamed out. "Squeeze it again," said the wolf; and
- when the prince did so, the giant screamed still more piteously, and
- begged and prayed so prettily to be spared, saying he would do all
- that the prince wished if he would only not squeeze his heart in two.
- "Tell him if he will restore to life again your six brothers and their
- brides, you will spare his life," said the wolf. Yes, the giant was
- ready to do that, and he turned the six brothers into kings' sons
- again, and their brides into kings' daughters. "Now squeeze the egg in
- two," said the wolf. With questionable morality, doing evil that good
- might come, Boots squeezed the egg to pieces, and the giant burst at
- once.
-
-Asbjoernsen's _New Series_ gives a variant in which a Troll who has seized
-a princess tells her that he and all his companions will burst, as did the
-heartless giant, when there passes above them "the grain of sand that lies
-under the ninth tongue in the ninth head" of a certain dragon. The grain
-of sand is found and passed over them, when the Troll and all his brood
-are destroyed. In the Gaelic stories, for which we are indebted to the
-skill of an early worker in this field, the late Mr. J. F. Campbell, that
-of the _Young King of Easaidh Ruadh_ locates the secret thus: "There is a
-great flagstone underneath the threshold. There is a wether under the
-flagstone. There is a duck in the wether's belly, and an egg in the duck,
-in the egg is my soul." In the _Sea-Maiden_ there is a "great beast with
-three heads, which cannot be killed until an egg is broken which is in the
-mouth of a trout, which springs out of a crow, which flies out of a hind,
-which lives on an island in the middle of the loch."
-
-In his valuable collection of _Russian Folk-Tales_, which is enriched by
-comparative notes, Mr. Ralston supplies some interesting variants of
-Punchkin. Koshchei, called "the immortal or deathless," is merely one of
-the many incarnations of the dark spirit which takes so many monstrous
-shapes in folk-tales. Sometimes his death, that is, the object with which
-his life is indissolubly connected, does exist within his body. In one
-story he carries off a queen, for whom her three sons, one after another,
-go in search. Prince Ivan, the youngest, at last discovers where his
-mother dwells, and she at the approach of Koshchei hides her son away. The
-monster sniffs the blood of a Russian, and inquires if her son has not
-been with her. She assures him it is only the Russian air in his nostrils.
-Then after talking to him affectionately on one thing and another, she
-asks where his death is, and he tells her that, "under an oak is a casket,
-in the casket is a hare, in the hare is a duck, in the duck an egg, in the
-egg is my death." Prince Ivan found the egg, and reached his mother's
-house with it. Presently Koshchei flew in and said, "Phoo, phoo; no
-Russian bone can the ear hear or the eye see, but there's a smell of
-Russia here." Then Prince Ivan came out from his hiding place, and,
-holding up the egg, said, "There is your death, oh Koshchei!" then he
-smashed it, and Koshchei fell dead. In another story Koshchei is killed by
-a blow on the forehead from the mysterious egg. Mr. Ralston also quotes a
-Transylvanian Saxon story concerning a witch's life, which is a light
-burning in an egg inside a duck that swims on a pond inside a mountain,
-and she dies when the light is put out. In the Bohemian story of the
-_Sun-horse_ a warlock's strength lies in an egg in a duck, which is within
-a stag under a tree. A seer finds the egg and sucks it. Then the warlock
-becomes as weak as a child, "for all his strength had passed into the
-seer."
-
-In Servian folk-tale the strength of a baleful being who had stolen a
-princess lies in a bird which is inside the heart of a fox, and when the
-bird was taken out of the heart and set on fire, that moment the
-wife-stealer falls down dead, and the prince regains his bride. From the
-same source we have the tale of the _Golden-haired Twins_, with an
-incident akin to that in Punchkin. When the king's stepmother buries the
-twins whom she had stolen, there spring from the spot where they lie trees
-with golden leaves and blossoms. The king's admiration of them aroused her
-jealousy, and she had them cut down, but eventually his golden-haired
-princes are restored to him.
-
-Thus far the illustrations have been drawn solely from the folk-tales of
-the widespread Indo-European races, but they are not confined to these.
-From non-Aryan sources we have the Tatar story of the demon-giant who
-kept his soul in a twelve-headed snake carried in a bag on his horse's
-back. The hero finds out the secret, kills the snake, and the giant dies.
-In one of the Samoyed tales a man had no heart in his body, and could
-recover it only on restoring to life a woman whom he had killed. Then the
-man said to his wife, "Go to the place where the dead lies; there you will
-find a purse, in that purse is her soul; shake the purse over her bones,
-and she will come to life." The wife did as she was ordered, and the woman
-revived, whereupon her son dashed the heart to the ground, and the man
-died.[75]
-
-More elaborate than these are the tales from _The Thousand and One
-Nights_. In _Seyf-el-Mulook_ the jinnee's soul is enclosed in the crop of
-a sparrow, and the sparrow is imprisoned in a small box, and this is in
-seven other boxes which are put into seven chests; these are enclosed in a
-coffer of marble that is sunk in the ocean surrounding the world. By the
-aid of Suleyman's seal-ring Seyf-el-Mulook raises the coffer, and
-extricating the sparrow, strangles it, whereupon the jinnee's body is
-converted into a heap of black ashes. In some tales not included by
-Galland or Lane, which Mr. Kirby has translated and edited under the title
-of the _New Arabian Nights_, we have a variant of the above under the
-title of _Joadar of Cairo and Mahmood of Tunis_. Joadar is bent on
-releasing his enchanted betrothed, which he does by also strangling a
-sparrow, the ogre being simultaneously dissolved into a heap of ashes.
-
-The most venerable illustration of the leading idea in the Punchkin group
-is however found, though in more subtle form, in the Egyptian tale of the
-_Two Brothers_. This is of great value on account of its high antiquity,
-and, moreover, specially interesting as recording an incident similar to
-that narrated in the life of Joseph. It is contained in the D'Orbiney
-papyrus preserved in the Bibliotheque Imperiale, the date being about the
-fourteenth or fifteenth century B.C.
-
-There were two brothers, Anepou and Satou, joined as one in love and
-labour. One day Satou was sent to fetch seed-corn from Anepou's house,
-where he found his brother's wife adorning her hair. She urged him to stay
-with her, but he refused, promising, however, to keep her wickedness
-secret. When Anepou returned at even, she, being afraid, "made herself to
-seem as a woman that had suffered violence," and told him exactly the
-reverse of what had happened. Anepou's wrath was kindled against Satou,
-and he went out to slay him; but Satou called on Phra to save him, and the
-god placed a river between the brothers, so that when day dawned Anepou
-might hear the truth. At sunrise Satou tells his story, and, mutilating
-himself, he says that he will leave Anepou and go to the valley of the
-cedar, in the cones of which he will deposit his heart, "so that if the
-tree be cut his heart will fall to the earth, and he must die."
-
-For us the value of these folk-tales lies in the relics of barbaric
-notions concerning the nature of man and his relation to external things
-which they preserve. They have amused our youth-hood; they may instruct
-our manhood. But if we go to the solar mythologists for their
-interpretation, we shall learn from Sir G. W. Cox that the "magician
-Punchkin and the heartless giant are only other forms of the Panis who
-steal bright treasures from the gleaming west," that "Balna herself is
-Helen shut up in Ilion ... the eagles the bright clouds,"[76] and from
-Professor de Gubernatis that the duck is the dawn and the egg the sun.
-
-These venerable tales have a larger, richer meaning than this, expressive
-of the wonder deep-seated in the heart of man. Like the "drusy" cavity in
-granite rock which, when broken open, reveals beautiful prisms of topaz
-and beryl, the folk-tales disclose under analysis that thought, now
-crystallised, which confuses ideas and objects, illusions and realities,
-substances and shadows.
-
-
-Sec. IX.
-
-BARBARIC AND CIVILISED NOTIONS OF THE SOUL'S NATURE.
-
-In proof of the closing remarks in Sec. VII., that the breath has given the
-chief name to the soul, we find the Western Australians using the same
-word, _waug_, for "breath, spirit, soul"; in Java the word _nawa_ is used
-for "health, life, soul"; in the Dakota tongue _niya_ is literally
-"breath," figuratively "life"; in Netela _piuts_ is "breath" and "soul";
-in Eskimo _silla_ means "air" and "wind," and is also the word that
-conveys the highest idea of the world as a whole, and of the reasoning
-faculty. The supreme existence they call _Sillam Innua_, Owner of the Air,
-or of the All; in the Yakama tongue of Oregon _wkrisha_ signifies "there
-is wind," _wkrishwit_, "life"; with the Aztecs _ehecatl_ expressed "air,
-life, and the soul," and, personified in their myths, it was said to have
-been born of the breath of Tezcatlipoca, their highest divinity, who
-himself is often called Yoalliehecatl, the Wind of Night.[77] This
-identity of wind with breath, of breath with spirit, and thence of spirit
-with the Great Spirit, which
-
- "Sees God in clouds, and hears Him in the wind,"
-
-has further illustration in the legends of the Quiches, in which the
-unknown creative power is Hurakan, a name familiar to us under the form
-_hurricane_, and in our own sacred records, where the advent of the Holy
-Spirit is described "as of a rushing mighty wind." In the Mohawk language
-_atonritz_, the "soul," is from _atonrion_, "to breathe"; whilst, as
-showing the analogy between the effects of restricted sense and restricted
-civilisation, Dr. Tylor quotes the case of a girl who was a deaf-mute as
-well as blind, and who, when telling a dream in gesture language, said:
-"I thought God took away my breath to heaven." Among the higher languages
-the same evidence abides.
-
- "The spirit doth but mean the breath."
-
-That word _spirit_ is derived from a verb _spirare_, which means "to draw
-breath." _Animus_, "the mind," is cognate with _anima_, "air"; in Irish,
-which belongs to the same family of speech as Latin, namely, the Aryan or
-Indo-European, we have _anal_, "breath," and _anam_, "life," or "soul";
-and in Sanskrit we find the root _an_, to "blow" or "breathe," whence
-_anila_, "wind," and in Greek _anemos_, with the like meaning. In
-Hampole's _Ayenbite of Inwyt_, _i.e._ "Prick or Remorse of Conscience," a
-poem of the fourteenth century, we find _ande_ or "breath" used as "soul."
-
- "Thus sall ilka saul other se (_i.e._ in the other world)
- For nan of tham may feled be
- Na mar than here a man, ande may
- When it passes fra his mouthe away."[78]
-
-The Greek _psyche_, _pneuma_, and _thymos_, each meaning "soul" and
-"spirit," are from roots expressing the wind or breath. In Slavonic the
-root _du_ has developed the meaning of breath into that of soul or spirit,
-and the dialect of the gipsies has _duk_ with the meanings of breath,
-spirit, ghost. That word _ghost_, the German _geist_, the Dutch _geest_,
-from a root meaning "to blow with violence," is connected with _gust_,
-_gas_, _geyser_; in Scandinavian, _gloesor_, "to pour forth." In non-Aryan
-languages, as the Finnish, _far_ means "soul, breath, spirit, wind";
-_henki_, "spirit, person, breath, air"; the Hebrew _nephesh_, "breath,"
-has also the meanings of "life, soul, mind"; and _ruach_ and _neshamah_,
-to which the Arabic _nefs_ and _ruh_ correspond, pass from meaning
-"breath" to "spirit." The legend of man's creation records that he became
-a living soul through God breathing into his nostrils "the breath of
-life," and concerning this the Psalmist says of all that live, "Thou
-takest away their breath, they die, and return unto the dust." As a final
-illustration, the Egyptian _kneph_ has the alternative meanings of "life"
-and "breath."[79]
-
-When we pass from names to descriptions, we find the same underlying idea
-of the ethereal nature of spirit. The natives of Nicaragua, California,
-and other countries remote from these, agree in describing the other self
-as air or breeze, which passes in and out through the mouth and nostrils.
-The Tongans conceived it as the aeriform part of the body, related to it
-as the perfume to the flower. The Greenlanders describe it as pale and
-soft, as without flesh and bone, so that he who tries to seize it grasps
-nothing. The Lapps say that the ghosts are invisible to all but the
-Shamans. The Congo negroes leave the house of the dead unswept for a year,
-lest the dust should injure the delicate substance of the ghost; and the
-German peasants have a saying that a door should not be slammed, lest a
-soul gets pinched in it. In some parts of Northern Europe, when the
-wind-god, Odin, rides the sky with his furious spectral host, the peasants
-open the windows of every sick-room that the soul of the dying may have
-free exit to join the wild chase; whilst both here and in France it is
-still no uncommon practice to open doors and windows that the soul may
-depart quickly. Dr. Tylor[80] cites a passage from Hampole, in which the
-author speaks of the intenser suffering which the soul undergoes in
-purgatory by reason of its delicate organisation.
-
- "The soul is more tendre and nesche (soft)
- Than the bodi that hath bones and fleysche;
- Thanne the soul that is so tendere of kinde,
- Mote nedis hure penaunce hardere-y-finde,
- Than eni bodi that evere on live was,"
-
-a doctrine clearly due to Patristic theories of incorporeal souls. And a
-modern poet, Dante Rossetti, in his _Blessed Damozel_, when he describes
-her as leaning out from the gold bar of heaven and looking down towards
-the earth, that "spins like a fretful midge," whence she awaits the coming
-of her lover, depicts the souls mounting up to God as passing by her "like
-thin flames." The Greeks and, following them, the Romans, conceived the
-soul as of thin, impalpable texture, as exhaled with the dying breath, or,
-as in Homer, rushing out through the wound that causes the warrior's
-death. In the metaphysical Arabian romance of Yokdhan, the hero seeks the
-source of life and thought, and discovers in one of the cavities of the
-heart a bluish vapour, which was the living soul. Among the Hebrews it was
-of shadowy nature, with echoless motion, haunting a ghostly realm:
-
- "It is a land of shadows; yea, the land
- Itself is but a shadow, and the race
- That dwell therein are voices, forms of forms."
-
-Such conceptions are but little varied; and, to this day, the intelligence
-of the major number of people who think about the thing at all presents
-the departing soul as something vaporous, as a little white cloud.
-
-In keeping with such ideas, the belief in transfer of spirit expresses
-itself. Algonquin women who desired to become mothers flocked to the couch
-of those about to die, in hope that the vital principle as it passed from
-the body would enter theirs. Among the Seminoles of Florida, when a woman
-died in childbirth, the infant was held over her face to receive her
-parting spirit, and thus acquire strength and knowledge for its future
-use. So among the Takahlis, the priest is accustomed to lay his hand on
-the head of the nearest relative of the deceased, and to blow into him the
-soul of the departed, which is supposed to come to life in his next
-child.[81]
-
-In Harland and Wilkinson's _Lancashire Folk-lore_ it is related that while
-a well-known witch lay dying, "she must needs, before she could 'shuffle
-off this mortal coil,' transfer her _familiar spirit_ to some trusty
-successor. An intimate acquaintance from a neighbouring township was
-consequently sent for in all haste, and on her arrival was immediately
-closeted with her dying friend. What passed between them has never fully
-transpired, but it is asserted that at the close of the interview this
-associate _received the witch's last breath into her mouth, and with it
-her familiar spirit_. The powers for good or evil of the dreaded woman
-were thus transferred to her companion, and on passing along the road from
-Burnley to Blackburn we can point out a farmhouse at no great distance,
-with whose thrifty matron no neighbouring farmer will yet dare to
-quarrel." When a Roman lay at the point of death, his nearest relative
-inhaled the last breath; in New Testament story, the risen Jesus breathes
-on His disciples, that they may receive the Holy Spirit, and the form thus
-adopted in conferring supernatural grace is still used in the rites and
-ceremonies of the Catholic Church.
-
-Speculation about the other self could not, however, stop at identifying
-it with a man's breath or shadow, or with regarding it as absolutely
-impalpable. These nebulous and gaseous theories necessarily condensed, as
-it were, into theories of semi-substantiality still charged with ethereal
-conceptions, but giving embodiment to the soul to account for the
-appearances of both dead and living in dreams, when their persons were
-clasped, their forms and features seen, and their voices heard.
-
-Such theories involve a kind of continuity of identity, and often take the
-form of belief in the soul as a replica of the body, and as suffering
-corresponding mutilation. When the native Australian has slain his foe, he
-cuts off his right thumb, so as to prevent him from throwing a shadowy
-spear; the Chinese dread of decapitation, lest their spirits are headless,
-is well known; but a more telling illustration is that cited by Dr. Tylor,
-from Waitz, of the West Indian planter, whose slaves sought refuge from
-the lash and toil in suicide. But he was too cunning for them; he cut off
-the heads and hands of the corpses, that the survivors might see that not
-even death could save them from a taskmaster who could maim their souls in
-the next world. Among advanced nations the same conceptions survived.
-Achilles, resting by the shore, sees the dead Patroclus in a dream. "Ay
-me, there remaineth then, even in the house of Hades, a spirit and phantom
-of the dead, albeit the life be not anywise therein; for all night long
-hath the ghost of hapless Patroclus stood over me, wailing and making
-moan, and wondrous like his living self it seemed."[82] Virgil portrays
-AEneas, and Homer describes Ulysses, as recognising their old comrades
-when they enter the "viewless shades," where the dwellers continue the
-tasks of their earthly life. In Hebrew legend Saul recognises the shade of
-Samuel when the magic spell of the Witch of Endor evokes it, although the
-grave of the old "judge" was sixty miles away. The monarch-shades of
-"Sheol" hail with derision the entrance of the King of Babylon among them.
-In New Testament narrative the risen Jesus is alternately material and
-spiritual, now passing through closed doors, and now submitting his
-wound-prints to the touch of the doubter. In _Hamlet_ the ghost is as "the
-air, invulnerable," yet "like a king" ...
-
- "... that fair and warlike form
- In which the majesty of buried Denmark
- Did sometimes march."
-
-Notions of material punishments and rewards involved notions of a material
-soul, even pending its reunion with the body at the general resurrection.
-The angels are depicted as weighing souls in a literal balance, while
-devils clinging to the scales endeavour to disturb the equilibrium.[83] In
-some frescoes of the fourteenth century, on the walls of the Campo Santo,
-at Pisa, illustrations of these notions abound; the soul is portrayed as a
-sexless child rising out of the mouth of the corpse, and eagerly awaited
-as the crown of rejoicing of the angels, or as the lawful prey of the
-demons. After this it is amusing to learn that extreme tests of the
-weight of ghosts are now and then forthcoming,[84] from the assertion of a
-Basuto divine that the late queen had been bestriding his shoulders, and
-he never felt such a weight in his life, to the alleged modern
-spiritualistic reckoning of the weight of a human soul at from three to
-four ounces! And do not spirit-photographs adorn the albums of the
-credulous?
-
-
-Sec. X.
-
-BARBARIC BELIEF IN SOULS IN BRUTES AND PLANTS AND LIFELESS THINGS.
-
-More graceful is the conception which makes the soul spring up as a flower
-or cleave the air as a bird. It is, of course, the purified survival of
-the primitive thought which did not limit its belief in an indwelling
-spirit to man, but extended it to brutes and plants, and even to lifeless
-things. For the lower creatures manifested the phenomena from which the
-belief in spirits in higher creatures was inferred. They moved and
-breathed, their life ceased with their breath; they cast shadows and
-reflections; their cries, which to the savage seemed so like human
-speech,[85] awakened echoes; and they appeared in dreams. Among the
-western tribes of North America the phantoms of all animals are supposed
-to go to the happy beasts' grounds, and in Assam the ghosts of those slain
-become the property of the hunter who kills them; whilst the custom of
-begging pardon of the animal before or after despatching it, as among the
-Red Indians, who even put the pipe of peace in the dead creature's mouth,
-further evidences to barbarian belief in beast-souls. Although the belief
-in the immortality of brutes has now no place in serious philosophy, it
-has been a favourite doctrine from the Kamchadales, who believe in the
-after-life of flies and bugs, to the eminent naturalist Agassiz, who
-advocates the doctrine in his _Essay on Classification_; and in a list of
-4977 books on the nature and future of the soul given in Mr. Alger's
-elaborate critical history of the subject, nearly 200 deal with the
-after-life of animals. The advocates have often felt the difficulty of
-granting this after-life to man and denying it to creatures to which he
-stands so closely related in ultimate community of origin; but science,
-while it finds links of sympathy with the ideas of rude races respecting
-the common life of all that moves, and presents evidence in support of the
-common destiny, lends no support to the doctrine of the immortality of
-oysters. The custom of apologising to doomed brutes is practised in regard
-to plants. If they exhibit the phenomena of life in a lesser degree,
-enough are shown to justify the accrediting of them with souls. Besides
-flinging wavy shadows and reflections (and it cannot be too often enforced
-that to the barbaric intelligence motion is a prime sign of life), they
-are not voiceless. Murmurs are heard in their leaves; sounds echo from
-their hollow trunks, or tremble, AEolian-like, through their branches; and
-in their juices are the sources of repose or frenzy.
-
-"The Ojibways believed that trees had souls, and in pagan times they
-seldom cut down green or living trees, for they thought it put them to
-pain. They pretended to hear the wailing of the trees when they suffered
-in this way. On account of these noises, real or imaginary, trees have had
-spirits assigned them, and worship offered to them. A mountain-ash, in the
-vicinity of South Ste. Marie, which made a noise, had offerings piled up
-around it. If a tree should emit from its hollow trunk or branches a sound
-during a calm state of the atmosphere, or should any one fancy such
-sounds, the tree would be at once reported, and soon come to be regarded
-as the residence of some local god."[86] As expressed in Greek myth,
-purified in this case from grosser elements, we have the Dryades, who were
-believed to die together with the trees in which their life had begun to
-be, and in which they had dwelt. As expressed in folk-lore and its poetic
-forms, it is in the growth or blossoming of flowers, or the intertwining
-of branches, that the idea survives. In the ballad of "Fair Margaret and
-Sweet William"--
-
- "Out of her brest there sprang a _rose_,
- And out of his a _briar_;
- They grew till they grew unto the church-top,
- And there they tyed in a true lover's knot;"[87]
-
-in the story of "Tristram and Ysonde," "from his grave there grew an
-eglantine which twined about the statue, a marvel for all men to see; and,
-though three times they cut it down, it grew again, and ever wound its
-arms about the image of the fair Ysonde;"[88] while the conception often
-lends itself to the poet's thoughts, from Laertes' words over Ophelia:--
-
- "Lay her i' the earth,
- And from her fair and unpolluted flesh
- May violets spring,"
-
-to Tennyson's
-
- "And from his ashes may be made
- The violet of his native land."
-
-In Grimm's _Teutonic Mythology_ a number of illustrations are supplied of
-the vagaries of popular imagination, which picture the soul as a bird
-flying out of a dead person's mouth, and, as a cognate example from rude
-culture, we find a belief among the Powhatans that "a certain small wood
-bird received the souls of their princes at death, and they religiously
-refrained from doing it harm; while the Aztecs and various other nations
-thought that all good people, as a reward of merit, were metamorphosed at
-the close of life into feathered songsters of the grove, and in this form
-passed a certain term in the umbrageous bowers of Paradise."[89] But many
-pages might be filled with examples of varying conceptions of the soul,
-the major number of which (for the idea of it as a mouse, snake, etc.,
-must not be forgotten) have as their nucleus its ethereal nature and
-freedom from the limitations of solid earth, although round that nucleus
-gather some more concrete ideas for the mind, desiring something more
-substantial than symbols, to grasp. The belief that inanimate things as
-well as animals and plants have a dual being is not so obvious at first
-sight, and yet, given the reasons for the latter, there are as good
-grounds, because like in kind, for the former. The Algonquins told Father
-Charlevoix that "since hatchets and kettles have shadows, as well as men
-and women, it follows that these shadows must pass along with human
-shadows into the spirit-land." When the tools or weapons are injured or
-done with, their souls must cross the water to the Great Village, where
-the sun sets. Besides, spears and pots and pans, as well as men and dogs,
-appear in dreams; they throw shadows and images in the water, they give
-forth a sound when struck, and, as the Fijians also argue, "if an animal
-or plant die, its soul goes to Bolotoo; if a stone or anything else is
-broken, it has its reward there; nay, has equal good luck with men and
-hogs and yams. If an axe or a chisel is worn out or broken up, away flies
-its soul for the service of the gods." Logically, the savage who believes
-that in the other world
-
- "The hunter still the deer pursues,
- The hunter and the deer a shade,"
-
-must put in the hands of the one a shadow spear. So when an Ojibway
-chief, after a four days' trance, gave an account of his visit to the land
-of shadows, he told of the hosts whom he had met travelling there laden
-with pipes and kettles and weapons. These primitive ideas explain, once
-and for all, matters which have too often been explained by fanciful
-theories, or cited as evidences of the benighted condition of those places
-which on missionary maps of the world are painted black. They disclose the
-reason why food and utensils and weapons were broken and buried with the
-dead; why fires were lighted round the grave; why animals were slain on
-the death of a chief; why the Greenlanders, when a child dies, bury a dog
-with him, because the dog, they say, is able to find his way anywhere; why
-North American Indian mothers in pathetic custom drop their milk on the
-lips of the dead child; and why, what seemed so inexplicable to the early
-missionaries to the East, ignorant of the practice of widow-sacrifice
-among the ancient peoples of the West, as the Gauls, Teutons, and others,
-wives and slaves were burned on the funeral pyre. Among the Mexicans
-sometimes a very rich man would even have his chaplain slaughtered, that
-he might not be deprived of his support in the other world.
-
-In their initial stage all these gifts are made, all these rites
-performed, for the supposed need of the dead. Every one had his _manes_,
-which followed him into the next world, and, lacking which, he would be as
-poor as if in this world he had lacked it. The spiritual counterpart of
-the offerings was consumed by his spirit, just as the old deities were
-thought to enjoy the sweet-smelling savour of the burnt sacrifices; the
-fires were kindled that the soul might not grope about in darkness. So the
-obolus was put into the mouth of the dead, that its _manes_ might be
-payment to Charon for the ferry of the Styx, as money is put in the
-corpse's hand or mouth among the German and Irish peasants to this day; so
-the warrior's horse was slain at his tomb and the armour laid therein,
-that he might enter Valhalla riding, and clothed with the tokens of his
-right to the abode reserved for those who had fallen in battle.
-
-Any explanation of customs like the foregoing, persistent as they are in
-kind, however varying in expression, is defective which does not take into
-account what large part the emotions play in all that is connected with
-death, and how they infuse such customs with vitality. The bereaved refuse
-to believe that those whom they have lost have no more concern in the
-interests of life once common and dear to both. As among the Dakotas, when
-a mother feels a pain at her breast, they say that her dead child is
-thinking of her. The place where the body lies becomes the connecting link
-between it and the soul which is still the solicitude and care, or, it may
-be, the dread of the living; succouring and protecting, or, on the other
-hand, avenging.
-
-The element of dread undoubtedly comes into play early. The awe which we
-feel in the presence of death, or in passing in the dark through a
-churchyard, takes in the savage the form of terror. The behaviour of the
-ghost in dreams, its ability to do what men still in the flesh cannot do,
-quicken the belief in occult power, and the desire to propitiate it. Among
-the Lapps red-hot stones are cast behind the coffins of the dead, and
-their graves fenced round to prevent their return to earth. The articles
-placed in the grave as gifts for the dead become sacrifices laid on the
-altar to appease malignant spirits; the mound or tomb becomes a temple,
-and awe passes by easy degrees into worship. The prevalence in one form or
-another of ancestor-worship has, as remarked already, led Mr. Spencer to
-the conclusion that it is the rudimentary form of all religions; even sun,
-moon, volcano, river, etc., being feared and adored because they were
-believed to be the dwelling-places of ancestral ghosts. The facts are
-against this theory. It is to the larger, the more impressive phenomena of
-the natural world, the sun in noontide strength and splendour, the
-lightning and the thunder, that we must look for the primary causes which
-awakened the fear, the wonder, and the adoration in which lie the germs of
-the highest religions. Such causes are not only sufficient, but more
-operative on the undeveloped intelligence than the belief in ancestral
-spirits of the mountain and the sea, which involves a more complex mental
-action.[90] The one is contributory, but subordinate, to the other. It is,
-as M. Reville remarks, "the phenomena of nature regarded as animated and
-conscious that wake and stimulate the religious sentiments, and become
-the objects of the adoration of man.... If nature-worship, with the
-animism that it engenders,[91] shapes the first law to which nascent
-religion submits in the human race, anthropomorphism furnishes the second,
-disengaging itself ever more and more completely from the zoomorphism
-which generally serves as an intermediary. This is so _everywhere_."[92]
-
-
-Sec. XI.
-
-BARBARIC AND CIVILISED NOTIONS ABOUT THE SOUL'S DWELLING-PLACE.
-
-The existence of the ghost-soul or other self being unquestioned, the
-inquiry follows, where does it dwell? Like the trolls of Norse myth, who
-burst at sunrise, the flitting spirit vanishes in the light and comes with
-the darkness; but what places does it haunt when the quiet of the night is
-unbroken by its intrusion, and where are they?
-
-The answers to these are as varied as the vagaries of rude imagination
-permit. We must not expect to find any theories of the soul's prolonged
-after-existence among races who have but a dim remembrance of yesterday,
-and but a hazy conception of a to-morrow. Neither, among such, any
-theories of the soul abiding in a place of reward or punishment, as the
-result of things done in the body. Speaking of the heaven of the Red man,
-Dr. Brinton remarks that "nowhere was any well-defined doctrine that moral
-turpitude was judged and punished in the next world. No contrast is
-discoverable between a place of torment and a realm of joy; at the worst
-but a negative castigation awaited the liar, the coward, or the niggard."
-Ideas of a devil and a hell are altogether absent from the barbaric mind,
-since it is obvious that any theory of retribution could arise only when
-man's moral nature had so developed as to awaken questions about the
-government of the universe, and to call another world into existence to
-redress the wrongs and balance the injustices of this. His earliest
-queries were concerned with the whereabouts of the soul more than with its
-destiny, and it was, and still is, among the lower races, thought of as
-haunting its old abode or the burial-place of its body, and as acting very
-much as it had acted when in the flesh. The shade of the Algonquin hunter
-chases the spirits of the beaver and the elk with the spirits of his bow
-and arrow, and stalks on the spirits of his snow-shoes over the spirit of
-the snow. Among the Costa Ricans the spirits of the dead are supposed to
-remain near their bodies for a year, and the explorer Swan relates that
-when he was with the North-Western Indians he was not allowed to attend a
-funeral, lest he offended the spirits hovering round; whilst the Indians
-of North America often destroy or abandon the dwellings of the dead, the
-object being to prevent the ghost from returning, or to leave it free so
-to do. But it is needless to multiply illustrations of a belief which has
-been persistent in the human mind from the dawn of speculation about the
-future of the soul to the present day. The barbarians who think that the
-spirits of the dead move and have their being near the living, join them
-on their journeys, and sit down, unseen visitants, at their feasts (to be
-driven off, as among the Eskimos, by blowing the breath), are one with the
-multitudes of folks in Europe and America who, sorrowing over their dead,
-think of them as ministering with unfelt hands, and as keenly interested
-in their concerns.
-
- "We meet them at the doorway, on the stair,
- Along the passages they come and go,
- Impalpable impressions on the air,
- A sense of something moving to and fro."
-
-The Ojibway, who detects their tiny voices in the insect's hum, and thinks
-of them as sheltering themselves from the rain by thousands in a flower,
-as sporting by myriads on a sunbeam, is one with the Schoolmen who
-speculated on the number of angels that could dance on a needle's point,
-and with Milton in his poetic rendering of the belief of his time, that
-
- "Millions of spiritual creatures walk the earth
- Unseen, both when we wake and when we sleep."
-
-The Hottentot who avoids a dead man's hut lest the ghost be within, is one
-with the believers in haunted houses, in banshees, wraiths, and spectres.
-Such as he should not be excluded as "corresponding members" of the
-Society for Psychical Research in the invitations[93] which its committee
-issues to folks who have seen apparitions, and slept, or tried to sleep,
-in the dreaded chamber of some moated hall of mystery.
-
-If we look in vain for any consistency of idea or logical relation in
-barbaric notions, our wonder ceases at the absence of these when we note
-the conflicting conceptions entertained among intelligent people. But the
-underlying thought is identical. The examples given in a foregoing section
-on the belief in the passage of the soul into other human bodies, into
-animals and stones, strengthened as this is by the likeness in mind and
-body between children and dead relatives, by the human expression noted on
-many a brute, by the human shape of many a stone, show how the theory of
-the soul as nigh at hand finds many-sided support. In this belief, too,
-lie the germs of theories of successive transmigrations elaborated in the
-faiths of advanced races, when the defects of body and character were
-explained as the effects of sin committed in a former existence.
-
-Next in order of conception appears to be that of the soul as living an
-independent existence, an improved edition of the present, in an under or
-upper world, into which the dead pass without distinction of caste or
-worth.
-
-The things dreamed about respecting the land of spirits and their
-occupations are woven of the materials of daily life. Whether to the
-sleeping barbarian in his wigwam, or to the seer banished in Patmos;
-whether to the Indian travelling in his dreams to the happy
-hunting-ground, or to the apostle caught up in trance into paradise;
-earth, and earth alone, supplies the materials out of which man everywhere
-has shaped his heaven. Her dinted and furrowed surface; valleys and
-mountain-tops; islands sleeping in summer seas, or fretted by winter
-storms; cities walled and battlemented; glories of sunrise and sunset;
-gave variety enough for play of the cherished hopes and imaginings of men.
-If we collect any group of barbaric fancies, we find, speaking broadly,
-that a large proportion have pictured the home of souls as in the west,
-towards the land of the setting sun. Seen from many a standpoint to sink
-beneath river, lake, or ocean, which for untutored man enclosed his world,
-it led to the myth of waters of death dividing earth from heaven, which
-the soul, often at perilous risk, must cross. Such was the Ginnunga-gap of
-the Vikings; the nine seas and a half across which travellers to Manala,
-the under-world of the Finns, must voyage; the great water of the Red
-Indians; the Vaitarani of the Brahmans; the Stygian stream of the Greeks;
-and the Jordan of the Christians, that flows between us and the Celestial
-City, "where the surges cease to roll." The sinking of the sun below the
-horizon obviously led to belief in an under-world, whither the ghosts
-went. Barbaric notions are full of this, and the lower culture out of
-which their beliefs arose is evidenced in the Orcus of the Romans, the
-Hades of the Greeks, the Helheim of the Norsemen, the Sheol of the
-Hebrews, and the Amenti of the Egyptians, the solar features of which last
-are clearly traceable in their doctrine. Among the Hebrews, Sheol
-(translated, curiously enough, thirty-one times as "grave," and thirty-one
-times as "hell," in our Authorised Version) was a vast cavernous space in
-which the shades of good and bad alike wandered--"the small and great are
-there, and the servant is free from his master." It is akin in character
-to the Greek Hades, where they "wander mid shadows and shade, and wail by
-impassable streams." As ideas of a Divine rule of the world grew, its
-manifestations in justice were looked for, and the mystery of iniquity,
-the wicked "flourishing like a green bay tree," led to the conception of a
-future state, in which Lazarus and Dives would change places. Sheol thus
-became, on the one hand, a land of delight and repose for the faithful,
-and, on the other hand, one of punishment for the wicked.
-
-Persian, and still older, influences had largely leavened Hebrew
-conceptions, and local conditions in Judea added pungent elements. The
-Valley of Hinnom, or Gehenna, "the place where lie the corpses of those
-who have sinned against Jehovah, where their worm shall not die, neither
-their fire be quenched;" the dreary volcanic region around the Dead Sea,
-with its legend of doomed cities, supplied their imagery of hell with its
-lake of fire and brimstone. And, as the belief travelled westward, it fell
-into congenial soil. The sulphurous stench around Lacus Avernus, the smoke
-of Vesuvius, Stromboli, and Etna, wreathed themselves round the hell of
-Christianity and the under-world of barbaric myth; and from Talmudic
-writer to classic poet, to Dante and to Milton, the imagination exhausted
-the material of the horrible to describe the several tortures of the
-damned. The hell of our northern forefathers remained below the flat
-earth, but the cold, misty Niflheim melted away before the fiery perdition
-of Christian dogma. And, in the region bordering thereon, the _limbus
-patrum_, the _limbus infantum_, etc., we have the survival of belief in
-separate hells characteristic of the Oriental religions, and of the
-sub-divisions of the lower world in more rudimentary religions.
-
-Beyond the narrow horizon which bounded the world of the ancients, lay the
-imaginary land of the immortals, the Blessed, the Happy, the Fortunate
-Isles. But as that horizon enlarged, the Elysian Fields and Banquet Halls
-were transferred to an upper sphere. In the wonder aroused by the
-firmament above, with its solid-looking vault across which sun, stars,
-and clouds traversed; in the place it plays in dreams of barbarian and
-patriarch, when the sleeper is carried thither; in its brightness of
-noonday glory as contrasted with the dark sun-set under-world, we may find
-some of the materials of which the theory of an upper world, a heaven
-("the heaved") is made up. There the barbarian places his paradise to
-which the rainbow and the Milky Way are roads; there he meets his kindred,
-and lives where cold, disease, and age are not, but everlasting summer and
-summer fruits. There, too, for the conceptions of advanced races are drawn
-from the same sources, the civilised peoples of Europe and America have
-placed their heaven. And, save in refinement of detail incident to
-intellectual growth, there is nothing to choose between the earlier and
-the later; the same gross delights, the same earth-born ideas are there,
-whether we enter the Norseman's Valhalla, the Moslem's Paradise, or the
-Christian's New Jerusalem.
-
-
-Sec. XII.
-
-CONCLUSIONS FROM THE FOREGOING.
-
-It would exceed the limits and purport of this book to follow the
-extension of the belief in spirits to its extreme range; in other words,
-to belief in controlling spirits in inanimate objects, which were advanced
-_pari passu_ with man's advancing conceptions to place and rank as the
-higher gods of polytheism. Such belief, as already indicated, is the
-outcome of that primitive philosophy which invests the elements above and
-the earth beneath with departmental deities, until, through successive
-stages of dualism, the idea of a Supreme Deity is reached, and the
-approach is thus made towards a conception of the unity and unvarying
-order of nature. Deferring reference to the part played by dreams as media
-of communication between heaven and earth, and as warnings of coming
-events, let us summarise the evidence which has been gathered, and ask
-whether it warrants the conclusions drawn from it in the present work.
-
-It has been shown that races have existed, and exist still, at so low a
-level that their scanty stock of words has to be supplemented by gestures,
-rendering converse in the dark next to impossible. Such people are
-bewildered by any effort to count beyond their fingers; they have no idea
-of the relation of things, or of their differences; they have no power of
-generalisation by which to merge the accidental in the essential. They
-believe that their names and likenesses are integral parts of themselves,
-and that they can be bewitched or harmed through them at the hands of any
-one who knows the one or has obtained the other. As an important result of
-their confusion between the objective and the subjective, we find a vivid
-and remarkable belief in the reality of their dreams. The events which
-make up these are explained only on the theory that if the body did not
-move from its sleeping place, something related to it did, and that the
-people, both living and dead, who appeared in dream and vision, did in
-very presence come. The puzzle is solved by the theory of a second self
-which can leave the body and return to it. For the savage knows nothing of
-_mind_. The belief in this other self is strengthened (possibly more or
-less created) by its appearance in shadow or reflection, in mocking echo,
-in various diseases, especially fits, when the sufferer is torn by an
-indwelling foe, and writhes as if in his merciless grasp. The belief in
-such a ghost-soul, as to the form and ethereal nature of which all kinds
-of theories are started, is extended to animals and lifeless things, since
-like evidence of its existence is supplied by them. The fire that destroys
-his hut, the wind that blows it down, the lightning that darts from the
-clouds and strikes his fellow-man dead beside him, the rain-storm that
-floods his fields, the swollen river that sweeps away his store of
-food--these and every other force manifest in nature add their weight to
-the inferences which rude man has drawn. The phenomena which have
-accounted for the vigour of life and the prostration of disease account
-for the motion of things in heaven above and the earth beneath, and the
-barbaric mind thus enlarges its belief in a twofold existence in man to a
-far-reaching doctrine of spirits everywhere. Step by step, from ghost-soul
-flitting round the wigwam to the great spirits indwelling in the powers of
-nature, the belief in supernatural beings with physical qualities arises,
-until the moral element comes in, and they appear as good and evil gods
-contending for the mastery of the universe. Passing by details as to the
-whereabouts of the other self and its doings and destiny in the other
-world which the dream involves, and following the order of ideas on
-scientific lines, two queries arise:--
-
-1. Does the evidence before us suffice to warrant the conclusions drawn
-from it as to the serious and permanent part which dreams have played in
-the origin and growth of primitive belief in spirits; in short, of belief
-in supernatural agencies from past to present times? In this place the
-answer is brief. Of course the antecedent conditions of man's developed
-emotional nature, and of the universe of great and small, which is the
-field of its exercise, are taken for granted.
-
-The general animistic interpretation which man gives to phenomena at the
-outset expressed itself in the particular conceptions of souls everywhere,
-of which dreams and such-like things supplied the raw material. If they
-did not, what did? Denying this, we must fall back on a theory of
-intuition or on revelation. As to the former, it begs the whole question;
-as to the latter, can that which is itself the subject of periodical
-revision be an infallible authority on anything?
-
-If dreams, apparitions, shadows, and the like, are sufficing causes, then,
-in obedience to the Law of Parsimony (as it is termed in logic), we need
-not invoke the play of higher causes when lower ones are found competent
-to account for the effects. If it seems to some that the base is too
-narrow, the foundation too weak for the superstructure, and that our
-metaphysics and our beliefs regarding the invisible rest upon something
-wider and stronger than the illusions of a remote savage ancestry, the
-facts of man's history may be adduced as witness to his continuous passage
-into truth through illusions; to the vast revolutions and readjustments
-made in his correction of the first impressions of the senses. There is
-not a belief of the past, from the notions of savages about their dreams
-and ghost-world to those of more advanced races about their spirit-realms
-and its occupants, to which this does not apply. In the more delicate
-observations of the astronomer he must, when estimating the position of
-any celestial body, take into account its apparent displacement through
-the refractive properties of the atmosphere, and must also allow for
-defects of perception in himself due to what is called "personal
-equation." And in ascertaining our place in the scale of being, as well as
-in seeking for the grounds of belief concerning our own nature, we have to
-take into account the refracting media of dense ignorance and prejudice
-through which these beliefs have come, and to allow for the confirming
-error due to personal equation--fond desire. The result will be the
-vanishing of illusions involving momentous changes in psychology, ethics,
-and theology. Instead of groping among mental phenomena for explanations
-of themselves, they will be analysed by the methods already indicated.
-Instead of resting the authority for moral injunctions on innate ideas of
-right and wrong, and on inspired statutes and standards, it will rest on
-the accredited, because verifiable, experience of man. Instead of finding
-incentives to, or restraints on, conduct by operating on men's hope of
-future reward, or fear of hell as "hangman's whip to keep the wretch in
-order," they will be supplied by an ever-widening sense of duty, quickened
-by love and loyalty to a supreme order, in obedience to which the ultimate
-happiness of humanity in the life that is will be secured.
-
-In this, and not in theories of an hereafter whose origin and persistence
-are explained, will man find his satisfaction, and the springs of motive
-to whatever is ennobling, lovely, and of good report. With the poet, who,
-laying bare the sources of the unrest of his time, has led us to the
-secret of its peace, he will ask--
-
- "Is it so small a thing
- To have enjoyed the sun,
- To have lived light in the spring,
- To have loved, to have thought, to have done,
- To have advanced true friends, and beat down baffling foes--
- That we should feign a bliss
- Of doubtful future date,
- And while we dream on this,
- Lose all our present state,
- And relegate to worlds yet distant our repose?"[94]
-
-2. Does the theory of evolution in its application to the development of
-the spiritual nature of man, and to the origin and growth of ideas, find
-any breach of continuity? In its inclusion of him as a part of nature, in
-accounting for his derivation from pre-human ancestry by a process of
-natural selection, and in its proofs of his unbroken development from the
-embryo to adult life, it embraces the growth and development of mind and
-all that mind connotes. In the words of Professor Huxley, "As there is an
-anatomy of the body, so there is an anatomy of the mind; the psychologist
-dissects mental phenomena into elementary states of consciousness, as the
-anatomist resolves limbs into tissues, and tissues into cells. The one
-traces the development of complex organs from simple rudiments; the other
-follows the building up of complex conceptions out of simpler constituents
-of thought. As the physiologist inquires into the way in which the
-so-called 'functions' of the body are performed, so the psychologist
-studies the so-called 'faculties' of the mind. Even a cursory attention to
-the ways and works of the lower animals suggests a comparative anatomy and
-physiology of the mind; and the doctrine of evolution presses for
-application as much in the one field as in the other."[95]
-
-Any coherent explanation of the operations of nature was impossible while
-man had no conception or knowledge of the interplay of its several parts.
-Now, by the doctrine of continuity, not only are present changes referred
-to unvarying causes, but the past is interpreted by the processes going on
-under our eyes. We can as easily calculate eclipses backward as forward;
-we can learn in present formations of the earth's crust the history of the
-deposition of the most ancient strata; we read in a rounded granite pebble
-the story of epochs, the fire that fused its organic or inorganic
-particles, the water that rubbed and rolled it; we reconstruct from a few
-bones the ancestry of obscure forms, and find in the fragments the missing
-links that connect species now so varied. And the like method is applied
-to man in his _tout ensemble_. His development is not arbitrary; what he
-is is the expansion of germs of what he was.
-
-Till these latter days he has, on the warrant of legends now of worth only
-as witnesses to his crude ideas, presumed on an isolated place in
-creation, and excepted his race from an inquiry made concerning every
-creature beneath him. The pride of birth has hindered his admission of
-lineal connection between the beliefs of cultured races and the beliefs of
-savages, and pseudo-scientific writers still confuse issues by assuming
-distinctions between races to whom spiritual truths have been revealed and
-races from whom these truths have been withheld. But the only tenable
-distinction to be drawn nowadays is between the scientific and
-pre-scientific age in the history of any given race.
-
-In these times, when many run to and fro, and knowledge is increased, we
-forget how recent are the tremendous changes wrought by the science that--
-
- "Reaches forth her arms
- To feel from world to world, and charms
- Her secret from the latest moon."
-
-Dulled by familiarity, we forget how operative these changes are upon
-opinions which have been--save now and again by voices speedily
-silenced--unquestioned during centuries. It is, in truth, another world to
-that in which our forefathers lived. Even in science itself the revolution
-wrought by discoveries within the last fifty years is enormous. Our old
-standard authorities, especially in astronomy and geology, are now of
-value only as historical indices to the progress of those sciences, while
-in the domain of life itself the distinctions between plant and animal,
-assumed under the terms Botany and Zoology, are effaced and made one under
-the term Biology. Sir James Paget, in a profoundly interesting address on
-_Science and Theology_, has pointed out that it was once thought profane
-to speak of life as in any kind of relation or alliance with chemical
-affinities manifest in lifeless matter; now, the correlation of all the
-forces of matter is a doctrine which investigation more and more confirms.
-It was believed--many believe it still--that an impassable chasm separates
-the inorganic from the organic, the latter being attained only through
-operations of a "vital force" external to matter. That chasm is imaginary.
-Even the supposed difference between plants and animals in the existence
-in the latter of a stomach by which to digest and change nutritive
-substances, vanishes before the experiments on carnivorous plants. And not
-only do the observations of Mr. Darwin go far to show the existence of a
-nervous system in plants, but examination of crystals shows that a "truly
-elemental pathology must be studied in them after mechanical injuries or
-other disturbing forces." And is man, "the roof and crown of things," to
-witness to diversity amidst this unity?
-
-If we hesitate to believe that our metaphysics have been evolved from
-savage philosophy, that our accepted opinions concerning man's nature and
-destiny are but the improved and purified speculations of the past, we
-must remember what long years had elapsed before the spirit of science
-arose and breathed its air of freedom on the human mind. The Christian
-religion wrought no change in the attitude of man towards the natural
-world; it remained as full of mystery and miracle to the pagan after his
-conversion as before it. When that religion was planted in foreign soil it
-had, as the condition of its thriving, to be nourished by the alien
-juices. It had to take into itself what it found there, and it found very
-much in common. Although it displaced and degraded the _Dii majores_ of
-other faiths, it had its own elaborated order of principalities and
-powers; it had as real a belief in demons and goblins as any pagan; and it
-was, therefore, simply a question of baptizing and rechristening the
-ghost-world of heathendom, substituting angels for swan-maidens and elves,
-devils for demons, and retaining unchanged the army of evil agencies, who
-as witches and wraiths swarmed in the night and wrought havoc on soul and
-body.
-
-The doctrine of continuity admits no exceptions; it has no "favoured
-nation" clause for man. Its teaching is of order, not confusion; of
-gradual development, not spasmodic advance; of banishment of all
-catastrophic theories in the interpretation of the history of man as of
-nature. In its exposition nothing is "common or unclean;" nothing too
-trivial for notice in study of the growth of language, of law, of social
-customs and institutions, of religion, or of aught else comprised in the
-story of our race. The nursery rhyme and the "wise saw" embody the serious
-belief of past times; ceremonial rites and priestly vestments preserve the
-significance and sacredness gathering round the common when it becomes
-specialised. And in this belief in spiritual powers and agencies within
-and without, the line uniting the lower and the higher culture is
-unbroken. Nor can it be otherwise, if it be conceded that the sources of
-man's knowledge do not transcend his experience, and that within the
-limits of this we have to look for the origin of all beliefs, from the
-crudest animism to the most ennobling conceptions of the Eternal.
-
- "This world is the nurse of all we know,
- This world is the mother of all we feel."
-
-And yet we find this denied by professed scientists, whose minds are
-built, as it were, in water-tight compartments. The theistic philosopher,
-trembling at the bogey of human automatism, creates an Ego, "an entity
-wherein man's nobility essentially consists, which does not depend for its
-existence on any play of physical or vital forces, but which makes these
-forces subservient to its determinations."[96] The biologist, shrinking
-from the application of the theory of evolution to the descent of man,
-argues that "his animality is distinct in nature from his rationality,
-though inseparably joined during life in one common personality." His body
-"was derived from pre-existing materials, and therefore, only derivatively
-created; that is, by the operation of secondary laws." His soul, on the
-other hand, was created in quite a different way, not by any pre-existing
-means external to God Himself, but by the direct action of the Almighty
-symbolised by the term "breathing."[97] As this compound nature of man is
-defended in a scientific treatise, the question that leaps to the lips is,
-When did the inoculating action take place?--in the embryonic stage, or at
-birth, or at the first awakenings of the moral sense?
-
-Readers of that eccentric book, _The Unseen Universe_, published some
-eight years ago, may remember that the authors built up a spiritual body
-whose home lay beyond the visible cosmos.[98] Their argument was to the
-following effect:--Just as light is held to result from vibrations of the
-ether set in motion by self-luminous or light-reflecting bodies, so every
-thought occasions molecular action in the brain, which gives rise to
-vibrations of the ether. While the effect of a portion of our mental
-activity is to leave a permanent record on the matter of the brain, and
-thus constitute an organ of memory, the effect of the remaining portion is
-to set up thought-waves across the ether, and to construct by these means,
-in some part of the unseen universe, what may be called our "spiritual
-body." By this process there is being gradually built up, as the resultant
-of our present activities, our future selves; and when we die our
-consciousness is in some mysterious way transferred to the spiritual body,
-and thus the continuity of identity is secured.
-
- "Eternal form shall still divide
- Th' eternal soul from all beside."
-
-We may well quote the ancient words: "If they do these things in a green
-tree, what shall be done in the dry?" The physicists, who thus locate the
-soul in limitless space, and call it vibrations; the mathematician, who
-said it must be extension; and the musician, who said, like Aristoxenus,
-that it was harmony; the Cartesian philosopher, who locates it in the
-pineal gland; the Costa Rican, who places it in the liver; the Tongans,
-who make it co-extensive with the body; and the Swedenborgians, who assume
-an underlying, inner self pervading the whole frame--these have met
-together, the lower and the higher culture have kissed each other.
-
-The tripartite division of man by the Rabbis, the Platonists, the
-Paulinists, the Chinese, the mediaeval theories of vegetal, sensitive, and
-rational souls; what are these but the "other self" of savage philosophy
-writ large? Plato's number is found among the Sioux: of their three souls
-one goes to a cold place, another to a warm place, and the third stays to
-guard the body. Washington Matthews, in his _Ethnology and Philology of
-the Hidatsa Indians_, says:--"It is believed by some of the Hidatsa that
-every human being has four souls in one. They account for the phenomena of
-gradual death, when the extremities are apparently dead while
-consciousness remains, by supposing the four souls to depart, one after
-another, at different times. When dissolution is complete, they say that
-all the souls are gone, and have joined together again outside the body. I
-have heard a Minsutaree quietly discussing this doctrine with an
-Assinneboine, who believed in only one soul to each body."
-
-Let it not be thought that because science explains the earth-born origin
-of some of man's loftiest hopes, she makes claim to have spoken the last
-word, and forbids utterance from any other quarter. The theologian is not
-less free to assume such miraculous intervention in man's development as
-marks him nearer to the angel than to the ape, only his assumptions lie
-beyond the scope of scientific inquiry. And it should be noted that whilst
-science takes away, she gives with no niggard hand, so that the loss is
-more seeming than real.
-
-When belief in the earth's central and supreme place in the universe was
-surrendered at the bidding of astronomy, there was compensation in the
-revelation of a universe to which thought can fix no limits. And if man
-is bidden to surrender belief in his difference in kind from other living
-creatures, he will be given the conception of a collective humanity whose
-duties and destiny he shares. That conception will not be the destruction,
-but the enlargement, of the field of the emotions, and, in contrasting the
-evanescence of the individual with the permanence of the race, he may find
-a profounder meaning in the familiar words--
-
- "We are such stuff as dreams are made on,
- And our little life is rounded with a sleep."
-
-
-Sec. XIII.
-
-DREAMS AS OMENS AND MEDIA OF COMMUNICATION BETWEEN GODS AND MEN.
-
-Reference has now to be made to the part played by dreams as supposed
-channels of communication between heaven and earth; as portents, omens,
-etc. The common belief among the nations of antiquity that they were sent
-by the gods, and the like belief lurking in the minds of the superstitious
-to this day, are the scarcely-altered survivals of barbaric confusion
-respecting them.
-
-When man had advanced from the earlier stages of undefined wonder and
-bewilderment concerning the powers around and above him to anthropomorphic
-conceptions of them, _i.e._ to making them in his own image, the events of
-his dreams were striking confirmation of his notions about the constant
-intervention of spiritual beings, gods, chiefs, and ancestors, in the
-affairs of life. That personal life and will with which the rude
-intelligence invests the objects of its awe; waving trees, swirling
-waters, drifting clouds, whirling winds, stately march of sun and star,
-seemed especially manifest in dreams and visions. In their unrelated and
-bewildering, or, on the other hand, their surpassingly clear, incidents,
-the powers indwelling in all things seemed to come nearer than in the less
-sensational occurrences of the day, uttering their monitions, or making
-known their will. They were the media by which this and that thing was
-commanded or forbidden, or by which guidance and counsel and knowledge of
-the future were given. To induce them, therefore, became a constant
-effort. The discovery that fasting is a certain method of procuring them
-is one reason of its prevalence in the lower culture. Amongst all the
-indigenous races of North America abstinence has been practised as a chief
-means of securing supernatural inspiration. The Redskin, to become a
-sorcerer or to secure a revelation from his _totem_, or the Eskimo, to
-become _Angekok_, will endure the most severe privations.
-
-It is believed that whatever is seen in the first dream thus produced by
-fasting becomes the manitou, or guardian spirit of life, corresponding to
-the "daimon" of Socrates. And whoever by much fasting is favoured with
-dreams, and cultivates the art of explaining them as bearing on the
-future, becomes the feared and consulted "medicine man" of his tribe. His
-_kee-kee-wins_, or records, are finally shown to the old people, who meet
-together and consult upon them. They in the end give their approval, and
-declare that he is gifted as a prophet, is inspired with wisdom, and is
-fit to lead in the councils of the people.[99]
-
-Very slender data were needed for the conclusions first drawn from dreams;
-let the death of a friend or foe be the incident, and the event happen;
-let a hunting-path fill the half-torpid fancy, and a day's fasting follow;
-let the mother of a young sportsman dream that she saw a bear in a certain
-place, and the son, guided by her account, find the bear where indicated,
-and kill it; the arbitrary relation is set up forthwith. As Lord Bacon
-says, "Men mark the hits, but not the misses," and a thousand dreams
-unfulfilled count as nothing against one dream fulfilled. Out of that is
-shaped, as dream-lore shows, a canon of interpretation by which whole
-races will explain their dreams, never staying, when experience happens to
-confirm it, to wonder that the correspondences are not more frequent than
-they are. Where the arbitrary act was wrought, the isolated or conflicting
-influences manifest, there deity or demon was working. So the passage from
-the crude interpretation of his dreams by the barbarian to the formal
-elaboration of the dream-oracle is obvious. It was only one of many modes
-by which the gods were thought to hold converse with man, and by which
-their will was divined. It was one phase of that many-sided belief in
-power for good or evil inhering in everything, and which led man to see
-omens in the common events of life, in births, in the objects any one met
-in a journey or saw in the sky; to divine the future by numbers, by the
-lines in the hand, by the song and flight of birds (lurking in the word
-_augury_), by the entrails of sacrificed men and animals.[100] Sometimes
-the god sends the message through a spiritual being, an angel (literally
-"messenger"); sometimes he, himself, speaks in vision, but more often
-through the symbolism of both familiar and unfamiliar things. To interpret
-this is a serious science, and skill and shrewdness applied therein with
-success were passports to high place and royal favour. In this we have the
-familiar illustrations of Joseph and Daniel, and, indeed, we need not
-travel beyond the books of the Old Testament for abundant and varied
-examples of the importance attached to dreams and visions, and of the
-place accorded to dreams,[101] an importance undiminished until we come to
-the literature of the centuries just before Christ. For example, in the
-Book of Jesus the Son of Sirac, we read--
-
- "Vain and deceitful hopes befit the senseless man,
- And dreams make fools rejoice,
- Like one who grasps at a shadow and chases the wind,
- Is he who puts trust in dreams."[102]
-
-In the belief that through dreams and oracles Yahweh made known his will,
-the influence of older beliefs and their literature is apparent. Among the
-Accadians, a pre-Semitic race in Babylonia, there existed a mass of
-treatises on magic and divination by dreams and visions, and both from
-this and from Egyptian sources, blended with survivals from their barbaric
-past, the Hebrews largely drew.
-
-In this, too, "there is nothing new under the sun." Homer, painting the
-vividness and agonising incompleteness of the passing visions, affirms
-that dreams from Jove proceed, although sometimes to deceive men; Plato
-assigns prophetic character to the images seen in them; Aristotle sees a
-divination concerning some things in dreams which is not incredible; the
-answer to oracles was sought in them, as when the worshipper slept in a
-temple on the skin of a sacrificed ram, and learned his destiny through
-the dream that came. The Stoics argued that if the gods love and care for
-men and are all-knowing, they will tell their purposes to men in sleep.
-Cicero attaches high importance to the faculty of interpreting them; their
-phenomena, like those of oracles and predictions, should, he contends, be
-explained just as the grammarians and the commentators explain the
-poets.[103]
-
-With the influence of these beliefs in the air, and with the
-legend-visions of Scripture as authority, the divine origin of dreams
-became a doctrine of the Christian Church. Tertullian says that "we
-receive dreams from God, there being no man so foolish as never to have
-known any dreams come true," and in his _De Anima_ reference is made to a
-host of writers of dream treatises. For the most part they are but names;
-their treatises have perished, but enough remains for the perusal of the
-curious regarding ancient rules of interpretation and the particular
-significance of certain dreams. The current views of dreams in classic
-antiquity are believed to be partly embodied in the [Greek: Oneirokritika]
-of Artemidorus of Ephesus, who flourished about the middle of the second
-century, and who reduces dream interpretation to a body of elaborate
-rules, while amongst Christian writers Synesius of Cyrene, who lived two
-centuries later, holds a corresponding place.
-
-Both classic and patristic writers supply copious details concerning the
-classes into which dreams were divided, and which have some curious
-correspondences among the Oriental nations, as well as in our dream-lore,
-_e.g._, when Artemidorus says that he who dreams he hath lost a tooth
-shall lose a friend, we may compare with this a quotation which Brand
-gives from the _Sapho and Phao_ of Lily, a playwright of the time of
-Elizabeth. "Dreams have their trueth. Dreams are but dotings, which come
-either by things we see in the day or meates that we eat, and so the
-common-sense preferring it to be the imaginative. 'I dreamed,' says
-Ismena, 'mine eyetooth was loose, and that I thrust it out with my
-tongue.' 'It foretelleth,' replies Mileta, 'the loss of a friend; and I
-ever thought thee so full of prattle that thou wouldst thrust out the best
-friend with thy tatling.'"
-
-It is, however, needless to quote from Artemidorus and others of their
-kin. They do but furnish samples of the ingenuity applied to profitless
-speculations on matters which were fundamental then, and around which the
-mind played unchecked and unchallenged. Moreover, the subtle distinctions
-made between dreams in former times were slowly effaced, or sank to their
-proper level in the gossip of chap books--our European _kee-kee-wins_. But
-the belief in the dream as having a serious meaning, and in the spectral
-appearances in visions as real existences, remained as strong as in any
-barbarian or pagan. In an atmosphere charged with the supernatural,
-apparitions and the like were matters of course, the particular form of
-the illusion to which the senses testified being in harmony with the ideas
-of the age. The devil does not appear to Greek or Roman, but he sorely
-troubled the saints, unless their nerves were, like Luther's, strong
-enough to overmaster him. Luther speaks of him as coming into his cell,
-and making a great noise behind the stove, and of his walking in the
-cloister above his cell at night; "but as I knew it was the devil," he
-says, "I paid no attention to him, and went to sleep." Sceptics now and
-again arose protesting against the current belief, but they were as a
-voice crying in the desert. One Henry Cornelius Agrippa, in the fifteenth
-century, a man born out of due time, says, "To this delusion not a few
-great philosophers have given not a little credit, especially Democritus,
-Aristotle, Sincsius, etc., so far building on examples of dreams, which
-some accident hath made to be true, that thence they endeavour to persuade
-men that there are no dreams but what are real."
-
-His words have not yet lost their purport. For the credulity of man, the
-persistence with which he clings to the shadow of the supernatural after
-having surrendered the substance, seem almost a constant quantity, varying
-only in form. Unteachable by experience, fools still pay their guineas to
-mediums to rap out inane messages from the departed, and send postage
-stamps to the Astronomer Royal, asking him to "work the planets" for them,
-and secure them luck in love and law-suits. Nor is there any cure for this
-but in wise culture of the mind, wise correction, and wholesome control of
-the emotions. "By faithfully intending the mind to the realities of
-nature," as Bacon has it, and by living and working among men in a
-healthy, sympathetic way, exaggeration of a particular line of thought or
-feeling is prevented, and the balance of the faculties best preserved.
-For, adds Dr. Maudsley, in pregnant and well-chosen words, "there are not
-two worlds--a world of nature and a world of human nature--standing over
-against one another in a sort of antagonism, but one world of nature, in
-the orderly evolution of which human nature has its subordinate part.
-Delusions and hallucinations may be described as discordant notes in the
-grand harmony. It should, then, be every man's steadfast aim, as a part of
-nature--his patient work--to cultivate such entire sincerity of relations
-with it; so to think, feel, and act always in intimate unison with it; to
-be so completely one with it in life, that when the summons comes to
-surrender his mortal part to absorption into it, he does so, not
-fearfully, as to an enemy who has vanquished him, but trustfully, as to a
-mother who, when the day's task is done, bids him lie down to sleep."
-
-
-
-
-INDEX.
-
-
- Abipone, 15, 151, 156.
-
- Abraham, 135.
-
- Accadians, 134, 240.
-
- AEsop, 96.
-
- Agassiz, 208.
-
- Agni, 74.
-
- Agrippa, Cornelius, 243.
-
- Ahriman, 54.
-
- Alger, 208.
-
- Algonquins, 40, 43, 46, 91, 99, 110, 125, 167, 184, 203, 211, 216.
-
- Allah, 159.
-
- Ancestors, sun and moon as, 19.
- worship of, 110, 112, 214.
-
- Ancient Stone Age, 8.
-
- Animal, descent from, 99.
- worship, 110.
-
- Animals, transformation into, 81.
- virtue in flesh of, 164.
- souls in, 207.
-
- Apollo, 52.
-
- Arabian folk-tales, 196.
- notion of soul, 202.
-
- Araucanians, 43, 163.
-
- Arnobius, 167.
-
- Arnold, Matthew, 14, 227.
-
- Art, primitive, 147.
-
- Artemidorus, 241.
-
- Arthur, King, 123.
-
- Aryan epics, 71.
-
- Aryan folk-tales, 70, 95.
- languages, 67.
- myths, 51, 76.
-
- Aryans, primitive home of, 69.
-
- Astrology, 33.
-
- Australians, 20, 26, 30, 99, 103, 150, 153, 157, 165, 179, 198, 205.
-
- Aztecs, 44, 199, 210.
-
-
- Barbaric belief in dreams, 168-174.
- belief in souls in brutes, etc., 207-213.
- belief in virtue in lifeless things, 12, 160-168, 181.
- confusion about names, 154-159.
- cures for disease, 179.
- dread of portrait-taking, 162.
- language, 150.
- notions of soul's abode, 215-222.
- theory of disease, 174, 182.
- theory of a soul, 182-187.
- theory of soul's nature, 198-206.
-
- Baring Gould, 28, 84.
-
- Basutos, 184.
-
- Beast-fables, 94, 98.
-
- Beowulf, 52.
-
- Berserkr, 87.
-
- Bifroest, 33.
-
- Bird, soul as, 210.
- wind as, 43-45.
-
- Body, soul apart from, 188.
- soul as replica of, 205.
-
- Bohemian folk-tale, 195.
-
- Bonaparte, 64.
-
- Brain of man and ape, 144.
-
- Brand, 17, 166, 241.
-
- Brazilian Indians, 153, 156, 175.
-
- Breath, soul as, 187, 198 ff.
-
- Brebeuf, 165.
-
- Brinton, 45, 92, 101, 210.
-
- Brutes, souls in, 207.
-
- Bryant, 7.
-
- Buckle, 3.
-
- Buddha, 64.
-
- Buddhist fables (_see_ Jatakas).
-
- Bunsen, 132.
-
- Bushmen, 13, 20, 26.
-
-
- Caesar, 106.
-
- Callaway, Bishop, 170.
-
- Campbell, J. F., 193.
-
- Cannibalism, 165.
-
- Cardinal points, symbol of, 44.
-
- Caribs, 167.
-
- Carpenter, Dr., 88, 232.
-
- Catlin, 162.
-
- Charlemagne, 125.
-
- Charles's Wain, 30.
-
- Charms, philosophy of, 164.
-
- Chasuble, 167.
-
- Chaucer, 28, 32.
-
- Child and savage, 14.
-
- Chimpanzee, brain of, 145.
-
- Chinese myth, 16, 36.
-
- Choctaws, 42, 184.
-
- Christian heaven, 220.
- religion, 231.
-
- Cicero, 240.
-
- Civilised theories of soul's nature, 198, 203.
-
- Clan-totems, 107, 109.
-
- Cloud-serpent, 46.
-
- Clouds as cows, 51.
-
- Confession, 181.
-
- Congo Negroes, 202.
-
- Continuity, doctrine of, 228, 231.
-
- Coral, 166.
-
- Costa Ricans, 216, 234.
-
- Counting, savage, 153.
-
- Cox, Sir G. W., 37, 62, 75, 198.
-
- Crest, totem as, 108.
-
- Cronus, 35, 37.
-
- Cross as wind symbol, 44.
-
- _Custom and Myth_, 38.
-
-
- Dakotas, 31, 46, 106, 175, 199, 213.
-
- Dammaras, 151.
-
- Darwin, 3, 230.
-
- Dasent, 91, 121.
-
- Dead, burial of food with, 212.
- road of the, 32.
-
- Death, savage notion of, 186.
-
- Demons, 58, 178.
-
- Dennys, 15.
-
- Deodand, 15.
-
- Devil, 53, 56, 60.
- as disease-bringer, 176.
-
- Disease, savage theory of, 89, 174 ff.
- savage remedies for, 179.
-
- Doctrine of signatures, 166.
-
- Dorman, 42, 157, 209.
-
- Dragons, battles with, 52.
-
- Dreams as source of belief in soul, 183, 225.
-
- Dreams, duality in, 183.
- savage belief in reality of, 168-174.
- omens from, 236-242.
-
- Dyaks, 17, 25, 159, 171.
-
- Dyaus, 36, 74.
-
-
- Earth as source of heaven-theories, 219.
-
- Earth-bearers, 40.
-
- Echo, soul as, 185.
-
- _Edda_, 15, 29, 33, 43, 52.
-
- Effigy, burning in, 16.
-
- Egg, world as, 38.
-
- Ego, the, 232.
-
- Egyptian folk-tale, 197.
-
- Epics, Aryan, 71.
-
- Epidemic delusions, 88.
-
- Eskimos, 30, 91, 153, 163, 179, 199, 217, 237.
-
- Esthonian myth, 39.
-
- Euhemeros, 66.
-
- Eumenides, 159.
-
- Evolution, 144.
- of mind, 5, 228.
-
- Exile, Jewish, 134.
-
- Exogamy, 104.
-
- Eye-bright, 15, 166.
-
-
- Fasting, 237.
-
- Fijians, 171, 177, 184, 211.
-
- Fingers in counting, 153.
-
- Finnish myth, 16, 32, 38, 43, 45, 121, 176, 196, 219.
-
- Finns, 159, 173.
-
- Fire myths, 47.
-
- Food, forbidden, 105.
-
- Foster, Thomas, 63.
-
- Frisian moon myth, 28.
-
-
- Gaea, 35.
-
- Galton, 151.
-
- Gellert myth, 128.
-
- Gender, origin of, 22.
-
- _Gesta Romanorum_, 128.
-
- Giant with no heart in his body, 192.
-
- Gill, W. W., 20, 47, 177.
-
- Gladstone, W. E., 7.
-
- Gods, revelation from, through dreams, 239.
-
- Goldziher, 62, 64, 135.
-
- Greek myth, 33, 77.
- notion of soul, 202.
-
- Greenlanders, 27, 164, 171, 201, 212.
-
- Grimm, 27, 30, 32, 55, 97, 178, 181, 201, 209, 210.
-
- Grimm's Law, 73.
-
- Grote, 14.
-
-
- Hades, 220.
-
- Hall, Bishop, 18.
-
- Heaven, 19.
- imagery of, 221.
- and earth, myths of, 34.
-
- Hebrew myth, 33, 39, 64, 131-136.
- notion of soul, 206.
-
- Hell, 220.
-
- Herakles, 22, 31, 51, 63, 136.
-
- Here, 31.
-
- Hiawatha, 158.
-
- Hidatsa Indians, 235.
-
- History, myth in, 114.
-
- _Hitopadesa_, 129.
-
- Holmes, 183.
-
- Homer, 240.
-
- Hottentot, 217.
-
- Huc, Father, 181.
-
- Hurricane, 199.
-
- Huxley, 145, 228.
-
-
- Icelandic moon myth, 28.
-
- Iliad, 55, 64, 205.
-
- Ilmarine, 39.
-
- Im Thurn, 156, 171, 207.
-
- Inanimate things, criminality of, 15.
- sex in, 24.
- souls in, 211.
-
- Incas, 45.
-
- _Indian Fairy Tales_, 191.
-
- Indians, Columbian, 155.
- Housatonic, 31.
- North American, 13, 17, 21, 26, 30, 151, 156, 162, 164, 175, 199, 207,
- 212, 216, 219, 235, 237.
- of Guiana, 156, 171.
- Selish, 27.
- Western, 46, 107.
-
- Indra, 49, 53.
-
- Iroquois, 156, 165, 167.
-
- Isaac, 135.
-
- Islam, 33.
-
-
- Jack and Jill, 28.
-
- Japanese myth, 40.
-
- Jatakas, 27, 96, 129, 192.
-
- Jehovah, 159.
-
- Johnson, Dr., 183.
-
- Jonah, 136.
-
-
- Kaffirs, 13, 164.
-
- _Kalevala_, 38.
-
- _Kalevipoeeg_, 39.
-
- Kane, Dr., 155.
-
- Kasirs, 30.
-
- Kenaima, 175.
-
- Khasias moon myth, 27.
-
- Kinship, primitive, 102.
-
- Kirby, 196.
-
- Kuhn, 41.
-
-
- Lancashire folk-lore, 177, 204.
-
- Lang, Andrew, 37, 166, 205.
-
- Lang, Dr., 157.
-
- Language, personification of, 24.
- physical base of, 150.
- primitive, 149.
-
- Languages, savage, 23.
- limitations of, 150.
-
- Lapps, 156, 159, 201.
-
- Leland, 44.
-
- Lightning myths, 47.
-
- Lithuanian, 32.
-
- Living and not living, savage confusion between, 12, 160-168, 181.
-
- Llewellyn myth, 128.
-
- Lucretius, 169.
-
- Luther, 242.
-
- Lycanthropy, 83.
-
- Lyell, 145.
-
-
- Malays, 150.
-
- Man, mental development of, 147, 228.
- primitive interpretation of nature by, 10.
- relation of, to nature, 4, 228.
- savage and civilised, 144.
-
- Manacicas, 20.
-
- _Manes_, 212.
-
- Maoris, 34.
-
- Mapuches, 180.
-
- Marriage, primitive, 103.
-
- Maruts, 44, 53.
-
- Matthews, Washington, 235.
-
- Maudsley, Dr., 243.
-
- Maui, sun-catcher, 21.
- fire-bringer, 47.
-
- M'Lennan, 102, 104.
-
- Medicine-men, 92, 99, 237.
-
- Melanesian, 166.
-
- Men-beasts, 86.
-
- Metamorphosis, 81.
-
- Metempsychosis, 82.
-
- Mexicans, 212.
-
- Milky Way, 31, 222.
-
- Mind, evolution of, 5, 228.
-
- Mivart, 233.
-
- Mohawk, 199.
-
- Mohicans, 150.
-
- Mongolian moon myth, 27.
-
- Mongols, 150.
-
- Moon, as mother, 25.
- as sun's sister, 26.
- man in the, 28.
- myths, 10, 19, 20.
- patches, 27.
-
- Moquis, 99, 102, 110.
-
- Mueller, Max, 37, 49, 56, 62, 66, 68, 111, 158.
-
- Multiple souls, 234.
-
- Myth in history, 114.
- origin of, 17.
- primitive meaning of, 3, 10.
- serious meaning in, 7.
- solar theory of, 61-81.
- value of study of, 138.
-
- Myths of Creation, 38.
- earth-bearers, 40.
- fire-stealers, 47.
- heaven and earth, 34.
- lightning, 47.
- Milky Way, 31.
- moon, 20, 27.
- Northern Lights, 31.
- rainbow, 32, 33.
- stars, 30.
- sun, 19, 21.
- swallowing, 36.
- wind, 42-45.
-
-
- Names, savage dread of, 104.
- savage confusion about, 154-159.
-
- Napoleon III., will of, 113.
-
- New Zealanders, 13, 15, 30, 158, 164.
-
- Niebuhr, 65.
-
- Nightmare, 171.
-
- Non-Aryan, brain of, 144.
- races, languages of, 201.
-
- _Norse, Tales from the_, 192.
-
- Northern Lights, 31.
-
-
- Odin, 30, 44, 202.
-
- Ogres, 44.
-
- Ojibways, 42, 110, 155, 209, 212, 217.
-
- _Old Deccan Days_, 188.
-
- Omens, dreams as, 236-242.
-
- Oracles, 240.
-
- Origin of gender, 22.
- moon, 20.
- myth, 7.
- religion, 111.
- sun, 19.
-
- Orion, 30.
-
- Ormuzd, 54.
-
- Other self, barbaric theory of, 183.
- conceived as breath, 187, 199.
- passage from within to without, 185.
-
- Ottawas, 31.
-
- Ouranos, 74.
-
- Ovid, 85.
-
-
- Paget, Sir J., 230.
-
- _Panchatantra_, 129.
-
- Papa, 19, 34.
-
- Papuan, brain of, 145.
-
- Patagonians, 31.
-
- Persians, 25, 33, 57.
-
- Picture-writing, 107.
-
- Plant, descent from, 99.
-
- Plants, souls in, 208.
-
- Pleiades, 30.
-
- Pocahontas, 158.
-
- Polynesians, 38, 163.
-
- Prithivi, 36.
-
- Prytaneum, 15.
-
- Psychical Research, Society of, 217.
-
- Punchkin, 188 ff.
-
-
- Quiches, 42, 199.
-
-
- Ra, 21.
-
- Rae, Dr., 153.
-
- Rain, gender in, 25.
-
- Rainbow, 32.
-
- Ralston, 194.
-
- Rangi, 34.
-
- Religion, origin of, 111.
-
- Renan, 132.
-
- Reville, 214.
-
- Reynard the fox, 97, 181.
-
- _Rig-Veda_, 44, 49, 72, 74, 76, 78, 80.
-
- Rink, Dr., 165.
-
- Road of the dead, 32.
-
- Roman notion of soul, 202.
-
- Rossetti, 17, 202.
-
- _Russian Folk-Tales_, 194.
-
-
- St. George, 53.
-
- Saliva, virtue in, 16, 163.
-
- Samoan moon myth, 27.
-
- Samoyed folk-tale, 196.
-
- Samson, myth of, 137.
-
- San Graal, 126.
-
- Sanskrit, 72.
-
- Satan, 57.
-
- Savage and civilised man, 144.
- belief in dreams, 168-174.
- confusion between living and not living, 13, 160-168.
- confusion between names and things, 105, 155.
- cures for disease, 179.
- interpretation of nature, 10.
- languages, 23, 150.
- mode of counting, 152.
- theory of disease, 89, 174-182.
- theory of soul, 182-187.
- theory of soul's abode, 215-222.
- theory of soul's nature, 198-207.
-
- Science, progress of, 230.
-
- Seminoles, 203.
-
- Semitic languages, 159.
- myth, 132.
-
- Senses, illusions of the, 39, 226.
-
- Servian folk-tale, 195.
-
- Shadow, soul as, 184.
-
- Shawnee name myth, 157.
-
- Sheol, 206, 220.
-
- Sioux, 47, 162.
-
- Skulls, capacity of, 145.
-
- Slavonic sun myth, 26.
-
- Sleeping heroes, 124.
-
- Smith, Adam, 151.
-
- Sneezing, 177.
-
- Society Islanders, 150.
-
- Solar theory of myth, 61-81.
-
- Sonora Indians, 185.
-
- Sorcerers, 163.
-
- Soul, absence in disease, 178.
- absence in dreams, 171.
- as breath, 187, 199 ff.
- as shadow, etc., 184.
- barbaric theory of, 182-187, 225, 234.
- dwelling-place of, 215-222.
- in brutes, plants, etc., 207.
- occupation of, 216.
- tales of, apart from body, 188 ff.
- theories of nature of, 198-207, 234.
- transfer of, 203.
- weight of, 207.
-
- South Sea Islanders, 158, 163, 185.
-
- Spencer, Herbert, 110, 149, 183, 214.
-
- Spirit as breath, 200.
-
- Spirits, offerings to, 213 (see also Soul).
-
- Star myths, 30.
-
- Stars as persons, 20, 25.
-
- Storm-gods, 44.
-
- Sun as ancestor, 19, 20.
- as father, 25.
- capture of, 21.
- myths, 10, 19, 51.
-
- Swedenborgians, 234.
-
- Swift, Dean, 73, 166.
-
-
- Taboo of names, 158.
-
- Tacitus, 16, 106.
-
- Tahitians, 158.
-
- Takahlis, 203.
-
- _Talmud_, 178.
-
- Tasmanians, 150.
-
- Tatar folk-tale, 196.
-
- Tell myth, 116 ff.
-
- Tertullian, 241.
-
- Thor, 46, 52, 60.
-
- Thunder-bird, 46.
-
- To be, the verb, 151.
-
- Tools, primitive, 147.
-
- Toothache, 175, 179.
-
- Totemism, 99, 102, 237.
-
- Totems as badge, 107.
- as crest, 108.
- Red Indian, 100.
- worship of, 110.
-
- Tongans, 19, 201, 234.
-
- Tonkanays, 92.
-
- Transformation, 85, 91.
-
- Treacle, 16.
-
- Tree, criminality of, 15.
-
- Trees, soul in, 209.
-
- Trench, Archbishop, 137.
-
- Troyes, Courts of, 15.
-
- Tylor, 14, 25, 65, 165, 199, 202, 205, 207.
-
- Tyrolese, 164.
-
-
- Underworld, 220.
-
- _Unseen Universe_, 233.
-
- Uranus, 35.
-
-
- Varuna, 74.
-
- Vatea, 19.
-
- _Vatnsdaela Saga_, 173.
-
- _Veda_ (see _Rig-Veda_).
-
- _Vinaya Pitaka_, 129.
-
- Vritra, 49, 53, 60.
-
-
- Waitz, 205.
-
- Wandering Jew, 31.
-
- Water between earth and heaven, 219.
-
- Watling Street, 32.
-
- Werewolves, 84, 86, 91.
-
- West, soul abode in, 219.
-
- Whitney, 151.
-
- Wind, myths of, 42-45.
- soul as, 199.
-
- Witchcraft, 58.
-
- Witches, 83, 91.
-
- World as egg, 38.
-
- Worship of ancestors, 110, 214.
-
-
- Xomanes, 167.
-
-
- Yahweh, 55, 57, 159.
-
-
- _Zend-Avesta_, 54.
-
- Zeus, 33, 36, 55, 74, 85.
-
- Zoroaster, 56.
-
- Zulu, 170, 184.
-
-
-THE END.
-
-
-_Printed by_ R. & R. CLARK, _Edinburgh_.
-
-
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-[1] Buckle's work appeared in 1857, Darwin's in 1859.
-
-[2] Matthew Arnold, _Empedocles on Etna_.
-
-[3] Countess Cesaresco's _Essays in the Study of Folk-Songs_, p. 183.
-
-[4] _The Folk-Lore of China_, p. 52.
-
-[5] Mark vii. 33, John ix. 6. Cf. Tacitus, _Hist._ iv. 81--"A certain man
-of the Alexandrian populace afflicted with wasted eyes kept imploring the
-prince to deign to spatter saliva on his cheek and eyeballs." In Finnish
-myth the demon Hiisi forms a huge snake from the spittle of a
-fellow-demon. Cf. also Thomson's _Masai Land_, pp. 288-290.
-
-[6] Henderson's _Folk-Lore of the Northern Counties_, p. 229; cf. Horace,
-_Sat._ i. 8, 30; Frazer's _Golden Bough_, i. 9; Scot's _Discoverie of
-Witchcraft_, p. 208.
-
-[7] Grimm, _T. M._, 356, 357.
-
-[8] II. 427.
-
-[9] Page xvi.
-
-[10] _Custom and Myth_, pp. 49, 50. While these sheets are passing through
-the press I am glad to take occasion to commend Mr. Lang's scholarly and
-fascinating book to the reader. As an explanation of the survival of crude
-and irrational elements in the myths of civilised races, it is a book to
-be reckoned with by the advocates of the solar theory.
-
-[11] "And said the gods, let there be a hammered plate in the midst of the
-waters, and let it be dividing between waters and waters." Gen. i. 6. The
-verb from which the substantive is derived signifies, among other
-meanings, "to beat out into thin plates."
-
-[12] Gen. viii. 2.
-
-[13] Gen. xxviii. 17.
-
-[14] Ezek. i. 1.
-
-[15] _Modern Painters_, iii. 154.
-
-[16] Dorman's _Primitive Superstitions_, p. 350.
-
-[17] Leland's _Algonquin Legends_, pp. 111, 204.
-
-[18] From Sans. _mar_, to "grind." Ares and Mars come from the same root.
-
-[19] _Merry Wives of Windsor_, act iv. sc. 4.
-
-[20] In Finnish myth the dwarfs punish with pimples and ringworm those who
-enter new houses without bowing to the four corners.
-
-[21] Both "pecuniary" and "fee" are, as established by Grimm's law, from
-_pecu_. Latin _pecu-a_, pl. _pecus_, "cattle"; Sanskrit _pacu_, "cattle,"
-from _pac_, to fasten (that which is tied up, _i.e._ domestic cattle). Cf.
-Skeats' _Etymol. Dict._ _in loc._ A.S. _feoh_ is cognate with German
-_vich_, and the ideas these express occur in _ktema_, the Greek word for
-"property," which Grimm derives from the verb _keto_, "to feed cattle."
-
-[22] Not the same as the Greek Herakles. The similarity of name led the
-Romans to identify their Hercules, who was a god of boundaries, like
-Jupiter Terminus, with the Greek hero. _Cacus_ is not cognate with Greek
-_kakos_, bad, but was originally _Caecius_, the "blinder" or "darkener."
-
-[23] _Decline and Fall_, iii. 171; Emerson's _English Traits_, p. 123.
-
-[24] See Ralston's _Russian Folk-Tales_, p. 347, for similar Bulgarian
-legend about St. George.
-
-[25] Haug's _Essays on the Parsis_, tr. Vendidad, pp. 225 ff.
-
-[26] Cf. Isaiah xlv. 7, 1 Kings xxii. 21-23, Amos iii. 6.
-
-[27] _Iliad_, Book xxiv. 663 ff., and cf. Lang's tr., p. 494.
-
-[28] _Vide_ my _Jesus of Nazareth_, p. 144.
-
-[29] Notably _Tobit_ and _Baruch_, and cf. _Book of Wisdom_, ii. 24, for
-earliest indications of the belief. The Asmodeus of _Tobit_, iii. 8 and
-17, appears to be the Aeshmo daevo of the Zend-Avesta.
-
-[30] Exodus xxii. 18.
-
-[31] For details of witch trials in this island cf. Mrs. Lynn Linton's
-_Witch Stories_, passim.
-
-[32] _Knowledge Library._
-
-[33] Vide _Chips_, ii. 1-146.
-
-[34] Cf. Professor Keane's Appendix to Sir A. C. Ramsay's _Europe_, p. 557
-
-[35] Cf. "Little Saddlehurst" in Mr. Geldart's _Folk-Lore of Modern
-Greece_, p. 27.
-
-[36] Cf. on this matter Whitney's _Oriental and Linguistic Studies_, p.
-203.
-
-[37] _Mythology of the Aryan Nations_, i. 108.
-
-[38] _Mental Physiology_, p. 315.
-
-[39] Spenser says--
-
- "Such, men do _changelings_ call, so changed by fairies' theft."
-
-[40] An Algonquin legend begins: "In old times, in the beginning of
-things, men were as animals and animals as men; how this was, no one
-knows."--Leland's _Algonquin Legends_, p. 31.
-
-[41] And cf. Bourke's _Snake Dance of the Moquis_, passim.
-
-[42] Cf. Mahaffy's _Prolegomena to Ancient History_, p. 392.
-
-[43] Vol. i., Truebner and Co. See for some valuable illustrations from
-early English and other sources an article by Rev. Dr. Morris, in
-_Contemp. Rev._, May 1881, and the _Folk-Lore Journal_, 1884-85, for
-translations of Jatakas, also by Dr. Morris.
-
-[44] _Travels in N.W. and W. Australia_, ii. 229.
-
-[45] Bourke's _Snake Dance of the Moquis_, p. 136.
-
-[46] Cf. Art. "Family," _Encyclopaedia Britannica_.
-
-[47] _De Bell. Gall._, v. c. 12.
-
-[48] _Elton's Origins of English History_, p. 297.
-
-[49] _Germania_, ix. 10.
-
-[50] _Principles of Sociology_, p. 413.
-
-[51] _Edinburgh Review_, Jan. 1869, p. 134. Article on Rilliet's "Origines
-de la Confederation Suisse: Histoire et Legende."
-
-[52] _Times'_ telegram from Geneva, June 25, 1883.
-
-[53] Book x. p. 166. Cf. Baring Gould's _Curious Myths_, p. 117, and
-Fiske's _Myths and Myth-makers_, p. 4.
-
-[54] Baring Gould, p. 119.
-
-[55] Cf. Prof. Rhys's _Arthurian Legend_, _passim_.
-
-[56] _Academy_, Nov. 17, 1877, p. 472.
-
-[57] _Mythology among the Hebrews, and its Historical Development_
-(London: Longmans), 1877.
-
-[58] _Goldziher_, p. 392 ff.
-
-[59] _Ibid._, p. 103.
-
-[60] The following paragraph from Professor Huxley's _Observations on the
-Human Skulls of Engis and Neanderthal_ is extracted from Lyell's
-_Antiquity of Man_, p. 89 (4th edition).
-
-"The most capacious healthy European skull yet measured had a capacity of
-114 cubic inches, the smallest (as estimated by weight of brain) about 55
-cubic inches, while, according to Professor Schaaffhausen, some Hindu
-skulls have as small a capacity as about 46 cubic inches (27 oz. of
-water). The largest cranium of any gorilla yet measured contained 34.5
-cubic inches."
-
-Commenting on this paper Sir Charles Lyell remarks that "it is admitted
-that the differences in character between the brain of the highest races
-of man and that of the lowest, though less in degree, are of the same
-order as those which separate the human from the Simian brain," and that
-the statements of both Professor Huxley and Dr. Morton show "that the
-range of size or capacity between the highest and lowest human brain is
-greater than that between the highest Simian and the lowest human brain."
-
-[61] Spencer's _Principles of Sociology_, p. 147.
-
-[62] The peculiar feature of the Semitic languages is that the consonants
-are everything and the vowels nothing, every word consisting, in the first
-instance, merely of three consonants, which form, so to speak, the soul of
-the idea to be expressed by that word. And as in ancient times the
-consonants only were written, the name Jehovah appeared as JHVH. Its exact
-pronunciation is utterly lost, and such veneration gathered round it, that
-when the Jews came to it they substituted some other name--usually Adonai.
-Afterwards, when vowels were added to the Hebrew text, those in Adonai, or
-its phonetic form Edona, were inserted between the letters of the sacred
-name, and thus JHVH was written Jehovah.
-
-[63] Rink's _Tales and Traditions of the Eskimo_, p. 45.
-
-[64] Vide _Custom and Myth_; Art. "Moly and Mandragora," p. 146.
-
-[65] _Popular Antiquities_, ii. 85.
-
-[66] Dyers _Folk-Lore_, p. 179.
-
-[67] Arnobius _adv. Gentes._, v. 19.
-
-[68] _De rerum Natura_, Book iv. 453-468.
-
-[69] According to Professor Skeat, from A.S. _niht_, night; _mara_, lit.
-"a crusher," from Aryan root, MAR, to crush. Cf. _Etymol. Dict._
-
-[70] _Among the Indians of Guiana_, pp. 344-346.
-
-[71] W. G. Black: _Folk-Medicine_, p. 13.
-
-[72] _Teut. Mythol._, 1165.
-
-[73] Cf. Grimm, _Teut. Mythol._ 1177.
-
-[74] "Voila autant de rapports que les Bouddhistes ont avec nous," adds
-the traveller, for hinting at which analogies between Buddhists and
-Catholics the Pope put his book on the Index.
-
-[75] In a Finnish legend, which is the subject of Southey's "Donica," a
-maiden of that name moves about seemingly alive after her death in virtue
-of a parchment as magic spell, which is fastened to her wrist, until a
-sorcerer finds out the secret of the connection and unfastens the
-parchment, when the counterfeit life departs.
-
-[76] _Mythology of the Aryan Nations_, i. 140.
-
-[77] Brinton's _Myths of the New World_, p. 51 (second edition).
-
-[78] I am indebted to the Rev. Richard Morris for this reference.
-
-[79] Jacob Grimm remarks that whilst the more palpable breath, as spirit,
-is masculine, the living, life-giving soul is treated as a delicate
-feminine essence. _Soul_ is the Icelandic _sala_, German _seele_, Gothic
-_saiwala_, akin to _saivs_, which means "the sea." _Saivs_ is from a root,
-_si_, or _siv_, the Greek _seio_, to shake, and this choice of the word
-_saivala_ may indicate that the ancient Teutons conceived of the soul "as
-a sea within, heaving up and down with every breath, and reflecting heaven
-and earth on the mirror of the deep."--_T. M._ p. 826.
-
-[80] _Prim. Culture_, i. 412.
-
-[81] _Brinton_, p. 271.
-
-[82] _Iliad_, xxiii. 103 (trans. Lang and others).
-
-[83] Cf. Lecky's _History of Rationalism_, i. 340.
-
-[84] _Prim. Culture_, i. 411. See _Soul Shapes_ (Fisher Unwin, 1890).
-
-[85] "To the ear of the savage, animals certainly seem even to talk. This
-fact is universally evident, and ought to be fully realised."--Im Thurn's
-_Guiana_, p. 351.
-
-[86] _Dorman_, pp. 287, 288.
-
-[87] Grimm's _Teutonic Mythology_, p. 827.
-
-[88] Cox and Jones, _Popular Romances_, p. 139.
-
-[89] _Brinton_, p. 107.
-
-[90] Cf. _Ante_, pp. 110-114.
-
-[91] More correctly, "that engenders it."
-
-[92] _Hibbert Lectures_, 1884, pp. 39, 40.
-
-[93] The Society's advertisement is as follows:--
-
-"THOUGHT-TRANSFERENCE, APPARITIONS, etc.--The Society for Psychical
-Research will be grateful for any good evidence bearing on such phenomena
-as thought-reading, clairvoyance, presentiments, and dreams, noted at the
-time of occurrence and afterwards confirmed; unexplained disturbances in
-places supposed to be haunted; apparitions at the moment of death or
-otherwise; and of such other abnormal events as may seem to fall under
-somewhat the same categories. Communications to be addressed to E. Gurney,
-14 Dean's Yard, S.W.; or to F. W. H. Myers, Leckhampton House, Cambridge.
-Applications for information or for membership to be addressed to the
-Secretary, at the Society's Offices, 14 Dean's Yard, S.W."
-
-[94] Matthew Arnold, _Empedocles on Etna_.
-
-[95] _Hume_, p. 50.
-
-[96] Dr. Carpenter's _Mental Physiology_, p. 27.
-
-[97] St. Geo. Mivart's _Genesis of Species_, p. 325. In the second edition
-of this work Professor Mivart cites with satisfaction the authority of S.
-Thomas Aquinas and of Cardinal Newman on the matter!
-
-[98] For criticism of this pseudo-scientific theory see Professor
-Clifford's brilliant paper in _Lectures and Essays_, i. 228, ff.; and a
-review of "The Unseen Universe" by the present writer, _Fraser's Mag._,
-Jan. 1876.
-
-[99] The following Mohammadan recipe for summoning spirits is given in
-Klunzinger's _Upper Egypt_. "Fast seven days in a lonely place, and take
-incense with you, such as benzoin, aloeswood, mastic, and odoriferous wood
-from Soudan, and read the chapter 1001 times (from the Koran) in the seven
-days--a certain number of readings, namely, for every day one of the five
-daily prayers. That is the secret, and you will see indescribable wonders;
-drums will be beaten beside you, and flags hoisted over your head, and you
-will see spirits full of light and of beautiful and benign aspect."--(P.
-386).
-
-[100] In Roget's _Thesaurus_, sect. 511, a curious and instructive list of
-terms expressive of the different forms of divination is given.
-
-[101] Numb. xii. 6; 1 Sam. xxviii. 6, 15, etc.
-
-[102] Chap. xxxiv.
-
-[103] Cf. _Ency. Brit._, Art. "Dreams."
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber's Notes:
-
-Passages in italics are indicated by _italics_.
-
-The original text contains letters with diacritical marks that are not
-represented in this text version.
-
-The original text includes Greek characters that have been replaced with
-transliterations in this text version.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Myths and Dreams, by Edward Clodd
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK MYTHS AND DREAMS ***
-
-***** This file should be named 43813.txt or 43813.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/4/3/8/1/43813/
-
-Produced by The Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
-http://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images
-generously made available by The Internet Archive.)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
- www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
-contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
-Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/43813.zip b/43813.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 9a426d7..0000000
--- a/43813.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ